1 <?xml version='
1.0' encoding='UTF-
8'
?>
2 <?xml-stylesheet href=
"docbook-css-0.4/driver.css" type=
"text/css"?>
3 <!-- Converted to DocBook by Hans Schou 2004-03-29. Updated and improved
4 by Petter Reinholdtsen 2012 with input from Martin Borg. -->
9 <!DOCTYPE book PUBLIC
"-//OASIS//DTD DocBook XML V4.5//EN"
10 "http://www.oasis-open.org/docbook/xml/4.5/docbookx.dtd"
15 <book id=
"index" lang=
"en">
17 <title>Free Culture
</title>
19 <abbrev>"freeculture"</abbrev>
21 <subtitle>How big media uses technology and the law to lock down
22 culture and control creativity
</subtitle>
24 <pubdate>2004-
03-
25</pubdate>
28 <releaseinfo>Version
2004-
02-
10</releaseinfo>
32 <firstname>Lawrence
</firstname>
33 <surname>Lessig
</surname>
36 Keep these out to avoid showing up as author in the PDF.
39 <firstname>Petter</firstname>
40 <surname>Reinholdtsen</surname>
43 <othercredit role='converter'>
44 <firstname>Petter</firstname>
45 <surname>Reinholdtsen</surname>
46 <contrib>Created this Docbook version from an earlier version</contrib>
51 <!-- <subjectset> and cover <mediaobject> Based on example from
52 http://jfearn.fedorapeople.org/en-US/Publican/2.7/html/Users_Guide/chap-Users_Guide-Creating_a_document.html
54 <subjectset scheme=
"libraryofcongress">
56 <subjectterm>Intellectual property
—United States.
</subjectterm>
59 <subjectterm>Mass media
—United States.
</subjectterm>
62 <subjectterm>Technological innovations
—United States.
</subjectterm>
65 <subjectterm>Art
—United States.
</subjectterm>
71 <publishername>Petter Reinholdtsen
</publishername>
72 <address><city>Oslo
</city></address>
77 <holder>Lawrence Lessig
</holder>
83 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cc.png" contentdepth=
"3em" width=
"100%" align=
"center"/>
86 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cc.svg" contentdepth=
"3em" width=
"100%" align=
"center"/>
89 <phrase>Creative Commons, Some rights reserved
</phrase>
95 This book is licensed under a Creative Commons license. This license
96 permits non-commercial use of this work, so long as attribution is
97 given. For more information about the license visit
98 <ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/"/>.
103 <title>About the author
</title>
106 (
<ulink url=
"http://www.lessig.org">http://www.lessig.org
</ulink>),
107 professor of law and a Roy L. Furman Professor of Law and Leadership
108 at Harvard Law School, is founder of the Stanford Center for Internet
109 and Society and is chairman of the Creative Commons
110 (
<ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org">http://creativecommons.org
</ulink>).
111 The author of The Future of Ideas (Random House,
2001) and Code: And
112 Other Laws of Cyberspace (Basic Books,
1999), Lessig is a member of
113 the boards of the Public Library of Science, the Electronic Frontier
114 Foundation, and Public Knowledge. He was the winner of the Free
115 Software Foundation's Award for the Advancement of Free Software,
116 twice listed in BusinessWeek's
<quote>e.biz
25,
</quote> and named one
117 of Scientific American's
<quote>50 visionaries.
</quote> A graduate of
118 the University of Pennsylvania, Cambridge University, and Yale Law
119 School, Lessig clerked for Judge Richard Posner of the U.S. Seventh
120 Circuit Court of Appeals.
124 <!-- testing different ways to tag the cover page -->
125 <mediaobject role=
"cover">
126 <imageobject remap=
"lrg" role=
"front-large">
127 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cover.png" format=
"PNG" width=
"444" />
130 <imageobject remap="s" role="front">
131 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
133 <imageobject remap="xs" role="front-small">
134 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
136 <imageobject remap="cs" role="thumbnail">
137 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
142 <biblioid class=
"isbn">978-
82-
8067-
010-
6</biblioid>
145 http://catalog.loc.gov/cgi-bin/Pwebrecon.cgi?v3=1&DB=local&CMD=010a+2003063276&CNT=10+records+per+page
147 <biblioid class=
"libraryofcongress">2003063276</biblioid>
149 <biblioid class=
"uri">http://free-culture.cc/
</biblioid>
152 <!-- PAGE BREAK 3 -->
153 <dedication id=
"alsobylessig">
155 Also by Lawrence Lessig
162 The USA is lesterland: The nature of congressional corruption
166 Republic, lost: How money corrupts Congress - and a plan to stop it
170 Remix: Making art and commerce thrive in the hybrid economy
178 The Future of Ideas: The Fate of the Commons in a Connected World
182 Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace
186 <!-- PAGE BREAK 4 -->
187 <!-- PAGE BREAK 5 -->
188 <!-- PAGE BREAK 6 -->
189 <!-- PAGE BREAK 7 -->
190 <dedication><title></title>
191 <!-- FIXME figure out how to do this better in dblatex and docbook-xsl -->
192 <?latex {\Huge \centering
195 To Eric Eldred
— whose work first drew me to this cause, and for whom
198 <?latex } % \Huge \centering
205 <title>List of figures
</title>
212 1 CHAPTER ONE: Creators
213 1 CHAPTER TWO: "Mere Copyists"
214 1 CHAPTER THREE: Catalogs
215 1 CHAPTER FOUR: "Pirates"
220 1 CHAPTER FIVE: "Piracy"
224 1 CHAPTER SIX: Founders
225 1 CHAPTER SEVEN: Recorders
226 1 CHAPTER EIGHT: Transformers
227 1 CHAPTER NINE: Collectors
228 1 CHAPTER TEN: "Property"
229 2 Why Hollywood Is Right
233 2 Law and Architecture: Reach
234 2 Architecture and Law: Force
235 2 Market: Concentration
238 1 CHAPTER ELEVEN: Chimera
239 1 CHAPTER TWELVE: Harms
240 2 Constraining Creators
241 2 Constraining Innovators
242 2 Corrupting Citizens
244 1 CHAPTER THIRTEEN: Eldred
245 1 CHAPTER FOURTEEN: Eldred II
249 2 Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples
250 2 Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea
252 2 1. More Formalities
253 3 Registration and Renewal
256 2 3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use
257 2 4. Liberate the Music- -Again
258 2 5. Fire Lots of Lawyers 304
264 <!-- PAGE BREAK 11 -->
266 <preface id=
"preface">
267 <title>Preface
</title>
268 <indexterm id='idxpoguedavid' class='startofrange'
><primary>Pogue, David
</primary></indexterm>
270 <emphasis role=
"bold">At the end
</emphasis> of his review of my first
271 book,
<citetitle>Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace
</citetitle>, David
272 Pogue, a brilliant writer and author of countless technical and
273 computer-related texts, wrote this:
277 Unlike actual law, Internet software has no capacity to punish. It
278 doesn't affect people who aren't online (and only a tiny minority
279 of the world population is). And if you don't like the Internet's
280 system, you can always flip off the modem.
<footnote id=
"preface01"><para>
281 David Pogue,
<quote>Don't Just Chat, Do Something,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
30 January
2000.
286 Pogue was skeptical of the core argument of the book
—that
287 software, or
<quote>code,
</quote> functioned as a kind of law
—and his review
288 suggested the happy thought that if life in cyberspace got bad, we
289 could always
<quote>drizzle, drazzle, druzzle, drome
</quote>-like simply flip a
290 switch and be back home. Turn off the modem, unplug the computer, and
291 any troubles that exist in
<emphasis>that
</emphasis> space wouldn't
292 <quote>affect
</quote> us anymore.
295 Pogue might have been right in
1999—I'm skeptical, but maybe.
296 But even if he was right then, the point is not right now:
297 <citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is about the troubles the Internet
298 causes even after the modem is turned
300 off. It is an argument about how the battles that now rage regarding life
301 on-line have fundamentally affected
<quote>people who aren't online.
</quote> There
302 is no switch that will insulate us from the Internet's effect.
304 <indexterm startref='idxpoguedavid' class='endofrange'
/>
306 But unlike
<citetitle>Code
</citetitle>, the argument here is not much
307 about the Internet itself. It is instead about the consequence of the
308 Internet to a part of our tradition that is much more fundamental,
309 and, as hard as this is for a geek-wanna-be to admit, much more
313 That tradition is the way our culture gets made. As I explain in the
314 pages that follow, we come from a tradition of
<quote>free culture
</quote>—not
315 <quote>free
</quote> as in
<quote>free beer
</quote> (to borrow a phrase from the founder of the
316 free software movement
<footnote>
318 Richard M. Stallman,
<citetitle>Free Software, Free Societies
</citetitle> 57 (Joshua Gay, ed.
2002).
319 </para></footnote>), but
<quote>free
</quote> as in
<quote>free speech,
</quote> <quote>free markets,
</quote>
320 <quote>free trade,
</quote> <quote>free enterprise,
</quote> <quote>free will,
</quote> and
<quote>free elections.
</quote> A
321 free culture supports and protects creators and innovators. It does
322 this directly by granting intellectual property rights. But it does so
323 indirectly by limiting the reach of those rights, to guarantee that
324 follow-on creators and innovators remain
<emphasis>as free as
325 possible
</emphasis> from the control of the past. A free culture is
326 not a culture without property, just as a free market is not a market
327 in which everything is free. The opposite of a free culture is a
328 <quote>permission culture
</quote>—a culture in which creators get to create
329 only with the permission of the powerful, or of creators from the
333 If we understood this change, I believe we would resist it. Not
<quote>we
</quote>
334 on the Left or
<quote>you
</quote> on the Right, but we who have no stake in the
335 particular industries of culture that defined the twentieth century.
336 Whether you are on the Left or the Right, if you are in this sense
337 disinterested, then the story I tell here will trouble you. For the
338 changes I describe affect values that both sides of our political
339 culture deem fundamental.
341 <indexterm id='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='startofrange'
><primary>power, concentration of
</primary></indexterm>
342 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace
</primary></indexterm>
343 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
344 <indexterm><primary>Stevens, Ted
</primary></indexterm>
346 We saw a glimpse of this bipartisan outrage in the early summer of
347 2003. As the FCC considered changes in media ownership rules that
348 would relax limits on media concentration, an extraordinary coalition
349 generated more than
700,
000 letters to the FCC opposing the change.
350 As William Safire described marching
<quote>uncomfortably alongside CodePink
351 Women for Peace and the National Rifle Association, between liberal
352 Olympia Snowe and conservative Ted Stevens,
</quote> he formulated perhaps
353 most simply just what was at stake: the concentration of power. And as
358 Does that sound unconservative? Not to me. The concentration of
359 power
—political, corporate, media, cultural
—should be anathema to
360 conservatives. The diffusion of power through local control, thereby
361 encouraging individual participation, is the essence of federalism and
362 the greatest expression of democracy.
<footnote><para> William Safire,
363 <quote>The Great Media Gulp,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
22 May
2003.
364 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
369 This idea is an element of the argument of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle>, though my
370 focus is not just on the concentration of power produced by
371 concentrations in ownership, but more importantly, if because less
372 visibly, on the concentration of power produced by a radical change in
373 the effective scope of the law. The law is changing; that change is
374 altering the way our culture gets made; that change should worry
375 you
—whether or not you care about the Internet, and whether you're on
376 Safire's left or on his right.
378 <indexterm startref='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='endofrange'
/>
380 <emphasis role=
"strong">The inspiration
</emphasis> for the title and for
381 much of the argument of this book comes from the work of Richard
382 Stallman and the Free Software Foundation. Indeed, as I reread
383 Stallman's own work, especially the essays in
<citetitle>Free Software, Free
384 Society
</citetitle>, I realize that all of the theoretical insights I develop here
385 are insights Stallman described decades ago. One could thus well argue
386 that this work is
<quote>merely
</quote> derivative.
389 I accept that criticism, if indeed it is a criticism. The work of a
390 lawyer is always derivative, and I mean to do nothing more in this
391 book than to remind a culture about a tradition that has always been
392 its own. Like Stallman, I defend that tradition on the basis of
393 values. Like Stallman, I believe those are the values of freedom. And
394 like Stallman, I believe those are values of our past that will need
395 to be defended in our future. A free culture has been our past, but it
396 will only be our future if we change the path we are on right now.
399 Like Stallman's arguments for free software, an argument for free
400 culture stumbles on a confusion that is hard to avoid, and even harder
401 to understand. A free culture is not a culture without property; it is not
402 a culture in which artists don't get paid. A culture without property, or
403 in which creators can't get paid, is anarchy, not freedom. Anarchy is not
407 Instead, the free culture that I defend in this book is a balance
408 between anarchy and control. A free culture, like a free market, is
409 filled with property. It is filled with rules of property and contract
410 that get enforced by the state. But just as a free market is perverted
411 if its property becomes feudal, so too can a free culture be queered
412 by extremism in the property rights that define it. That is what I
413 fear about our culture today. It is against that extremism that this
418 <!-- PAGE BREAK 15 -->
420 <!-- PAGE BREAK 16 -->
421 <chapter label=
"" id=
"c-introduction">
422 <title>Introduction
</title>
423 <indexterm id='idxwrightbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
425 <emphasis role=
"strong">On December
17</emphasis>,
1903, on a windy North Carolina beach for just
426 shy of one hundred seconds, the Wright brothers demonstrated that a
427 heavier-than-air, self-propelled vehicle could fly. The moment was electric
428 and its importance widely understood. Almost immediately, there
429 was an explosion of interest in this newfound technology of manned
430 flight, and a gaggle of innovators began to build upon it.
432 <indexterm id='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>air traffic, land ownership vs.
</primary></indexterm>
433 <indexterm id='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='startofrange'
><primary>land ownership, air traffic and
</primary></indexterm>
434 <indexterm id='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
436 At the time the Wright brothers invented the airplane, American
437 law held that a property owner presumptively owned not just the surface
438 of his land, but all the land below, down to the center of the earth,
439 and all the space above, to
<quote>an indefinite extent, upwards.
</quote><footnote><para>
440 St. George Tucker,
<citetitle>Blackstone's Commentaries
</citetitle> 3 (South Hackensack, N.J.:
441 Rothman Reprints,
1969),
18.
444 years, scholars had puzzled about how best to interpret the idea that
445 rights in land ran to the heavens. Did that mean that you owned the
446 stars? Could you prosecute geese for their willful and regular trespass?
448 <indexterm startref='idxwrightbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
450 Then came airplanes, and for the first time, this principle of American
451 law
—deep within the foundations of our tradition, and acknowledged
452 by the most important legal thinkers of our past
—mattered. If
453 my land reaches to the heavens, what happens when United flies over
454 my field? Do I have the right to banish it from my property? Am I allowed
455 to enter into an exclusive license with Delta Airlines? Could we
456 set up an auction to decide how much these rights are worth?
458 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
459 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
461 In
1945, these questions became a federal case. When North Carolina
462 farmers Thomas Lee and Tinie Causby started losing chickens
463 because of low-flying military aircraft (the terrified chickens apparently
464 flew into the barn walls and died), the Causbys filed a lawsuit saying
465 that the government was trespassing on their land. The airplanes,
466 of course, never touched the surface of the Causbys' land. But if, as
467 Blackstone, Kent, and Coke had said, their land reached to
<quote>an indefinite
468 extent, upwards,
</quote> then the government was trespassing on their
469 property, and the Causbys wanted it to stop.
471 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
472 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
473 <indexterm id='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='startofrange'
><primary>Douglas, William O.
</primary></indexterm>
474 <indexterm id='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='startofrange'
><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on airspace vs. land rights
</secondary></indexterm>
476 The Supreme Court agreed to hear the Causbys' case. Congress had
477 declared the airways public, but if one's property really extended to the
478 heavens, then Congress's declaration could well have been an unconstitutional
479 <quote>taking
</quote> of property without compensation. The Court acknowledged
480 that
<quote>it is ancient doctrine that common law ownership of
481 the land extended to the periphery of the universe.
</quote> But Justice Douglas
482 had no patience for ancient doctrine. In a single paragraph, hundreds of
483 years of property law were erased. As he wrote for the Court,
487 [The] doctrine has no place in the modern world. The air is a
488 public highway, as Congress has declared. Were that not true,
489 every transcontinental flight would subject the operator to countless
490 trespass suits. Common sense revolts at the idea. To recognize
491 such private claims to the airspace would clog these highways,
492 seriously interfere with their control and development in the public
493 interest, and transfer into private ownership that to which only
494 the public has a just claim.
<footnote>
496 United States v. Causby, U.S.
328 (
1946):
256,
261. The Court did find
497 that there could be a
<quote>taking
</quote> if the government's use of its land
498 effectively destroyed the value of the Causbys' land. This example was
499 suggested to me by Keith Aoki's wonderful piece,
<quote>(Intellectual)
500 Property and Sovereignty: Notes Toward a Cultural Geography of
501 Authorship,
</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Law Review
</citetitle> 48 (
1996):
1293,
1333. See also Paul
502 Goldstein,
<citetitle>Real Property
</citetitle> (Mineola, N.Y.: Foundation Press,
1984),
504 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
505 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
510 <quote>Common sense revolts at the idea.
</quote>
512 <indexterm startref='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='endofrange'
/>
514 This is how the law usually works. Not often this abruptly or
515 impatiently, but eventually, this is how it works. It was Douglas's style not to
516 dither. Other justices would have blathered on for pages to reach the
518 conclusion that Douglas holds in a single line:
<quote>Common sense revolts
519 at the idea.
</quote> But whether it takes pages or a few words, it is the special
520 genius of a common law system, as ours is, that the law adjusts to the
521 technologies of the time. And as it adjusts, it changes. Ideas that were
522 as solid as rock in one age crumble in another.
524 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
525 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
526 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
528 Or at least, this is how things happen when there's no one powerful
529 on the other side of the change. The Causbys were just farmers. And
530 though there were no doubt many like them who were upset by the
531 growing traffic in the air (though one hopes not many chickens flew
532 themselves into walls), the Causbys of the world would find it very
533 hard to unite and stop the idea, and the technology, that the Wright
534 brothers had birthed. The Wright brothers spat airplanes into the
535 technological meme pool; the idea then spread like a virus in a chicken
536 coop; farmers like the Causbys found themselves surrounded by
<quote>what
537 seemed reasonable
</quote> given the technology that the Wrights had produced.
538 They could stand on their farms, dead chickens in hand, and
539 shake their fists at these newfangled technologies all they wanted.
540 They could call their representatives or even file a lawsuit. But in the
541 end, the force of what seems
<quote>obvious
</quote> to everyone else
—the power of
542 <quote>common sense
</quote>—would prevail. Their
<quote>private interest
</quote> would not be
543 allowed to defeat an obvious public gain.
545 <indexterm startref='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='endofrange'
/>
546 <indexterm startref='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='endofrange'
/>
547 <indexterm startref='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='endofrange'
/>
548 <indexterm startref='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='endofrange'
/>
549 <indexterm id='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='startofrange'
><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
550 <indexterm><primary>Bell, Alexander Graham
</primary></indexterm>
551 <indexterm><primary>Edison, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
552 <indexterm><primary>Faraday, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
553 <indexterm id='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='startofrange'
><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>FM spectrum of
</secondary></indexterm>
555 <emphasis role='strong'
>Edwin Howard Armstrong
</emphasis> is one of
556 America's forgotten inventor geniuses. He came to the great American
557 inventor scene just after the titans Thomas Edison and Alexander
558 Graham Bell. But his work in the area of radio technology was perhaps
559 the most important of any single inventor in the first fifty years of
560 radio. He was better educated than Michael Faraday, who as a
561 bookbinder's apprentice had discovered electric induction in
1831. But
562 he had the same intuition about how the world of radio worked, and on
563 at least three occasions, Armstrong invented profoundly important
564 technologies that advanced our understanding of radio.
565 <!-- PAGE BREAK 19 -->
568 On the day after Christmas,
1933, four patents were issued to Armstrong
569 for his most significant invention
—FM radio. Until then, consumer radio
570 had been amplitude-modulated (AM) radio. The theorists
571 of the day had said that frequency-modulated (FM) radio could never
572 work. They were right about FM radio in a narrow band of spectrum.
573 But Armstrong discovered that frequency-modulated radio in a wide
574 band of spectrum would deliver an astonishing fidelity of sound, with
575 much less transmitter power and static.
578 On November
5,
1935, he demonstrated the technology at a meeting of
579 the Institute of Radio Engineers at the Empire State Building in New
580 York City. He tuned his radio dial across a range of AM stations,
581 until the radio locked on a broadcast that he had arranged from
582 seventeen miles away. The radio fell totally silent, as if dead, and
583 then with a clarity no one else in that room had ever heard from an
584 electrical device, it produced the sound of an announcer's voice:
585 <quote>This is amateur station W2AG at Yonkers, New York, operating on
586 frequency modulation at two and a half meters.
</quote>
589 The audience was hearing something no one had thought possible:
593 A glass of water was poured before the microphone in Yonkers; it
594 sounded like a glass of water being poured.
… A paper was crumpled
595 and torn; it sounded like paper and not like a crackling forest
596 fire.
… Sousa marches were played from records and a piano solo
597 and guitar number were performed.
… The music was projected with a
598 live-ness rarely if ever heard before from a radio
<quote>music
599 box.
</quote><footnote><para>
600 Lawrence Lessing,
<citetitle>Man of High Fidelity: Edwin Howard Armstrong
</citetitle>
601 (Philadelphia: J. B. Lipincott Company,
1956),
209.
605 <indexterm id='idxrca' class='startofrange'
><primary>RCA
</primary></indexterm>
606 <indexterm id='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in
</secondary></indexterm>
608 As our own common sense tells us, Armstrong had discovered a vastly
609 superior radio technology. But at the time of his invention, Armstrong
610 was working for RCA. RCA was the dominant player in the then dominant
611 AM radio market. By
1935, there were a thousand radio stations across
612 the United States, but the stations in large cities were all owned by
613 a handful of networks.
616 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David
</primary></indexterm>
618 RCA's president, David Sarnoff, a friend of Armstrong's, was eager
619 that Armstrong discover a way to remove static from AM radio. So
620 Sarnoff was quite excited when Armstrong told him he had a device
621 that removed static from
<quote>radio.
</quote> But when Armstrong demonstrated
622 his invention, Sarnoff was not pleased.
626 I thought Armstrong would invent some kind of a filter to remove
627 static from our AM radio. I didn't think he'd start a
628 revolution
— start up a whole damn new industry to compete with
629 RCA.
<footnote><para> See
<quote>Saints: The Heroes and Geniuses of the
630 Electronic Era,
</quote> First Electronic Church of America, at
631 www.webstationone.com/fecha, available at
633 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
1</ulink>.
637 <indexterm id='idxfmradio' class='startofrange'
><primary>FM radio
</primary></indexterm>
638 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David
</primary></indexterm>
640 Armstrong's invention threatened RCA's AM empire, so the company
641 launched a campaign to smother FM radio. While FM may have been a
642 superior technology, Sarnoff was a superior tactician. As one author
645 <indexterm id='idxlessinglawrence' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessing, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
648 The forces for FM, largely engineering, could not overcome the weight
649 of strategy devised by the sales, patent, and legal offices to subdue
650 this threat to corporate position. For FM, if allowed to develop
651 unrestrained, posed
… a complete reordering of radio power
652 … and the eventual overthrow of the carefully restricted AM system
653 on which RCA had grown to power.
<footnote><para>Lessing,
226.
657 <indexterm id='idxfcconfmradio' class='startofrange'
><primary>FCC
</primary><secondary>on FM radio
</secondary></indexterm>
659 RCA at first kept the technology in house, insisting that further
660 tests were needed. When, after two years of testing, Armstrong grew
661 impatient, RCA began to use its power with the government to stall
662 FM radio's deployment generally. In
1936, RCA hired the former head
663 of the FCC and assigned him the task of assuring that the FCC assign
664 spectrum in a way that would castrate FM
—principally by moving FM
665 radio to a different band of spectrum. At first, these efforts failed. But
666 when Armstrong and the nation were distracted by World War II,
667 RCA's work began to be more successful. Soon after the war ended, the
668 FCC announced a set of policies that would have one clear effect: FM
669 radio would be crippled. As Lawrence Lessing described it,
671 <!-- PAGE BREAK 21 -->
674 The series of body blows that FM radio received right after the
675 war, in a series of rulings manipulated through the FCC by the
676 big radio interests, were almost incredible in their force and
677 deviousness.
<footnote><para>
682 <indexterm startref='idxlessinglawrence' class='endofrange'
/>
683 <indexterm><primary>AT
&T
</primary></indexterm>
685 To make room in the spectrum for RCA's latest gamble, television,
686 FM radio users were to be moved to a totally new spectrum band. The
687 power of FM radio stations was also cut, meaning FM could no longer
688 be used to beam programs from one part of the country to another.
689 (This change was strongly supported by AT
&T, because the loss of
690 FM relaying stations would mean radio stations would have to buy
691 wired links from AT
&T.) The spread of FM radio was thus choked, at
694 <indexterm startref='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='endofrange'
/>
695 <indexterm startref='idxfcconfmradio' class='endofrange'
/>
697 Armstrong resisted RCA's efforts. In response, RCA resisted
698 Armstrong's patents. After incorporating FM technology into the
699 emerging standard for television, RCA declared the patents
700 invalid
—baselessly, and almost fifteen years after they were
701 issued. It thus refused to pay him royalties. For six years, Armstrong
702 fought an expensive war of litigation to defend the patents. Finally,
703 just as the patents expired, RCA offered a settlement so low that it
704 would not even cover Armstrong's lawyers' fees. Defeated, broken, and
705 now broke, in
1954 Armstrong wrote a short note to his wife and then
706 stepped out of a thirteenth-story window to his death.
708 <indexterm startref='idxfmradio' class='endofrange'
/>
709 <indexterm startref='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='endofrange'
/>
710 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
711 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
713 This is how the law sometimes works. Not often this tragically, and
714 rarely with heroic drama, but sometimes, this is how it works. From
715 the beginning, government and government agencies have been subject to
716 capture. They are more likely captured when a powerful interest is
717 threatened by either a legal or technical change. That powerful
718 interest too often exerts its influence within the government to get
719 the government to protect it. The rhetoric of this protection is of
720 course always public spirited; the reality is something
721 different. Ideas that were as solid as rock in one age, but that, left
722 to themselves, would crumble in
724 another, are sustained through this subtle corruption of our political
725 process. RCA had what the Causbys did not: the power to stifle the
726 effect of technological change.
728 <indexterm startref='idxrca' class='endofrange'
/>
729 <indexterm startref='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='endofrange'
/>
730 <indexterm id='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
732 <emphasis role=
"strong">There's no
</emphasis> single inventor of the Internet. Nor is there any good date
733 upon which to mark its birth. Yet in a very short time, the Internet
734 has become part of ordinary American life. According to the Pew
735 Internet and American Life Project,
58 percent of Americans had access
736 to the Internet in
2002, up from
49 percent two years
737 before.
<footnote><para>
738 Amanda Lenhart,
<quote>The Ever-Shifting Internet Population: A New Look at
739 Internet Access and the Digital Divide,
</quote> Pew Internet and American
740 Life Project,
15 April
2003:
6, available at
741 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
2</ulink>.
743 That number could well exceed two thirds of the nation by the end
747 As the Internet has been integrated into ordinary life, it has
748 changed things. Some of these changes are technical
—the Internet has
749 made communication faster, it has lowered the cost of gathering data,
750 and so on. These technical changes are not the focus of this book. They
751 are important. They are not well understood. But they are the sort of
752 thing that would simply go away if we all just switched the Internet off.
753 They don't affect people who don't use the Internet, or at least they
754 don't affect them directly. They are the proper subject of a book about
755 the Internet. But this is not a book about the Internet.
758 Instead, this book is about an effect of the Internet beyond the
759 Internet itself: an effect upon how culture is made. My claim is that
760 the Internet has induced an important and unrecognized change in that
761 process. That change will radically transform a tradition that is as
762 old as the Republic itself. Most, if they recognized this change,
763 would reject it. Yet most don't even see the change that the Internet
766 <indexterm startref='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
767 <indexterm><primary>Barlow, Joel
</primary></indexterm>
768 <indexterm id='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='startofrange'
><primary>culture
</primary><secondary>commercial vs. noncommercial
</secondary></indexterm>
769 <indexterm><primary>Webster, Noah
</primary></indexterm>
771 We can glimpse a sense of this change by distinguishing between
772 commercial and noncommercial culture, and by mapping the law's
773 regulation of each. By
<quote>commercial culture
</quote> I mean that part of our
774 culture that is produced and sold or produced to be sold. By
775 <quote>noncommercial culture
</quote> I mean all the rest. When old men sat around
777 <!-- PAGE BREAK 23 -->
778 street corners telling stories that kids and others consumed, that was
779 noncommercial culture. When Noah Webster published his
<quote>Reader,
</quote> or
780 Joel Barlow his poetry, that was commercial culture.
783 At the beginning of our history, and for just about the whole of our
784 tradition, noncommercial culture was essentially unregulated. Of
785 course, if your stories were lewd, or if your song disturbed the
786 peace, then the law might intervene. But the law was never directly
787 concerned with the creation or spread of this form of culture, and it
788 left this culture
<quote>free.
</quote> The ordinary ways in which ordinary
789 individuals shared and transformed their culture
—telling
790 stories, reenacting scenes from plays or TV, participating in fan
791 clubs, sharing music, making tapes
—were left alone by the law.
793 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>commercial creativity as primary purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
795 The focus of the law was on commercial creativity. At first slightly,
796 then quite extensively, the law protected the incentives of creators by
797 granting them exclusive rights to their creative work, so that they could
798 sell those exclusive rights in a commercial
799 marketplace.
<footnote>
801 This is not the only purpose of copyright, though it is the overwhelmingly
802 primary purpose of the copyright established in the federal constitution.
803 State copyright law historically protected not just the commercial interest in
804 publication, but also a privacy interest. By granting authors the exclusive
805 right to first publication, state copyright law gave authors the power to
806 control the spread of facts about them. See Samuel D. Warren and Louis
807 D. Brandeis,
<quote>The Right to Privacy,
</quote> Harvard Law Review
4 (
1890):
193,
809 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
811 This is also, of course, an important part of creativity and culture,
812 and it has become an increasingly important part in America. But in no
813 sense was it dominant within our tradition. It was instead just one
814 part, a controlled part, balanced with the free.
816 <indexterm><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary> permission culture vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
817 <indexterm><primary>permission culture
</primary><secondary> free culture vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
819 This rough divide between the free and the controlled has now
820 been erased.
<footnote><para>
821 See Jessica Litman,
<citetitle>Digital Copyright
</citetitle> (New York: Prometheus Books,
823 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica
</primary></indexterm>
825 The Internet has set the stage for this erasure and, pushed by big
826 media, the law has now affected it. For the first time in our
827 tradition, the ordinary ways in which individuals create and share
828 culture fall within the reach of the regulation of the law, which has
829 expanded to draw within its control a vast amount of culture and
830 creativity that it never reached before. The technology that preserved
831 the balance of our history
—between uses of our culture that were
832 free and uses of our culture that were only upon permission
—has
833 been undone. The consequence is that we are less and less a free
834 culture, more and more a permission culture.
836 <!-- PAGE BREAK 24 -->
837 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
838 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
839 <indexterm><primary>protection of artists vs. business interests
</primary></indexterm>
841 This change gets justified as necessary to protect commercial
842 creativity. And indeed, protectionism is precisely its
843 motivation. But the protectionism that justifies the changes that I
844 will describe below is not the limited and balanced sort that has
845 defined the law in the past. This is not a protectionism to protect
846 artists. It is instead a protectionism to protect certain forms of
847 business. Corporations threatened by the potential of the Internet to
848 change the way both commercial and noncommercial culture are made and
849 shared have united to induce lawmakers to use the law to protect
850 them. It is the story of RCA and Armstrong; it is the dream of the
853 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='endofrange'
/>
855 For the Internet has unleashed an extraordinary possibility for many
856 to participate in the process of building and cultivating a culture
857 that reaches far beyond local boundaries. That power has changed the
858 marketplace for making and cultivating culture generally, and that
859 change in turn threatens established content industries. The Internet
860 is thus to the industries that built and distributed content in the
861 twentieth century what FM radio was to AM radio, or what the truck was
862 to the railroad industry of the nineteenth century: the beginning of
863 the end, or at least a substantial transformation. Digital
864 technologies, tied to the Internet, could produce a vastly more
865 competitive and vibrant market for building and cultivating culture;
866 that market could include a much wider and more diverse range of
867 creators; those creators could produce and distribute a much more
868 vibrant range of creativity; and depending upon a few important
869 factors, those creators could earn more on average from this system
870 than creators do today
—all so long as the RCAs of our day don't
871 use the law to protect themselves against this competition.
874 Yet, as I argue in the pages that follow, that is precisely what is
875 happening in our culture today. These modern-day equivalents of the
876 early twentieth-century radio or nineteenth-century railroads are
877 using their power to get the law to protect them against this new,
878 more efficient, more vibrant technology for building culture. They are
879 succeeding in their plan to remake the Internet before the Internet
882 <indexterm startref='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='endofrange'
/>
883 <indexterm><primary>Valenti, Jack
</primary><secondary> on creative property rights
</secondary></indexterm>
885 It doesn't seem this way to many. The battles over copyright and the
886 <!-- PAGE BREAK 25 -->
887 Internet seem remote to most. To the few who follow them, they seem
888 mainly about a much simpler brace of questions
—whether
<quote>piracy
</quote> will
889 be permitted, and whether
<quote>property
</quote> will be protected. The
<quote>war
</quote> that
890 has been waged against the technologies of the Internet
—what
891 Motion Picture Association of America (MPAA) president Jack Valenti
892 calls his
<quote>own terrorist war
</quote><footnote><para>
893 Amy Harmon,
<quote>Black Hawk Download: Moving Beyond Music, Pirates
894 Use New Tools to Turn the Net into an Illicit Video Club,
</quote> <citetitle>New York
895 Times
</citetitle>,
17 January
2002.
896 </para></footnote>—has been framed as a battle about the
897 rule of law and respect for property. To know which side to take in this
898 war, most think that we need only decide whether we're for property or
902 If those really were the choices, then I would be with Jack Valenti
903 and the content industry. I, too, am a believer in property, and
904 especially in the importance of what Mr. Valenti nicely calls
905 <quote>creative property.
</quote> I believe that
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong, and that the
906 law, properly tuned, should punish
<quote>piracy,
</quote> whether on or off the
910 But those simple beliefs mask a much more fundamental question
911 and a much more dramatic change. My fear is that unless we come to see
912 this change, the war to rid the world of Internet
<quote>pirates
</quote> will also rid our
913 culture of values that have been integral to our tradition from the start.
915 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
916 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as protection of creators
</secondary></indexterm>
917 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
918 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
920 These values built a tradition that, for at least the first
180 years of
921 our Republic, guaranteed creators the right to build freely upon their
922 past, and protected creators and innovators from either state or private
923 control. The First Amendment protected creators against state control.
924 And as Professor Neil Netanel powerfully argues,
<footnote>
926 Neil W. Netanel,
<quote>Copyright and a Democratic Civil Society,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
927 Journal
</citetitle> 106 (
1996):
283.
928 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
930 copyright law, properly balanced, protected creators against private
931 control. Our tradition was thus neither Soviet nor the tradition of
932 patrons. It instead carved out a wide berth within which creators
933 could cultivate and extend our culture.
936 Yet the law's response to the Internet, when tied to changes in the
937 technology of the Internet itself, has massively increased the
938 effective regulation of creativity in America. To build upon or
939 critique the culture around us one must ask, Oliver Twist
–like,
940 for permission first. Permission is, of course, often
941 granted
—but it is not often granted to the critical or the
942 independent. We have built a kind of cultural nobility; those within
943 the noble class live easily; those outside it don't. But it is
944 nobility of any form that is alien to our tradition.
946 <!-- PAGE BREAK 26. FIXME: Ask author if "Is it" should be "It is" ? -->
948 The story that follows is about this war. It is not about the
949 <quote>centrality of technology
</quote> to ordinary life. I don't believe in gods,
950 digital or otherwise. Nor is it an effort to demonize any individual
951 or group, for neither do I believe in a devil, corporate or
952 otherwise. It is not a morality tale. Nor is it a call to jihad
956 It is instead an effort to understand a hopelessly destructive war
957 inspired by the technologies of the Internet but reaching far beyond
958 its code. And by understanding this battle, it is an effort to map
959 peace. There is no good reason for the current struggle around
960 Internet technologies to continue. There will be great harm to our
961 tradition and culture if it is allowed to continue unchecked. We must
962 come to understand the source of this war. We must resolve it soon.
964 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
965 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
966 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary></indexterm>
968 <emphasis role=
"strong">Like the Causbys'
</emphasis> battle, this war is, in part, about
<quote>property.
</quote> The
969 property of this war is not as tangible as the Causbys', and no
970 innocent chicken has yet to lose its life. Yet the ideas surrounding
971 this
<quote>property
</quote> are as obvious to most as the Causbys' claim about the
972 sacredness of their farm was to them. We are the Causbys. Most of us
973 take for granted the extraordinarily powerful claims that the owners
974 of
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> now assert. Most of us, like the Causbys,
975 treat these claims as obvious. And hence we, like the Causbys, object
976 when a new technology interferes with this property. It is as plain to
977 us as it was to them that the new technologies of the Internet are
978 <quote>trespassing
</quote> upon legitimate claims of
<quote>property.
</quote> It is as plain to
979 us as it was to them that the law should intervene to stop this
982 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
983 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
984 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
986 And thus, when geeks and technologists defend their Armstrong or
987 Wright brothers technology, most of us are simply unsympathetic.
988 Common sense does not revolt. Unlike in the case of the unlucky
989 Causbys, common sense is on the side of the property owners in this
992 the lucky Wright brothers, the Internet has not inspired a revolution
995 <indexterm><primary>power, concentration of
</primary></indexterm>
997 My hope is to push this common sense along. I have become increasingly
998 amazed by the power of this idea of intellectual property and, more
999 importantly, its power to disable critical thought by policy makers
1000 and citizens. There has never been a time in our history when more of
1001 our
<quote>culture
</quote> was as
<quote>owned
</quote> as it is now. And yet there has never
1002 been a time when the concentration of power to control the
1003 <emphasis>uses
</emphasis> of culture has been as unquestioningly
1004 accepted as it is now.
1007 The puzzle is, Why? Is it because we have come to understand a truth
1008 about the value and importance of absolute property over ideas and
1009 culture? Is it because we have discovered that our tradition of
1010 rejecting such an absolute claim was wrong?
1013 Or is it because the idea of absolute property over ideas and culture
1014 benefits the RCAs of our time and fits our own unreflective intuitions?
1017 Is the radical shift away from our tradition of free culture an instance
1018 of America correcting a mistake from its past, as we did after a bloody
1019 war with slavery, and as we are slowly doing with inequality? Or is the
1020 radical shift away from our tradition of free culture yet another example
1021 of a political system captured by a few powerful special interests?
1024 Does common sense lead to the extremes on this question because common
1025 sense actually believes in these extremes? Or does common sense stand
1026 silent in the face of these extremes because, as with Armstrong versus
1027 RCA, the more powerful side has ensured that it has the more powerful
1030 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
1031 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
1033 I don't mean to be mysterious. My own views are resolved. I believe it
1034 was right for common sense to revolt against the extremism of the
1035 Causbys. I believe it would be right for common sense to revolt
1036 against the extreme claims made today on behalf of
<quote>intellectual
1037 property.
</quote> What the law demands today is increasingly as silly as a
1038 sheriff arresting an airplane for trespass. But the consequences of
1039 this silliness will be much more profound.
1040 <!-- PAGE BREAK 28 -->
1042 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='endofrange'
/>
1044 <emphasis role=
"strong">The struggle
</emphasis> that rages just now centers on two ideas:
<quote>piracy
</quote> and
1045 <quote>property.
</quote> My aim in this book's next two parts is to explore these two
1049 My method is not the usual method of an academic. I don't want to
1050 plunge you into a complex argument, buttressed with references to
1051 obscure French theorists
—however natural that is for the weird
1052 sort we academics have become. Instead I begin in each part with a
1053 collection of stories that set a context within which these apparently
1054 simple ideas can be more fully understood.
1057 The two sections set up the core claim of this book: that while the
1058 Internet has indeed produced something fantastic and new, our
1059 government, pushed by big media to respond to this
<quote>something new,
</quote> is
1060 destroying something very old. Rather than understanding the changes
1061 the Internet might permit, and rather than taking time to let
<quote>common
1062 sense
</quote> resolve how best to respond, we are allowing those most
1063 threatened by the changes to use their power to change the
1064 law
—and more importantly, to use their power to change something
1065 fundamental about who we have always been.
1068 We allow this, I believe, not because it is right, and not because
1069 most of us really believe in these changes. We allow it because the
1070 interests most threatened are among the most powerful players in our
1071 depressingly compromised process of making law. This book is the story
1072 of one more consequence of this form of corruption
—a consequence
1073 to which most of us remain oblivious.
1076 <!-- PAGE BREAK 29 -->
1077 <part id=
"c-piracy">
1078 <title><quote>Piracy
</quote></title>
1080 <!-- PAGE BREAK 30 -->
1081 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>English
</secondary></indexterm>
1082 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord
</primary></indexterm>
1083 <indexterm><primary>music publishing
</primary></indexterm>
1084 <indexterm><primary>sheet music
</primary></indexterm>
1086 <emphasis role=
"strong">Since the inception
</emphasis> of the law regulating creative property, there has
1087 been a war against
<quote>piracy.
</quote> The precise contours of this concept,
1088 <quote>piracy,
</quote> are hard to sketch, but the animating injustice is easy to
1089 capture. As Lord Mansfield wrote in a case that extended the reach of
1090 English copyright law to include sheet music,
1094 A person may use the copy by playing it, but he has no right to
1095 rob the author of the profit, by multiplying copies and disposing
1096 of them for his own use.
<footnote><para>
1098 <citetitle>Bach
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Longman
</citetitle>,
98 Eng. Rep.
1274 (
1777) (Mansfield).
1101 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='endofrange'
/>
1103 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary> efficient content distribution on
</secondary></indexterm>
1104 <indexterm id='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='startofrange'
><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>efficiency of
</secondary></indexterm>
1106 Today we are in the middle of another
<quote>war
</quote> against
<quote>piracy.
</quote> The
1107 Internet has provoked this war. The Internet makes possible the
1108 efficient spread of content. Peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing is among
1109 the most efficient of the efficient technologies the Internet
1110 enables. Using distributed intelligence, p2p systems facilitate the
1111 easy spread of content in a way unimagined a generation ago.
1112 <!-- PAGE BREAK 31 -->
1115 This efficiency does not respect the traditional lines of copyright.
1116 The network doesn't discriminate between the sharing of copyrighted
1117 and uncopyrighted content. Thus has there been a vast amount of
1118 sharing of copyrighted content. That sharing in turn has excited the
1119 war, as copyright owners fear the sharing will
<quote>rob the author of the
1122 <indexterm startref='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='endofrange'
/>
1124 The warriors have turned to the courts, to the legislatures, and
1125 increasingly to technology to defend their
<quote>property
</quote> against this
1126 <quote>piracy.
</quote> A generation of Americans, the warriors warn, is being
1127 raised to believe that
<quote>property
</quote> should be
<quote>free.
</quote> Forget tattoos,
1128 never mind body piercing
—our kids are becoming
1129 <emphasis>thieves
</emphasis>!
1132 There's no doubt that
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong, and that pirates should be
1133 punished. But before we summon the executioners, we should put this
1134 notion of
<quote>piracy
</quote> in some context. For as the concept is increasingly
1135 used, at its core is an extraordinary idea that is almost certainly wrong.
1138 The idea goes something like this:
1142 Creative work has value; whenever I use, or take, or build upon
1143 the creative work of others, I am taking from them something of
1144 value. Whenever I take something of value from someone else, I
1145 should have their permission. The taking of something of value
1146 from someone else without permission is wrong. It is a form of
1150 <indexterm><primary>ASCAP
</primary></indexterm>
1151 <indexterm><primary>Dreyfuss, Rochelle
</primary></indexterm>
1152 <indexterm><primary>Girl Scouts
</primary></indexterm>
1153 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory of
</secondary></indexterm>
1154 <indexterm id='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='startofrange'
><primary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory
</primary></indexterm>
1156 This view runs deep within the current debates. It is what NYU law
1157 professor Rochelle Dreyfuss criticizes as the
<quote>if value, then right
</quote>
1158 theory of creative property
<footnote><para>
1160 See Rochelle Dreyfuss,
<quote>Expressive Genericity: Trademarks as Language
1161 in the Pepsi Generation,
</quote> <citetitle>Notre Dame Law Review
</citetitle> 65 (
1990):
397.
1163 —if there is value, then someone must have a
1164 right to that value. It is the perspective that led a composers' rights
1165 organization, ASCAP, to sue the Girl Scouts for failing to pay for the
1166 songs that girls sang around Girl Scout campfires.
<footnote><para>
1168 Lisa Bannon,
<quote>The Birds May Sing, but Campers Can't Unless They Pay
1169 Up,
</quote> <citetitle>Wall Street Journal
</citetitle>,
21 August
1996, available at
1170 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
3</ulink>; Jonathan
1171 Zittrain,
<quote>Calling Off the Copyright War: In Battle of Property vs. Free
1172 Speech, No One Wins,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
24 November
2002.
1173 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
1175 There was
<quote>value
</quote> (the songs) so there must have been a
1176 <quote>right
</quote>—even against the Girl Scouts.
1178 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='endofrange'
/>
1180 This idea is certainly a possible understanding of how creative
1181 property should work. It might well be a possible design for a system
1182 <!-- PAGE BREAK 32 -->
1183 of law protecting creative property. But the
<quote>if value, then right
</quote>
1184 theory of creative property has never been America's theory of
1185 creative property. It has never taken hold within our law.
1187 <indexterm startref='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='endofrange'
/>
1188 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
1189 <indexterm id='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>legal restrictions on
</secondary></indexterm>
1191 Instead, in our tradition, intellectual property is an instrument. It
1192 sets the groundwork for a richly creative society but remains
1193 subservient to the value of creativity. The current debate has this
1194 turned around. We have become so concerned with protecting the
1195 instrument that we are losing sight of the value.
1198 The source of this confusion is a distinction that the law no longer
1199 takes care to draw
—the distinction between republishing someone's
1200 work on the one hand and building upon or transforming that work on
1201 the other. Copyright law at its birth had only publishing as its concern;
1202 copyright law today regulates both.
1204 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='endofrange'
/>
1206 Before the technologies of the Internet, this conflation didn't matter
1207 all that much. The technologies of publishing were expensive; that
1208 meant the vast majority of publishing was commercial. Commercial
1209 entities could bear the burden of the law
—even the burden of the
1210 Byzantine complexity that copyright law has become. It was just one
1211 more expense of doing business.
1213 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>creativity impeded by
</secondary></indexterm>
1214 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
1215 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)
</primary></indexterm>
1217 But with the birth of the Internet, this natural limit to the reach of
1218 the law has disappeared. The law controls not just the creativity of
1219 commercial creators but effectively that of anyone. Although that
1220 expansion would not matter much if copyright law regulated only
1221 <quote>copying,
</quote> when the law regulates as broadly and obscurely as it does,
1222 the extension matters a lot. The burden of this law now vastly
1223 outweighs any original benefit
—certainly as it affects
1224 noncommercial creativity, and increasingly as it affects commercial
1225 creativity as well. Thus, as we'll see more clearly in the chapters
1226 below, the law's role is less and less to support creativity, and more
1227 and more to protect certain industries against competition. Just at
1228 the time digital technology could unleash an extraordinary range of
1229 commercial and noncommercial creativity, the law burdens this
1230 creativity with insanely complex and vague rules and with the threat
1231 of obscenely severe penalties. We may
1232 <!-- PAGE BREAK 33 -->
1233 be seeing, as Richard Florida writes, the
<quote>Rise of the Creative
1234 Class.
</quote><footnote>
1237 In
<citetitle>The Rise of the Creative Class
</citetitle> (New York:
1238 Basic Books,
2002), Richard Florida documents a shift in the nature of
1239 labor toward a labor of creativity. His work, however, doesn't
1240 directly address the legal conditions under which that creativity is
1241 enabled or stifled. I certainly agree with him about the importance
1242 and significance of this change, but I also believe the conditions
1243 under which it will be enabled are much more tenuous.
1245 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
1246 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)
</primary></indexterm>
1248 Unfortunately, we are also seeing an extraordinary rise of regulation of
1249 this creative class.
1251 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='endofrange'
/>
1253 These burdens make no sense in our tradition. We should begin by
1254 understanding that tradition a bit more and by placing in their proper
1255 context the current battles about behavior labeled
<quote>piracy.
</quote>
1259 <!-- PAGE BREAK 34 -->
1260 <chapter label=
"1" id=
"creators">
1261 <title>Chapter One: Creators
</title>
1262 <indexterm id='idxanimatedcartoons' class='startofrange'
><primary>animated cartoons
</primary></indexterm>
1263 <indexterm id='idxcartoonfilms' class='startofrange'
><primary>cartoon films
</primary></indexterm>
1264 <indexterm id='idxfilmsanimated' class='startofrange'
><primary>films
</primary><secondary>animated
</secondary></indexterm>
1265 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatwillie' class='startofrange'
><primary>Steamboat Willie
</primary></indexterm>
1266 <indexterm id='idxmickeymouse' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mickey Mouse
</primary></indexterm>
1268 <emphasis role=
"strong">In
1928</emphasis>, a cartoon character was born. An early Mickey Mouse
1269 made his debut in May of that year, in a silent flop called
<citetitle>Plane Crazy
</citetitle>.
1270 In November, in New York City's Colony Theater, in the first widely
1271 distributed cartoon synchronized with sound,
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle> brought
1272 to life the character that would become Mickey Mouse.
1274 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1276 Synchronized sound had been introduced to film a year earlier in the
1277 movie
<citetitle>The Jazz Singer
</citetitle>. That success led Walt Disney to copy the
1278 technique and mix sound with cartoons. No one knew whether it would
1279 work or, if it did work, whether it would win an audience. But when
1280 Disney ran a test in the summer of
1928, the results were unambiguous.
1281 As Disney describes that first experiment,
1285 A couple of my boys could read music, and one of them could play
1286 a mouth organ. We put them in a room where they could not see
1287 the screen and arranged to pipe their sound into the room where
1288 our wives and friends were going to see the picture.
1289 <!-- PAGE BREAK 35 -->
1292 The boys worked from a music and sound-effects score. After several
1293 false starts, sound and action got off with the gun. The mouth
1294 organist played the tune, the rest of us in the sound department
1295 bammed tin pans and blew slide whistles on the beat. The
1296 synchronization was pretty close.
1299 The effect on our little audience was nothing less than electric.
1300 They responded almost instinctively to this union of sound and
1301 motion. I thought they were kidding me. So they put me in the audience
1302 and ran the action again. It was terrible, but it was wonderful! And
1303 it was something new!
<footnote><para>
1305 Leonard Maltin,
<citetitle>Of Mice and Magic: A History of American Animated
1306 Cartoons
</citetitle> (New York: Penguin Books,
1987),
34–35.
1310 <indexterm><primary>Iwerks, Ub
</primary></indexterm>
1312 Disney's then partner, and one of animation's most extraordinary
1313 talents, Ub Iwerks, put it more strongly:
<quote>I have never been so thrilled
1314 in my life. Nothing since has ever equaled it.
</quote>
1317 Disney had created something very new, based upon something relatively
1318 new. Synchronized sound brought life to a form of creativity that had
1319 rarely
—except in Disney's hands
—been anything more than
1320 filler for other films. Throughout animation's early history, it was
1321 Disney's invention that set the standard that others struggled to
1322 match. And quite often, Disney's great genius, his spark of
1323 creativity, was built upon the work of others.
1325 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt' class='endofrange'
/>
1326 <indexterm id='idxkeatonbuster' class='startofrange'
><primary>Keaton, Buster
</primary></indexterm>
1327 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='startofrange'
><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1329 This much is familiar. What you might not know is that
1928 also marks
1330 another important transition. In that year, a comic (as opposed to
1331 cartoon) genius created his last independently produced silent film.
1332 That genius was Buster Keaton. The film was
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>.
1335 Keaton was born into a vaudeville family in
1895. In the era of silent
1336 film, he had mastered using broad physical comedy as a way to spark
1337 uncontrollable laughter from his audience.
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1338 Jr
</citetitle>. was a classic of this form, famous among film buffs for its
1339 incredible stunts. The film was classic Keaton
—wildly popular
1340 and among the best of its genre.
1342 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1343 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1345 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>. appeared before Disney's cartoon Steamboat
1347 <!-- PAGE BREAK 36 -->
1348 The coincidence of titles is not coincidental. Steamboat Willie is a
1349 direct cartoon parody of Steamboat Bill,
<footnote><para>
1351 I am grateful to David Gerstein and his careful history, described at
1352 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
4</ulink>.
1353 According to Dave Smith of the Disney Archives, Disney paid royalties to
1354 use the music for five songs in
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle>:
<quote>Steamboat Bill,
</quote> <quote>The
1355 Simpleton
</quote> (Delille),
<quote>Mischief Makers
</quote> (Carbonara),
<quote>Joyful Hurry No.
1</quote>
1356 (Baron), and
<quote>Gawky Rube
</quote> (Lakay). A sixth song,
<quote>The Turkey in the
1357 Straw,
</quote> was already in the public domain. Letter from David Smith to
1358 Harry Surden,
10 July
2003, on file with author.
1360 and both are built upon a common song as a source. It is not just from
1361 the invention of synchronized sound in
<citetitle>The Jazz Singer
</citetitle> that we
1362 get
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle>. It is also from Buster Keaton's invention of
1363 Steamboat Bill, Jr., itself inspired by the song
<quote>Steamboat Bill,
</quote>
1364 that we get Steamboat Willie, and then from Steamboat Willie, Mickey
1367 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatwillie' class='endofrange'
/>
1368 <indexterm startref='idxmickeymouse' class='endofrange'
/>
1369 <indexterm startref='idxkeatonbuster' class='endofrange'
/>
1370 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='endofrange'
/>
1371 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works
</secondary></indexterm>
1372 <indexterm id='idxdisneyinc' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
1374 This
<quote>borrowing
</quote> was nothing unique, either for Disney or for the
1375 industry. Disney was always parroting the feature-length mainstream
1376 films of his day.
<footnote><para>
1378 He was also a fan of the public domain. See Chris Sprigman,
<quote>The Mouse
1379 that Ate the Public Domain,
</quote> Findlaw,
5 March
2002, at
1380 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
5</ulink>.
1382 So did many others. Early cartoons are filled with
1383 knockoffs
—slight variations on winning themes; retellings of
1384 ancient stories. The key to success was the brilliance of the
1385 differences. With Disney, it was sound that gave his animation its
1386 spark. Later, it was the quality of his work relative to the
1387 production-line cartoons with which he competed. Yet these additions
1388 were built upon a base that was borrowed. Disney added to the work of
1389 others before him, creating something new out of something just barely
1392 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
1394 Sometimes this borrowing was slight. Sometimes it was significant.
1395 Think about the fairy tales of the Brothers Grimm. If you're as
1396 oblivious as I was, you're likely to think that these tales are happy,
1397 sweet stories, appropriate for any child at bedtime. In fact, the
1398 Grimm fairy tales are, well, for us, grim. It is a rare and perhaps
1399 overly ambitious parent who would dare to read these bloody,
1400 moralistic stories to his or her child, at bedtime or anytime.
1403 Disney took these stories and retold them in a way that carried them
1404 into a new age. He animated the stories, with both characters and
1405 light. Without removing the elements of fear and danger altogether, he
1406 made funny what was dark and injected a genuine emotion of compassion
1407 where before there was fear. And not just with the work of the
1408 Brothers Grimm. Indeed, the catalog of Disney work drawing upon the
1409 work of others is astonishing when set together:
<citetitle>Snow White
</citetitle>
1410 (
1937),
<citetitle>Fantasia
</citetitle> (
1940),
<citetitle>Pinocchio
</citetitle> (
1940),
<citetitle>Dumbo
</citetitle>
1411 (
1941),
<citetitle>Bambi
</citetitle> (
1942),
<citetitle>Song of the South
</citetitle> (
1946),
1412 <citetitle>Cinderella
</citetitle> (
1950),
<citetitle>Alice in Wonderland
</citetitle> (
1951),
<citetitle>Robin
1413 Hood
</citetitle> (
1952),
<citetitle>Peter Pan
</citetitle> (
1953),
<citetitle>Lady and the Tramp
</citetitle>
1414 <!-- PAGE BREAK 37 -->
1415 (
1955),
<citetitle>Mulan
</citetitle> (
1998),
<citetitle>Sleeping Beauty
</citetitle> (
1959),
<citetitle>101
1416 Dalmatians
</citetitle> (
1961),
<citetitle>The Sword in the Stone
</citetitle> (
1963), and
1417 <citetitle>The Jungle Book
</citetitle> (
1967)
—not to mention a recent example
1418 that we should perhaps quickly forget,
<citetitle>Treasure Planet
</citetitle>
1419 (
2003). In all of these cases, Disney (or Disney, Inc.) ripped
1420 creativity from the culture around him, mixed that creativity with his
1421 own extraordinary talent, and then burned that mix into the soul of
1422 his culture. Rip, mix, and burn.
1424 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales' class='endofrange'
/>
1426 This is a kind of creativity. It is a creativity that we should
1427 remember and celebrate. There are some who would say that there is no
1428 creativity except this kind. We don't need to go that far to recognize
1429 its importance. We could call this
<quote>Disney creativity,
</quote> though that
1430 would be a bit misleading. It is, more precisely,
<quote>Walt Disney
1431 creativity
</quote>—a form of expression and genius that builds upon the
1432 culture around us and makes it something different.
1434 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='endofrange'
/>
1435 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='endofrange'
/>
1436 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='endofrange'
/>
1437 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
1438 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>defined
</secondary></indexterm>
1439 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>traditional term for conversion to
</secondary></indexterm>
1440 <para> In
1928, the culture that Disney was free to draw upon was
1441 relatively fresh. The public domain in
1928 was not very old and was
1442 therefore quite vibrant. The average term of copyright was just around
1443 thirty years
—for that minority of creative work that was in fact
1444 copyrighted.
<footnote><para>
1446 Until
1976, copyright law granted an author the possibility of two terms: an
1447 initial term and a renewal term. I have calculated the
<quote>average
</quote> term by
1449 the weighted average of total registrations for any particular year,
1450 and the proportion renewing. Thus, if
100 copyrights are registered in year
1451 1, and only
15 are renewed, and the renewal term is
28 years, then the
1453 term is
32.2 years. For the renewal data and other relevant data, see the
1454 Web site associated with this book, available at
1455 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
6</ulink>.
1457 That means that for thirty years, on average, the authors or
1458 copyright holders of a creative work had an
<quote>exclusive right
</quote> to control
1459 certain uses of the work. To use this copyrighted work in limited ways
1460 required the permission of the copyright owner.
1463 At the end of a copyright term, a work passes into the public domain.
1464 No permission is then needed to draw upon or use that work. No
1465 permission and, hence, no lawyers. The public domain is a
<quote>lawyer-free
1466 zone.
</quote> Thus, most of the content from the nineteenth century was free
1467 for Disney to use and build upon in
1928. It was free for
1468 anyone
— whether connected or not, whether rich or not, whether
1469 approved or not
—to use and build upon.
1471 <indexterm startref='idxanimatedcartoons' class='endofrange'
/>
1472 <indexterm startref='idxfilmsanimated' class='endofrange'
/>
1474 This is the ways things always were
—until quite recently. For most
1475 of our history, the public domain was just over the horizon. From
1476 until
1978, the average copyright term was never more than thirty-two
1477 years, meaning that most culture just a generation and a half old was
1479 <!-- PAGE BREAK 38 -->
1480 free for anyone to build upon without the permission of anyone else.
1481 Today's equivalent would be for creative work from the
1960s and
1970s
1482 to now be free for the next Walt Disney to build upon without
1483 permission. Yet today, the public domain is presumptive only for
1484 content from before the Great Depression.
1486 <indexterm startref='idxcartoonfilms' class='endofrange'
/>
1487 <indexterm startref='idxdisneyinc' class='endofrange'
/>
1488 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='endofrange'
/>
1489 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='endofrange'
/>
1490 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='endofrange'
/>
1491 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1493 <emphasis role=
"strong">Of course
</emphasis>, Walt Disney had no monopoly on
<quote>Walt Disney creativity.
</quote>
1494 Nor does America. The norm of free culture has, until recently, and
1495 except within totalitarian nations, been broadly exploited and quite
1498 <indexterm id='idxcomicsjapanese' class='startofrange'
><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1499 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1500 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics' class='startofrange'
><primary>Japanese comics
</primary></indexterm>
1501 <indexterm id='idxmanga' class='startofrange'
><primary>manga
</primary></indexterm>
1502 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1504 Consider, for example, a form of creativity that seems strange to many
1505 Americans but that is inescapable within Japanese culture:
<citetitle>manga
</citetitle>, or
1506 comics. The Japanese are fanatics about comics. Some
40 percent of
1507 publications are comics, and
30 percent of publication revenue derives
1508 from comics. They are everywhere in Japanese society, at every
1509 magazine stand, carried by a large proportion of commuters on Japan's
1510 extraordinary system of public transportation.
1513 Americans tend to look down upon this form of culture. That's an
1514 unattractive characteristic of ours. We're likely to misunderstand
1515 much about manga, because few of us have ever read anything close to
1516 the stories that these
<quote>graphic novels
</quote> tell. For the Japanese, manga
1517 cover every aspect of social life. For us, comics are
<quote>men in tights.
</quote>
1518 And anyway, it's not as if the New York subways are filled with
1519 readers of Joyce or even Hemingway. People of different cultures
1520 distract themselves in different ways, the Japanese in this
1521 interestingly different way.
1524 But my purpose here is not to understand manga. It is to describe a
1525 variant on manga that from a lawyer's perspective is quite odd, but
1526 from a Disney perspective is quite familiar.
1528 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works
</secondary></indexterm>
1529 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics' class='startofrange'
><primary>doujinshi comics
</primary></indexterm>
1531 This is the phenomenon of
<citetitle>doujinshi
</citetitle>. Doujinshi are also comics, but
1532 they are a kind of copycat comic. A rich ethic governs the creation of
1533 doujinshi. It is not doujinshi if it is
<emphasis>just
</emphasis> a
1534 copy; the artist must make a contribution to the art he copies, by
1535 transforming it either subtly or
1536 <!-- PAGE BREAK 39 -->
1537 significantly. A doujinshi comic can thus take a mainstream comic and
1538 develop it differently
—with a different story line. Or the comic can
1539 keep the character in character but change its look slightly. There is no
1540 formula for what makes the doujinshi sufficiently
<quote>different.
</quote> But they
1541 must be different if they are to be considered true doujinshi. Indeed,
1542 there are committees that review doujinshi for inclusion within shows
1543 and reject any copycat comic that is merely a copy.
1545 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1547 These copycat comics are not a tiny part of the manga market. They are
1548 huge. More than
33,
000 <quote>circles
</quote> of creators from across Japan produce
1549 these bits of Walt Disney creativity. More than
450,
000 Japanese come
1550 together twice a year, in the largest public gathering in the country,
1551 to exchange and sell them. This market exists in parallel to the
1552 mainstream commercial manga market. In some ways, it obviously
1553 competes with that market, but there is no sustained effort by those
1554 who control the commercial manga market to shut the doujinshi market
1555 down. It flourishes, despite the competition and despite the law.
1557 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1558 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1560 The most puzzling feature of the doujinshi market, for those trained
1561 in the law, at least, is that it is allowed to exist at all. Under
1562 Japanese copyright law, which in this respect (on paper) mirrors
1563 American copyright law, the doujinshi market is an illegal
1564 one. Doujinshi are plainly
<quote>derivative works.
</quote> There is no general
1565 practice by doujinshi artists of securing the permission of the manga
1566 creators. Instead, the practice is simply to take and modify the
1567 creations of others, as Walt Disney did with
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1568 Jr
</citetitle>. Under both Japanese and American law, that
<quote>taking
</quote> without
1569 the permission of the original copyright owner is illegal. It is an
1570 infringement of the original copyright to make a copy or a derivative
1571 work without the original copyright owner's permission.
1573 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt2' class='endofrange'
/>
1574 <indexterm id='idxwinickjudd' class='startofrange'
><primary>Winick, Judd
</primary></indexterm>
1576 Yet this illegal market exists and indeed flourishes in Japan, and in
1577 the view of many, it is precisely because it exists that Japanese manga
1578 flourish. As American graphic novelist Judd Winick said to me,
<quote>The
1579 early days of comics in America are very much like what's going on
1580 in Japan now.
… American comics were born out of copying each
1581 <!-- PAGE BREAK 40 -->
1582 other.
… That's how [the artists] learn to draw
— by going into comic
1583 books and not tracing them, but looking at them and copying them
</quote>
1584 and building from them.
<footnote><para>
1586 For an excellent history, see Scott McCloud,
<citetitle>Reinventing Comics
</citetitle> (New
1587 York: Perennial,
2000).
1590 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='endofrange'
/>
1591 <indexterm><primary>Superman comics
</primary></indexterm>
1593 American comics now are quite different, Winick explains, in part
1594 because of the legal difficulty of adapting comics the way doujinshi are
1595 allowed. Speaking of Superman, Winick told me,
<quote>there are these rules
1596 and you have to stick to them.
</quote> There are things Superman
<quote>cannot
</quote>
1597 do.
<quote>As a creator, it's frustrating having to stick to some parameters
1598 which are fifty years old.
</quote>
1600 <indexterm startref='idxwinickjudd' class='endofrange'
/>
1601 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1602 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1603 <indexterm id='idxmehrasalil' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mehra, Salil
</primary></indexterm>
1605 The norm in Japan mitigates this legal difficulty. Some say it is
1606 precisely the benefit accruing to the Japanese manga market that
1607 explains the mitigation. Temple University law professor Salil Mehra,
1608 for example, hypothesizes that the manga market accepts these
1609 technical violations because they spur the manga market to be more
1610 wealthy and productive. Everyone would be worse off if doujinshi were
1611 banned, so the law does not ban doujinshi.
<footnote><para>
1613 See Salil K. Mehra,
<quote>Copyright and Comics in Japan: Does Law Explain
1614 Why All the Comics My Kid Watches Are Japanese Imports?
</quote> <citetitle>Rutgers Law
1615 Review
</citetitle> 55 (
2002):
155,
182.
<quote>[T]here might be a collective economic
1616 rationality that would lead manga and anime artists to forgo bringing
1617 legal actions for infringement. One hypothesis is that all manga
1618 artists may be better off collectively if they set aside their
1619 individual self-interest and decide not to press their legal
1620 rights. This is essentially a prisoner's dilemma solved.
</quote>
1623 <indexterm startref='idxcomicsjapanese' class='endofrange'
/>
1624 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics' class='endofrange'
/>
1625 <indexterm startref='idxmanga' class='endofrange'
/>
1627 The problem with this story, however, as Mehra plainly acknowledges,
1628 is that the mechanism producing this laissez faire response is not
1629 clear. It may well be that the market as a whole is better off if
1630 doujinshi are permitted rather than banned, but that doesn't explain
1631 why individual copyright owners don't sue nonetheless. If the law has
1632 no general exception for doujinshi, and indeed in some cases
1633 individual manga artists have sued doujinshi artists, why is there not
1634 a more general pattern of blocking this
<quote>free taking
</quote> by the doujinshi
1637 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='endofrange'
/>
1638 <indexterm startref='idxmehrasalil' class='endofrange'
/>
1640 I spent four wonderful months in Japan, and I asked this question
1641 as often as I could. Perhaps the best account in the end was offered by
1642 a friend from a major Japanese law firm.
<quote>We don't have enough
1643 lawyers,
</quote> he told me one afternoon. There
<quote>just aren't enough resources
1644 to prosecute cases like this.
</quote>
1647 This is a theme to which we will return: that regulation by law is a
1648 function of both the words on the books and the costs of making those
1649 words have effect. For now, focus on the obvious question that is
1650 begged: Would Japan be better off with more lawyers? Would manga
1651 <!-- PAGE BREAK 41 -->
1652 be richer if doujinshi artists were regularly prosecuted? Would the
1653 Japanese gain something important if they could end this practice of
1654 uncompensated sharing? Does piracy here hurt the victims of the
1655 piracy, or does it help them? Would lawyers fighting this piracy help
1656 their clients or hurt them?
1658 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics' class='endofrange'
/>
1660 <emphasis role='strong'
>Let's pause
</emphasis> for a moment.
1663 If you're like I was a decade ago, or like most people are when they
1664 first start thinking about these issues, then just about now you should
1665 be puzzled about something you hadn't thought through before.
1668 We live in a world that celebrates
<quote>property.
</quote> I am one of those
1669 celebrants. I believe in the value of property in general, and I also
1670 believe in the value of that weird form of property that lawyers call
1671 <quote>intellectual property.
</quote><footnote><para>
1673 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
1674 The term
<citetitle>intellectual property
</citetitle> is of relatively recent origin. See
1675 Siva Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
11 (New York: New York
1676 University Press,
2001). See also Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>
1677 (New York: Random House,
2001),
293 n.
26. The term accurately
1678 describes a set of
<quote>property
</quote> rights
— copyright, patents,
1679 trademark, and trade-secret
— but the nature of those rights is
1682 A large, diverse society cannot survive without property; a large,
1683 diverse, and modern society cannot flourish without intellectual
1686 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1687 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
1688 <indexterm><primary>Keaton, Buster
</primary></indexterm>
1690 But it takes just a second's reflection to realize that there is
1691 plenty of value out there that
<quote>property
</quote> doesn't capture. I don't
1692 mean
<quote>money can't buy you love,
</quote> but rather, value that is plainly
1693 part of a process of production, including commercial as well as
1694 noncommercial production. If Disney animators had stolen a set of
1695 pencils to draw Steamboat Willie, we'd have no hesitation in
1696 condemning that taking as wrong
— even though trivial, even if
1697 unnoticed. Yet there was nothing wrong, at least under the law of the
1698 day, with Disney's taking from Buster Keaton or from the Brothers
1699 Grimm. There was nothing wrong with the taking from Keaton because
1700 Disney's use would have been considered
<quote>fair.
</quote> There was nothing
1701 wrong with the taking from the Grimms because the Grimms' work was in
1704 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>derivative works based on
</secondary></indexterm>
1706 Thus, even though the things that Disney took
—or more generally,
1707 the things taken by anyone exercising Walt Disney creativity
—are
1708 valuable, our tradition does not treat those takings as wrong. Some
1710 <!-- PAGE BREAK 42 -->
1711 things remain free for the taking within a free culture, and that
1714 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='endofrange'
/>
1715 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1716 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1717 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='startofrange'
><primary>doujinshi comics
</primary></indexterm>
1718 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Japanese comics
</primary></indexterm>
1719 <indexterm id='idxmanga2' class='startofrange'
><primary>manga
</primary></indexterm>
1721 The same with the doujinshi culture. If a doujinshi artist broke into
1722 a publisher's office and ran off with a thousand copies of his latest
1723 work
—or even one copy
—without paying, we'd have no hesitation in
1724 saying the artist was wrong. In addition to having trespassed, he would
1725 have stolen something of value. The law bans that stealing in whatever
1726 form, whether large or small.
1728 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='endofrange'
/>
1730 Yet there is an obvious reluctance, even among Japanese lawyers, to
1731 say that the copycat comic artists are
<quote>stealing.
</quote> This form of Walt
1732 Disney creativity is seen as fair and right, even if lawyers in
1733 particular find it hard to say why.
1735 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
1736 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
1737 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='endofrange'
/>
1738 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='endofrange'
/>
1739 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics2' class='endofrange'
/>
1740 <indexterm startref='idxmanga2' class='endofrange'
/>
1741 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
1743 It's the same with a thousand examples that appear everywhere once you
1744 begin to look. Scientists build upon the work of other scientists
1745 without asking or paying for the privilege. (
<quote>Excuse me, Professor
1746 Einstein, but may I have permission to use your theory of relativity
1747 to show that you were wrong about quantum physics?
</quote>) Acting companies
1748 perform adaptations of the works of Shakespeare without securing
1749 permission from anyone. (Does
<emphasis>anyone
</emphasis> believe
1750 Shakespeare would be better spread within our culture if there were a
1751 central Shakespeare rights clearinghouse that all productions of
1752 Shakespeare must appeal to first?) And Hollywood goes through cycles
1753 with a certain kind of movie: five asteroid films in the late
1990s;
1754 two volcano disaster films in
1997.
1757 Creators here and everywhere are always and at all times building
1758 upon the creativity that went before and that surrounds them now.
1759 That building is always and everywhere at least partially done without
1760 permission and without compensating the original creator. No society,
1761 free or controlled, has ever demanded that every use be paid for or that
1762 permission for Walt Disney creativity must always be sought. Instead,
1763 every society has left a certain bit of its culture free for the taking
—free
1764 societies more fully than unfree, perhaps, but all societies to some degree.
1765 <!-- PAGE BREAK 43 -->
1767 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt3' class='endofrange'
/>
1769 The hard question is therefore not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis> a
1770 culture is free. All cultures are free to some degree. The hard
1771 question instead is
<quote><emphasis>How
</emphasis> free is this culture?
</quote>
1772 How much, and how broadly, is the culture free for others to take and
1773 build upon? Is that freedom limited to party members? To members of
1774 the royal family? To the top ten corporations on the New York Stock
1775 Exchange? Or is that freedom spread broadly? To artists generally,
1776 whether affiliated with the Met or not? To musicians generally,
1777 whether white or not? To filmmakers generally, whether affiliated with
1781 Free cultures are cultures that leave a great deal open for others to
1782 build upon; unfree, or permission, cultures leave much less. Ours was a
1783 free culture. It is becoming much less so.
1785 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='endofrange'
/>
1787 <!-- PAGE BREAK 44 -->
1789 <chapter label=
"2" id=
"mere-copyists">
1790 <title>Chapter Two:
<quote>Mere Copyists
</quote></title>
1791 <indexterm><primary>Daguerre, Louis
</primary></indexterm>
1792 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
1793 <indexterm id='idxphotography' class='startofrange'
><primary>photography
</primary></indexterm>
1795 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1839</emphasis>, Louis Daguerre invented
1796 the first practical technology for producing what we would call
1797 <quote>photographs.
</quote> Appropriately enough, they were called
1798 <quote>daguerreotypes.
</quote> The process was complicated and
1799 expensive, and the field was thus limited to professionals and a few
1800 zealous and wealthy amateurs. (There was even an American Daguerre
1801 Association that helped regulate the industry, as do all such
1802 associations, by keeping competition down so as to keep prices up.)
1804 <indexterm><primary>Talbot, William
</primary></indexterm>
1806 Yet despite high prices, the demand for daguerreotypes was strong.
1807 This pushed inventors to find simpler and cheaper ways to make
1808 <quote>automatic pictures.
</quote> William Talbot soon discovered a process for
1809 making
<quote>negatives.
</quote> But because the negatives were glass, and had to
1810 be kept wet, the process still remained expensive and cumbersome. In
1811 the
1870s, dry plates were developed, making it easier to separate the
1812 taking of a picture from its developing. These were still plates of
1813 glass, and thus it was still not a process within reach of most
1816 <indexterm id='idxeastmangeorge' class='startofrange'
><primary>Eastman, George
</primary></indexterm>
1818 The technological change that made mass photography possible
1819 didn't happen until
1888, and was the creation of a single man. George
1820 <!-- PAGE BREAK 45 -->
1821 Eastman, himself an amateur photographer, was frustrated by the
1822 technology of photographs made with plates. In a flash of insight (so
1823 to speak), Eastman saw that if the film could be made to be flexible,
1824 it could be held on a single spindle. That roll could then be sent to
1825 a developer, driving the costs of photography down substantially. By
1826 lowering the costs, Eastman expected he could dramatically broaden the
1827 population of photographers.
1829 <indexterm id='idxkodakcameras' class='startofrange'
><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
1830 <indexterm id='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='startofrange'
><primary>Kodak Primer, The (Eastman)
</primary></indexterm>
1832 Eastman developed flexible, emulsion-coated paper film and placed
1833 rolls of it in small, simple cameras: the Kodak. The device was
1834 marketed on the basis of its simplicity.
<quote>You press the button and we
1835 do the rest.
</quote><footnote><para>
1837 Reese V. Jenkins,
<citetitle>Images and Enterprise
</citetitle> (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press,
1975),
112.
1838 </para></footnote> As he described in
<citetitle>The Kodak Primer
</citetitle>:
1842 The principle of the Kodak system is the separation of the work that
1843 any person whomsoever can do in making a photograph, from the work
1844 that only an expert can do.
… We furnish anybody, man, woman or
1845 child, who has sufficient intelligence to point a box straight and
1846 press a button, with an instrument which altogether removes from the
1847 practice of photography the necessity for exceptional facilities or,
1848 in fact, any special knowledge of the art. It can be employed without
1849 preliminary study, without a darkroom and without
1850 chemicals.
<footnote>
1853 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian
</primary></indexterm>
1854 Brian Coe,
<citetitle>The Birth of Photography
</citetitle> (New York: Taplinger Publishing,
1859 <indexterm startref='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='endofrange'
/>
1861 For $
25, anyone could make pictures. The camera came preloaded
1862 with film, and when it had been used, the camera was returned to an
1863 Eastman factory, where the film was developed. Over time, of course,
1864 the cost of the camera and the ease with which it could be used both
1865 improved. Roll film thus became the basis for the explosive growth of
1866 popular photography. Eastman's camera first went on sale in
1888; one
1867 year later, Kodak was printing more than six thousand negatives a day.
1868 From
1888 through
1909, while industrial production was rising by
4.7
1869 percent, photographic equipment and material sales increased by
11
1870 percent.
<footnote><para>
1873 </para></footnote> Eastman Kodak's sales during the same period experienced
1874 an average annual increase of over
17 percent.
<footnote><para>
1876 Based on a chart in Jenkins, p.
178.
1879 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian
</primary></indexterm>
1882 <!-- PAGE BREAK 46 -->
1883 The real significance of Eastman's invention, however, was not
1884 economic. It was social. Professional photography gave individuals a
1885 glimpse of places they would never otherwise see. Amateur photography
1886 gave them the ability to record their own lives in a way they had
1887 never been able to do before. As author Brian Coe notes,
<quote>For the
1888 first time the snapshot album provided the man on the street with a
1889 permanent record of his family and its activities.
… For the first
1890 time in history there exists an authentic visual record of the
1891 appearance and activities of the common man made without [literary]
1892 interpretation or bias.
</quote><footnote><para>
1897 <indexterm><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
1898 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
1900 In this way, the Kodak camera and film were technologies of
1901 expression. The pencil or paintbrush was also a technology of
1902 expression, of course. But it took years of training before they could
1903 be deployed by amateurs in any useful or effective way. With the
1904 Kodak, expression was possible much sooner and more simply. The
1905 barrier to expression was lowered. Snobs would sneer at its
<quote>quality
</quote>;
1906 professionals would discount it as irrelevant. But watch a child study
1907 how best to frame a picture and you get a sense of the experience of
1908 creativity that the Kodak enabled. Democratic tools gave ordinary
1909 people a way to express themselves more easily than any tools could
1912 <indexterm startref='idxkodakcameras' class='endofrange'
/>
1913 <indexterm id='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='startofrange'
><primary>permissions
</primary><secondary>photography exempted from
</secondary></indexterm>
1915 What was required for this technology to flourish? Obviously,
1916 Eastman's genius was an important part. But also important was the
1917 legal environment within which Eastman's invention grew. For early in
1918 the history of photography, there was a series of judicial decisions
1919 that could well have changed the course of photography substantially.
1920 Courts were asked whether the photographer, amateur or professional,
1921 required permission before he could capture and print whatever image
1922 he wanted. Their answer was no.
<footnote><para>
1924 For illustrative cases, see, for example,
<citetitle>Pavesich
</citetitle>
1925 v.
<citetitle>N.E. Life Ins. Co
</citetitle>.,
50 S.E.
68 (Ga.
1905);
1926 <citetitle>Foster-Milburn Co
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Chinn
</citetitle>,
123090 S.W.
364,
366
1927 (Ky.
1909);
<citetitle>Corliss
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Walker
</citetitle>,
64 F.
280 (Mass.
1931 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology' class='endofrange'
/>
1932 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt4' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1933 <indexterm id='idximagesownershipof' class='startofrange'
><primary>images, ownership of
</primary></indexterm>
1935 The arguments in favor of requiring permission will sound surprisingly
1936 familiar. The photographer was
<quote>taking
</quote> something from the person or
1937 building whose photograph he shot
—pirating something of
1938 value. Some even thought he was taking the target's soul. Just as
1939 Disney was not free to take the pencils that his animators used to
1941 <!-- PAGE BREAK 47 -->
1942 Mickey, so, too, should these photographers not be free to take images
1943 that they thought valuable.
1945 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
1946 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1947 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology2' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
1949 On the other side was an argument that should be familiar, as well.
1950 Sure, there may be something of value being used. But citizens should
1951 have the right to capture at least those images that stand in public view.
1952 (Louis Brandeis, who would become a Supreme Court Justice, thought
1953 the rule should be different for images from private spaces.
<footnote>
1956 Samuel D. Warren and Louis D. Brandeis,
<quote>The Right to Privacy,
</quote>
1957 <citetitle>Harvard Law Review
</citetitle> 4 (
1890):
193.
1958 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
1959 <indexterm><primary>Warren, Samuel D.
</primary></indexterm>
1960 </para></footnote>) It may be that this means that the photographer
1961 gets something for nothing. Just as Disney could take inspiration from
1962 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>. or the Brothers Grimm, the photographer should be
1963 free to capture an image without compensating the source.
1965 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt4' class='endofrange'
/>
1967 Fortunately for Mr. Eastman, and for photography in general, these
1968 early decisions went in favor of the pirates. In general, no
1969 permission would be required before an image could be captured and
1970 shared with others. Instead, permission was presumed. Freedom was the
1971 default. (The law would eventually craft an exception for famous
1972 people: commercial photographers who snap pictures of famous people
1973 for commercial purposes have more restrictions than the rest of
1974 us. But in the ordinary case, the image can be captured without
1975 clearing the rights to do the capturing.
<footnote><para>
1977 See Melville B. Nimmer,
<quote>The Right of Publicity,
</quote> <citetitle>Law and Contemporary
1978 Problems
</citetitle> 19 (
1954):
203; William L. Prosser,
<quote>Privacy,
</quote> <citetitle>California Law
1979 Review
</citetitle> 48 (
1960)
398–407;
<citetitle>White
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Samsung Electronics America,
1980 Inc
</citetitle>.,
971 F.
2d
1395 (
9th Cir.
1992), cert. denied,
508 U.S.
951
1984 <indexterm><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
1985 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary></indexterm>
1987 We can only speculate about how photography would have developed had
1988 the law gone the other way. If the presumption had been against the
1989 photographer, then the photographer would have had to demonstrate
1990 permission. Perhaps Eastman Kodak would have had to demonstrate
1991 permission, too, before it developed the film upon which images were
1992 captured. After all, if permission were not granted, then Eastman
1993 Kodak would be benefiting from the
<quote>theft
</quote> committed by the
1994 photographer. Just as Napster benefited from the copyright
1995 infringements committed by Napster users, Kodak would be benefiting
1996 from the
<quote>image-right
</quote> infringement of its photographers. We could
1997 imagine the law then requiring that some form of permission be
1998 demonstrated before a company developed pictures. We could imagine a
1999 system developing to demonstrate that permission.
2001 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology2' class='endofrange'
/>
2002 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology3' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
2003 <indexterm><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
2004 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
2007 <!-- PAGE BREAK 48 -->
2008 But though we could imagine this system of permission, it would be
2009 very hard to see how photography could have flourished as it did if
2010 the requirement for permission had been built into the rules that
2011 govern it. Photography would have existed. It would have grown in
2012 importance over time. Professionals would have continued to use the
2013 technology as they did
—since professionals could have more
2014 easily borne the burdens of the permission system. But the spread of
2015 photography to ordinary people would not have occurred. Nothing like
2016 that growth would have been realized. And certainly, nothing like that
2017 growth in a democratic technology of expression would have been
2020 <indexterm startref='idxphotography' class='endofrange'
/>
2021 <indexterm startref='idxeastmangeorge' class='endofrange'
/>
2022 <indexterm startref='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='endofrange'
/>
2023 <indexterm startref='idximagesownershipof' class='endofrange'
/>
2024 <indexterm><primary>digital cameras
</primary></indexterm>
2025 <indexterm id='idxjustthink' class='startofrange'
><primary>Just Think!
</primary></indexterm>
2027 <emphasis role='strong'
>If you drive
</emphasis> through San
2028 Francisco's Presidio, you might see two gaudy yellow school buses
2029 painted over with colorful and striking images, and the logo
2030 <quote>Just Think!
</quote> in place of the name of a school. But
2031 there's little that's
<quote>just
</quote> cerebral in the projects
2032 that these busses enable. These buses are filled with technologies
2033 that teach kids to tinker with film. Not the film of Eastman. Not even
2034 the film of your VCR. Rather the
<quote>film
</quote> of digital
2035 cameras. Just Think! is a project that enables kids to make films, as
2036 a way to understand and critique the filmed culture that they find all
2037 around them. Each year, these busses travel to more than thirty
2038 schools and enable three hundred to five hundred children to learn
2039 something about media by doing something with media. By doing, they
2040 think. By tinkering, they learn.
2042 <indexterm id='idxeducationinmedialiteracy' class='startofrange'
><primary>education
</primary><secondary>in media literacy
</secondary></indexterm>
2043 <indexterm id='idxmedialiteracy' class='startofrange'
><primary>media literacy
</primary></indexterm>
2044 <indexterm id='idxexpressiontechnologiesofmedialiteracyand' class='startofrange'
><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>media literacy and
</secondary></indexterm>
2046 These buses are not cheap, but the technology they carry is
2047 increasingly so. The cost of a high-quality digital video system has
2048 fallen dramatically. As one analyst puts it,
<quote>Five years ago, a good
2049 real-time digital video editing system cost $
25,
000. Today you can get
2050 professional quality for $
595.
</quote><footnote><para>
2052 H. Edward Goldberg,
<quote>Essential Presentation Tools: Hardware and
2053 Software You Need to Create Digital Multimedia Presentations,
</quote>
2054 cadalyst, February
2002, available at
2055 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
7</ulink>.
2057 These buses are filled with technology that would have cost hundreds
2058 of thousands just ten years ago. And it is now feasible to imagine not
2059 just buses like this, but classrooms across the country where kids are
2060 learning more and more of something teachers call
<quote>media literacy.
</quote>
2062 <indexterm><primary>Yanofsky, Dave
</primary></indexterm>
2064 <!-- PAGE BREAK 49 -->
2065 <quote>Media literacy,
</quote> as Dave Yanofsky, the executive director of Just
2066 Think!, puts it,
<quote>is the ability
… to understand, analyze, and
2067 deconstruct media images. Its aim is to make [kids] literate about the
2068 way media works, the way it's constructed, the way it's delivered, and
2069 the way people access it.
</quote>
2071 <indexterm startref='idxjustthink' class='endofrange'
/>
2073 This may seem like an odd way to think about
<quote>literacy.
</quote> For most
2074 people, literacy is about reading and writing. Faulkner and Hemingway
2075 and noticing split infinitives are the things that
<quote>literate
</quote> people know
2078 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
2079 <indexterm><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
2080 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
2082 Maybe. But in a world where children see on average
390 hours of
2083 television commercials per year, or between
20,
000 and
45,
000
2084 commercials generally,
<footnote><para>
2086 Judith Van Evra,
<citetitle>Television and Child Development
</citetitle> (Hillsdale, N.J.:
2087 Lawrence Erlbaum Associates,
1990);
<quote>Findings on Family and TV
2088 Study,
</quote> <citetitle>Denver Post
</citetitle>,
25 May
1997, B6.
2090 it is increasingly important to understand the
<quote>grammar
</quote> of media. For
2091 just as there is a grammar for the written word, so, too, is there one
2092 for media. And just as kids learn how to write by writing lots of
2093 terrible prose, kids learn how to write media by constructing lots of
2094 (at least at first) terrible media.
2097 A growing field of academics and activists sees this form of literacy
2098 as crucial to the next generation of culture. For though anyone who
2099 has written understands how difficult writing is
—how difficult
2100 it is to sequence the story, to keep a reader's attention, to craft
2101 language to be understandable
—few of us have any real sense of
2102 how difficult media is. Or more fundamentally, few of us have a sense
2103 of how media works, how it holds an audience or leads it through a
2104 story, how it triggers emotion or builds suspense.
2106 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology3' class='endofrange'
/>
2108 It took filmmaking a generation before it could do these things well.
2109 But even then, the knowledge was in the filming, not in writing about
2110 the film. The skill came from experiencing the making of a film, not
2111 from reading a book about it. One learns to write by writing and then
2112 reflecting upon what one has written. One learns to write with images
2113 by making them and then reflecting upon what one has created.
2115 <indexterm id='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='startofrange'
><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2116 <indexterm><primary>Crichton, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
2118 This grammar has changed as media has changed. When it was just film,
2119 as Elizabeth Daley, executive director of the University of Southern
2120 California's Annenberg Center for Communication and dean of the
2122 <!-- PAGE BREAK 50 -->
2123 USC School of Cinema-Television, explained to me, the grammar was
2124 about
<quote>the placement of objects, color,
… rhythm, pacing, and
2125 texture.
</quote><footnote>
2128 Interview with Elizabeth Daley and Stephanie Barish,
13 December
2130 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2131 <indexterm><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2133 But as computers open up an interactive space where a story is
2134 <quote>played
</quote> as well as experienced, that grammar changes. The simple
2135 control of narrative is lost, and so other techniques are necessary. Author
2136 Michael Crichton had mastered the narrative of science fiction.
2137 But when he tried to design a computer game based on one of his
2138 works, it was a new craft he had to learn. How to lead people through
2139 a game without their feeling they have been led was not obvious, even
2140 to a wildly successful author.
<footnote><para>
2142 See Scott Steinberg,
<quote>Crichton Gets Medieval on PCs,
</quote> E!online,
4
2143 November
2000, available at
2144 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
8</ulink>;
<quote>Timeline,
</quote> 22 November
2000,
2146 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
9</ulink>.
2149 <indexterm><primary>computer games
</primary></indexterm>
2151 This skill is precisely the craft a filmmaker learns. As Daley
2152 describes,
<quote>people are very surprised about how they are led through a
2153 film. [I]t is perfectly constructed to keep you from seeing it, so you
2154 have no idea. If a filmmaker succeeds you do not know how you were
2155 led.
</quote> If you know you were led through a film, the film has failed.
2158 Yet the push for an expanded literacy
—one that goes beyond text
2159 to include audio and visual elements
—is not about making better
2160 film directors. The aim is not to improve the profession of
2161 filmmaking at all. Instead, as Daley explained,
2165 From my perspective, probably the most important digital divide
2166 is not access to a box. It's the ability to be empowered with the
2167 language that that box works in. Otherwise only a very few people
2168 can write with this language, and all the rest of us are reduced to
2173 <quote>Read-only.
</quote> Passive recipients of culture produced elsewhere.
2174 Couch potatoes. Consumers. This is the world of media from the
2178 The twenty-first century could be different. This is the crucial
2179 point: It could be both read and write. Or at least reading and better
2180 understanding the craft of writing. Or best, reading and understanding
2181 the tools that enable the writing to lead or mislead. The aim of any
2183 <!-- PAGE BREAK 51 -->
2184 and this literacy in particular, is to
<quote>empower people to choose the
2185 appropriate language for what they need to create or
2186 express.
</quote><footnote>
2189 Interview with Daley and Barish.
2190 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2191 </para></footnote> It is to enable students
<quote>to communicate in the
2192 language of the twenty-first century.
</quote><footnote><para>
2197 <indexterm id='idxbarishstephanie' class='startofrange'
><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2199 As with any language, this language comes more easily to some than to
2200 others. It doesn't necessarily come more easily to those who excel in
2201 written language. Daley and Stephanie Barish, director of the
2202 Institute for Multimedia Literacy at the Annenberg Center, describe
2203 one particularly poignant example of a project they ran in a high
2204 school. The high school was a very poor inner-city Los Angeles
2205 school. In all the traditional measures of success, this school was a
2206 failure. But Daley and Barish ran a program that gave kids an
2207 opportunity to use film to express meaning about something the
2208 students know something about
—gun violence.
2210 <indexterm startref='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='endofrange'
/>
2212 The class was held on Friday afternoons, and it created a relatively
2213 new problem for the school. While the challenge in most classes was
2214 getting the kids to come, the challenge in this class was keeping them
2215 away. The
<quote>kids were showing up at
6 A.M. and leaving at
5 at night,
</quote>
2216 said Barish. They were working harder than in any other class to do
2217 what education should be about
—learning how to express themselves.
2220 Using whatever
<quote>free web stuff they could find,
</quote> and relatively simple
2221 tools to enable the kids to mix
<quote>image, sound, and text,
</quote> Barish said
2222 this class produced a series of projects that showed something about
2223 gun violence that few would otherwise understand. This was an issue
2224 close to the lives of these students. The project
<quote>gave them a tool
2225 and empowered them to be able to both understand it and talk about
2226 it,
</quote> Barish explained. That tool succeeded in creating
2227 expression
—far more successfully and powerfully than could have
2228 been created using only text.
<quote>If you had said to these students, `you
2229 have to do it in text,' they would've just thrown their hands up and
2230 gone and done something else,
</quote> Barish described, in part, no doubt,
2231 because expressing themselves in text is not something these students
2232 can do well. Yet neither is text a form in which
2233 <emphasis>these
</emphasis> ideas can be expressed well. The power of
2234 this message depended upon its connection to this form of expression.
2236 <indexterm startref='idxbarishstephanie' class='endofrange'
/>
2237 <indexterm id='idxdaleyelizabeth2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2240 <!-- PAGE BREAK 52 -->
2241 <quote>But isn't education about teaching kids to write?
</quote> I asked. In part,
2242 of course, it is. But why are we teaching kids to write? Education,
2243 Daley explained, is about giving students a way of
<quote>constructing
2244 meaning.
</quote> To say that that means just writing is like saying teaching
2245 writing is only about teaching kids how to spell. Text is one
2246 part
—and increasingly, not the most powerful part
—of
2247 constructing meaning. As Daley explained in the most moving part of
2252 What you want is to give these students ways of constructing
2253 meaning. If all you give them is text, they're not going to do it.
2254 Because they can't. You know, you've got Johnny who can look at a
2255 video, he can play a video game, he can do graffiti all over your
2256 walls, he can take your car apart, and he can do all sorts of other
2257 things. He just can't read your text. So Johnny comes to school and
2258 you say,
<quote>Johnny, you're illiterate. Nothing you can do matters.
</quote>
2259 Well, Johnny then has two choices: He can dismiss you or he [can]
2260 dismiss himself. If his ego is healthy at all, he's going to dismiss
2261 you. [But i]nstead, if you say,
<quote>Well, with all these things that you
2262 can do, let's talk about this issue. Play for me music that you think
2263 reflects that, or show me images that you think reflect that, or draw
2264 for me something that reflects that.
</quote> Not by giving a kid a video
2265 camera and
… saying,
<quote>Let's go have fun with the video camera and
2266 make a little movie.
</quote> But instead, really help you take these elements
2267 that you understand, that are your language, and construct meaning
2268 about the topic.
…
2270 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2272 That empowers enormously. And then what happens, of
2273 course, is eventually, as it has happened in all these classes, they
2274 bump up against the fact,
<quote>I need to explain this and I really need
2275 to write something.
</quote> And as one of the teachers told Stephanie,
2276 they would rewrite a paragraph
5,
6,
7,
8 times, till they got it right.
2279 Because they needed to. There was a reason for doing it. They
2280 needed to say something, as opposed to just jumping through
2281 your hoops. They actually needed to use a language that they
2282 <!-- PAGE BREAK 53 -->
2283 didn't speak very well. But they had come to understand that they
2284 had a lot of power with this language.
2286 <!-- FIXME removed a " from the end of the previous paragraph that did
2287 not match with any start quote. -->
2289 <indexterm startref='idxeducationinmedialiteracy' class='endofrange'
/>
2290 <indexterm startref='idxmedialiteracy' class='endofrange'
/>
2291 <indexterm startref='idxexpressiontechnologiesofmedialiteracyand' class='endofrange'
/>
2292 <indexterm startref='idxdaleyelizabeth2' class='endofrange'
/>
2293 <indexterm id='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='startofrange'
><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
2294 <indexterm><primary>World Trade Center
</primary></indexterm>
2295 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage' class='startofrange'
><primary>news coverage
</primary></indexterm>
2297 <emphasis role='strong'
>When two planes
</emphasis> crashed into the
2298 World Trade Center, another into the Pentagon, and a fourth into a
2299 Pennsylvania field, all media around the world shifted to this
2300 news. Every moment of just about every day for that week, and for
2301 weeks after, television in particular, and media generally, retold the
2302 story of the events we had just witnessed. The telling was a
2303 retelling, because we had seen the events that were described. The
2304 genius of this awful act of terrorism was that the delayed second
2305 attack was perfectly timed to assure that the whole world would be
2309 These retellings had an increasingly familiar feel. There was music
2310 scored for the intermissions, and fancy graphics that flashed across
2311 the screen. There was a formula to interviews. There was
<quote>balance,
</quote>
2312 and seriousness. This was news choreographed in the way we have
2313 increasingly come to expect it,
<quote>news as entertainment,
</quote> even if the
2314 entertainment is tragedy.
2316 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
2317 <indexterm><primary>CBS
</primary></indexterm>
2319 But in addition to this produced news about the
<quote>tragedy of September
2320 11,
</quote> those of us tied to the Internet came to see a very different
2321 production as well. The Internet was filled with accounts of the same
2322 events. Yet these Internet accounts had a very different flavor. Some
2323 people constructed photo pages that captured images from around the
2324 world and presented them as slide shows with text. Some offered open
2325 letters. There were sound recordings. There was anger and frustration.
2326 There were attempts to provide context. There was, in short, an
2327 extraordinary worldwide barn raising, in the sense Mike Godwin uses
2328 the term in his book
<citetitle>Cyber Rights
</citetitle>, around a news event that had
2329 captured the attention of the world. There was ABC and CBS, but there
2330 was also the Internet.
2332 <indexterm startref='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='endofrange'
/>
2334 I don't mean simply to praise the Internet
—though I do think the
2335 people who supported this form of speech should be praised. I mean
2336 instead to point to a significance in this form of speech. For like a
2337 Kodak, the Internet enables people to capture images. And like in a
2339 <!-- PAGE BREAK 54 -->
2340 by a student on the
<quote>Just Think!
</quote> bus, the visual images could be mixed
2344 But unlike any technology for simply capturing images, the Internet
2345 allows these creations to be shared with an extraordinary number of
2346 people, practically instantaneously. This is something new in our
2347 tradition
—not just that culture can be captured mechanically,
2348 and obviously not just that events are commented upon critically, but
2349 that this mix of captured images, sound, and commentary can be widely
2350 spread practically instantaneously.
2352 <indexterm><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
2353 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs' class='startofrange'
><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2354 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>blogs on
</secondary></indexterm>
2355 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs' class='startofrange'
><primary>Web-logs (blogs)
</primary></indexterm>
2357 September
11 was not an aberration. It was a beginning. Around the
2358 same time, a form of communication that has grown dramatically was
2359 just beginning to come into public consciousness: the Web-log, or
2360 blog. The blog is a kind of public diary, and within some cultures,
2361 such as in Japan, it functions very much like a diary. In those
2362 cultures, it records private facts in a public way
—it's a kind
2363 of electronic
<citetitle>Jerry Springer
</citetitle>, available anywhere in the world.
2365 <indexterm><primary>political discourse
</primary></indexterm>
2366 <indexterm id='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>public discourse conducted on
</secondary></indexterm>
2368 But in the United States, blogs have taken on a very different
2369 character. There are some who use the space simply to talk about
2370 their private life. But there are many who use the space to engage in
2371 public discourse. Discussing matters of public import, criticizing
2372 others who are mistaken in their views, criticizing politicians about
2373 the decisions they make, offering solutions to problems we all see:
2374 blogs create the sense of a virtual public meeting, but one in which
2375 we don't all hope to be there at the same time and in which
2376 conversations are not necessarily linked. The best of the blog entries
2377 are relatively short; they point directly to words used by others,
2378 criticizing with or adding to them. They are arguably the most
2379 important form of unchoreographed public discourse that we have.
2381 <indexterm id='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='startofrange'
><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
2382 <indexterm id='idxelections' class='startofrange'
><primary>elections
</primary></indexterm>
2383 <indexterm id='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='startofrange'
><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
2385 That's a strong statement. Yet it says as much about our democracy as
2386 it does about blogs. This is the part of America that is most
2387 difficult for those of us who love America to accept: Our democracy
2388 has atrophied. Of course we have elections, and most of the time the
2389 courts allow those elections to count. A relatively small number of
2391 <!-- PAGE BREAK 55 -->
2392 in those elections. The cycle of these elections has become totally
2393 professionalized and routinized. Most of us think this is democracy.
2395 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs' class='endofrange'
/>
2396 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson' class='endofrange'
/>
2397 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs' class='endofrange'
/>
2398 <indexterm><primary>Tocqueville, Alexis de
</primary></indexterm>
2399 <indexterm id='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='startofrange'
><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>public discourse in
</secondary></indexterm>
2400 <indexterm><primary>jury system
</primary></indexterm>
2402 But democracy has never just been about elections. Democracy
2403 means rule by the people, but rule means something more than mere
2404 elections. In our tradition, it also means control through reasoned
2405 discourse. This was the idea that captured the imagination of Alexis
2406 de Tocqueville, the nineteenth-century French lawyer who wrote the
2407 most important account of early
<quote>Democracy in America.
</quote> It wasn't
2408 popular elections that fascinated him
—it was the jury, an
2409 institution that gave ordinary people the right to choose life or
2410 death for other citizens. And most fascinating for him was that the
2411 jury didn't just vote about the outcome they would impose. They
2412 deliberated. Members argued about the
<quote>right
</quote> result; they tried to
2413 persuade each other of the
<quote>right
</quote> result, and in criminal cases at
2414 least, they had to agree upon a unanimous result for the process to
2415 come to an end.
<footnote><para>
2417 See, for example, Alexis de Tocqueville,
<citetitle>Democracy in America
</citetitle>,
2418 bk.
1, trans. Henry Reeve (New York: Bantam Books,
2000), ch.
16.
2421 <indexterm startref='idxelections' class='endofrange'
/>
2423 Yet even this institution flags in American life today. And in its
2424 place, there is no systematic effort to enable citizen deliberation. Some
2425 are pushing to create just such an institution.
<footnote><para>
2427 Bruce Ackerman and James Fishkin,
<quote>Deliberation Day,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of
2428 Political Philosophy
</citetitle> 10 (
2) (
2002):
129.
2430 And in some towns in New England, something close to deliberation
2431 remains. But for most of us for most of the time, there is no time or
2432 place for
<quote>democratic deliberation
</quote> to occur.
2434 <indexterm id='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='startofrange'
><primary>political discourse
</primary></indexterm>
2436 More bizarrely, there is generally not even permission for it to
2437 occur. We, the most powerful democracy in the world, have developed a
2438 strong norm against talking about politics. It's fine to talk about
2439 politics with people you agree with. But it is rude to argue about
2440 politics with people you disagree with. Political discourse becomes
2441 isolated, and isolated discourse becomes more extreme.
<footnote><para>
2443 Cass Sunstein,
<citetitle>Republic.com
</citetitle> (Princeton: Princeton University Press,
2001),
2444 65–80,
175,
182,
183,
192.
2445 </para></footnote> We say what our friends want to hear, and hear very
2446 little beyond what our friends say.
2448 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2449 <indexterm><primary>e-mail
</primary></indexterm>
2450 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>blogs on
</secondary></indexterm>
2451 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Web-logs (blogs)
</primary></indexterm>
2452 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='endofrange'
/>
2453 <indexterm startref='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='endofrange'
/>
2454 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='endofrange'
/>
2456 Enter the blog. The blog's very architecture solves one part of this
2457 problem. People post when they want to post, and people read when they
2458 want to read. The most difficult time is synchronous time.
2459 Technologies that enable asynchronous communication, such as e-mail,
2460 increase the opportunity for communication. Blogs allow for public
2462 <!-- PAGE BREAK 56 -->
2463 discourse without the public ever needing to gather in a single public
2467 But beyond architecture, blogs also have solved the problem of
2468 norms. There's no norm (yet) in blog space not to talk about politics.
2469 Indeed, the space is filled with political speech, on both the right and
2470 the left. Some of the most popular sites are conservative or libertarian,
2471 but there are many of all political stripes. And even blogs that are not
2472 political cover political issues when the occasion merits.
2474 <indexterm><primary>Dean, Howard
</primary></indexterm>
2476 The significance of these blogs is tiny now, though not so tiny. The
2477 name Howard Dean may well have faded from the
2004 presidential race
2478 but for blogs. Yet even if the number of readers is small, the reading
2479 is having an effect.
2481 <indexterm><primary>Lott, Trent
</primary></indexterm>
2482 <indexterm><primary>Thurmond, Strom
</primary></indexterm>
2483 <indexterm id='idxmediablogpressureon' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>blog pressure on
</secondary></indexterm>
2484 <indexterm id='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>news events on
</secondary></indexterm>
2486 One direct effect is on stories that had a different life cycle in the
2487 mainstream media. The Trent Lott affair is an example. When Lott
2488 <quote>misspoke
</quote> at a party for Senator Strom Thurmond, essentially praising
2489 Thurmond's segregationist policies, he calculated correctly that this
2490 story would disappear from the mainstream press within forty-eight
2491 hours. It did. But he didn't calculate its life cycle in blog
2492 space. The bloggers kept researching the story. Over time, more and
2493 more instances of the same
<quote>misspeaking
</quote> emerged. Finally, the story
2494 broke back into the mainstream press. In the end, Lott was forced to
2495 resign as senate majority leader.
<footnote><para>
2497 Noah Shachtman,
<quote>With Incessant Postings, a Pundit Stirs the Pot,
</quote> New
2498 York Times,
16 January
2003, G5.
2501 <indexterm id='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of
</secondary></indexterm>
2503 This different cycle is possible because the same commercial pressures
2504 don't exist with blogs as with other ventures. Television and
2505 newspapers are commercial entities. They must work to keep attention.
2506 If they lose readers, they lose revenue. Like sharks, they must move
2509 <indexterm startref='idxmediablogpressureon' class='endofrange'
/>
2510 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>peer-generated rankings on
</secondary></indexterm>
2512 But bloggers don't have a similar constraint. They can obsess, they
2513 can focus, they can get serious. If a particular blogger writes a
2514 particularly interesting story, more and more people link to that
2515 story. And as the number of links to a particular story increases, it
2516 rises in the ranks of stories. People read what is popular; what is
2517 popular has been selected by a very democratic process of
2518 peer-generated rankings.
2520 <indexterm startref='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='endofrange'
/>
2521 <indexterm id='idxjournalism' class='startofrange'
><primary>journalism
</primary></indexterm>
2522 <indexterm id='idxwinerdave' class='startofrange'
><primary>Winer, Dave
</primary></indexterm>
2524 There's a second way, as well, in which blogs have a different cycle
2525 <!-- PAGE BREAK 57 -->
2526 from the mainstream press. As Dave Winer, one of the fathers of this
2527 movement and a software author for many decades, told me, another
2528 difference is the absence of a financial
<quote>conflict of interest.
</quote> <quote>I think you
2529 have to take the conflict of interest
</quote> out of journalism, Winer told me.
2530 <quote>An amateur journalist simply doesn't have a conflict of interest, or the
2531 conflict of interest is so easily disclosed that you know you can sort of
2532 get it out of the way.
</quote>
2534 <indexterm><primary>CNN
</primary></indexterm>
2535 <indexterm><primary>media
</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of
</secondary></indexterm>
2536 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
2537 <indexterm><primary>media
</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in
</secondary></indexterm>
2539 These conflicts become more important as media becomes more
2540 concentrated (more on this below). A concentrated media can hide more
2541 from the public than an unconcentrated media can
—as CNN admitted
2542 it did after the Iraq war because it was afraid of the consequences to
2543 its own employees.
<footnote><para>
2545 Telephone interview with David Winer,
16 April
2003.
2547 It also needs to sustain a more coherent account. (In the middle of
2548 the Iraq war, I read a post on the Internet from someone who was at
2549 that time listening to a satellite uplink with a reporter in Iraq. The
2550 New York headquarters was telling the reporter over and over that her
2551 account of the war was too bleak: She needed to offer a more
2552 optimistic story. When she told New York that wasn't warranted, they
2553 told her that
<emphasis>they
</emphasis> were writing
<quote>the story.
</quote>)
2555 <indexterm startref='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='endofrange'
/>
2557 Blog space gives amateurs a way to enter the
2558 debate
—<quote>amateur
</quote> not in the sense of inexperienced,
2559 but in the sense of an Olympic athlete, meaning not paid by anyone to
2560 give their reports. It allows for a much broader range of input into a
2561 story, as reporting on the Columbia disaster revealed, when hundreds
2562 from across the southwest United States turned to the Internet to
2563 retell what they had seen.
<footnote><para>
2565 John Schwartz,
<quote>Loss of the Shuttle: The Internet; A Wealth of
2566 Information Online,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
2 February
2003, A28; Staci
2567 D. Kramer,
<quote>Shuttle Disaster Coverage Mixed, but Strong Overall,
</quote>
2568 Online Journalism Review,
2 February
2003, available at
2569 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
10</ulink>.
2571 And it drives readers to read across the range of accounts and
2572 <quote>triangulate,
</quote> as Winer puts it, the truth. Blogs, Winer says, are
2573 <quote>communicating directly with our constituency, and the middle man is
2574 out of it
</quote>—with all the benefits, and costs, that might entail.
2577 Winer is optimistic about the future of journalism infected
2578 with blogs.
<quote>It's going to become an essential skill,
</quote> Winer predicts,
2579 for public figures and increasingly for private figures as well. It's
2580 not clear that
<quote>journalism
</quote> is happy about this
—some journalists
2581 have been told to curtail their blogging.
<footnote>
2584 <indexterm><primary>CNN
</primary></indexterm>
2585 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
2586 <indexterm><primary>Olafson, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
2587 <indexterm><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2588 See Michael Falcone,
<quote>Does an Editor's Pencil Ruin a Web Log?
</quote> <citetitle>New
2589 York Times
</citetitle>,
29 September
2003, C4. (
<quote>Not all news organizations have
2590 been as accepting of employees who blog. Kevin Sites, a CNN
2591 correspondent in Iraq who started a blog about his reporting of the
2592 war on March
9, stopped posting
12 days later at his bosses'
2593 request. Last year Steve Olafson, a
<citetitle>Houston Chronicle
</citetitle> reporter, was
2594 fired for keeping a personal Web log, published under a pseudonym,
2595 that dealt with some of the issues and people he was covering.
</quote>)
2597 But it is clear that we are still in transition.
<quote>A
2599 <!-- PAGE BREAK 58 -->
2600 lot of what we are doing now is warm-up exercises,
</quote> Winer told me.
2601 There is a lot that must mature before this space has its mature effect.
2602 And as the inclusion of content in this space is the least infringing use
2603 of the Internet (meaning infringing on copyright), Winer said,
<quote>we will
2604 be the last thing that gets shut down.
</quote>
2606 <indexterm startref='idxjournalism' class='endofrange'
/>
2608 This speech affects democracy. Winer thinks that happens because
<quote>you
2609 don't have to work for somebody who controls, [for] a gatekeeper.
</quote>
2610 That is true. But it affects democracy in another way as well. As
2611 more and more citizens express what they think, and defend it in
2612 writing, that will change the way people understand public issues. It
2613 is easy to be wrong and misguided in your head. It is harder when the
2614 product of your mind can be criticized by others. Of course, it is a
2615 rare human who admits that he has been persuaded that he is wrong. But
2616 it is even rarer for a human to ignore when he has been proven wrong.
2617 The writing of ideas, arguments, and criticism improves democracy.
2618 Today there are probably a couple of million blogs where such writing
2619 happens. When there are ten million, there will be something
2620 extraordinary to report.
2622 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage' class='endofrange'
/>
2623 <indexterm startref='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='endofrange'
/>
2624 <indexterm startref='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='endofrange'
/>
2625 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs2' class='endofrange'
/>
2626 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson2' class='endofrange'
/>
2627 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs2' class='endofrange'
/>
2628 <indexterm startref='idxwinerdave' class='endofrange'
/>
2629 <indexterm id='idxbrownjohnseely' class='startofrange'
><primary>Brown, John Seely
</primary></indexterm>
2630 <indexterm id='idxadvertising1' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
2632 <emphasis role='strong'
>John Seely Brown
</emphasis> is the chief
2633 scientist of the Xerox Corporation. His work, as his Web site
2634 describes it, is
<quote>human learning and
… the creation of
2635 knowledge ecologies for creating
… innovation.
</quote>
2638 Brown thus looks at these technologies of digital creativity a bit
2639 differently from the perspectives I've sketched so far. I'm sure he
2640 would be excited about any technology that might improve
2641 democracy. But his real excitement comes from how these technologies
2645 As Brown believes, we learn by tinkering. When
<quote>a lot of us grew up,
</quote>
2646 he explains, that tinkering was done
<quote>on motorcycle engines, lawnmower
2647 engines, automobiles, radios, and so on.
</quote> But digital technologies
2648 enable a different kind of tinkering
—with abstract ideas though
2649 in concrete form. The kids at Just Think! not only think about how a
2650 commercial portrays a politician; using digital technology, they can
2651 <!-- PAGE BREAK 59 -->
2652 take the commercial apart and manipulate it, tinker with it to see how
2653 it does what it does. Digital technologies launch a kind of bricolage,
2654 or
<quote>free collage,
</quote> as Brown calls it. Many get to add to or transform
2655 the tinkering of many others.
2658 The best large-scale example of this kind of tinkering so far is free
2659 software or open-source software (FS/OSS). FS/OSS is software whose
2660 source code is shared. Anyone can download the technology that makes a
2661 FS/OSS program run. And anyone eager to learn how a particular bit of
2662 FS/OSS technology works can tinker with the code.
2665 This opportunity creates a
<quote>completely new kind of learning platform,
</quote>
2666 as Brown describes.
<quote>As soon as you start doing that, you
…
2667 unleash a free collage on the community, so that other people can
2668 start looking at your code, tinkering with it, trying it out, seeing
2669 if they can improve it.
</quote> Each effort is a kind of
2670 apprenticeship.
<quote>Open source becomes a major apprenticeship platform.
</quote>
2673 In this process,
<quote>the concrete things you tinker with are abstract.
2674 They are code.
</quote> Kids are
<quote>shifting to the ability to tinker in the
2675 abstract, and this tinkering is no longer an isolated activity that
2676 you're doing in your garage. You are tinkering with a community
2677 platform.
… You are tinkering with other people's stuff. The more
2678 you tinker the more you improve.
</quote> The more you improve, the more you
2682 This same thing happens with content, too. And it happens in the same
2683 collaborative way when that content is part of the Web. As Brown puts
2684 it,
<quote>the Web [is] the first medium that truly honors multiple forms of
2685 intelligence.
</quote> Earlier technologies, such as the typewriter or word
2686 processors, helped amplify text. But the Web amplifies much more than
2687 text.
<quote>The Web
… says if you are musical, if you are artistic, if
2688 you are visual, if you are interested in film
… [then] there is a
2689 lot you can start to do on this medium. [It] can now amplify and honor
2690 these multiple forms of intelligence.
</quote>
2692 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising1' class='endofrange'
/>
2693 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2695 Brown is talking about what Elizabeth Daley, Stephanie Barish, and
2696 Just Think! teach: that this tinkering with culture teaches as well
2698 <!-- PAGE BREAK 60 -->
2699 as creates. It develops talents differently, and it builds a different
2700 kind of recognition.
2703 Yet the freedom to tinker with these objects is not guaranteed.
2704 Indeed, as we'll see through the course of this book, that freedom is
2705 increasingly highly contested. While there's no doubt that your father
2706 had the right to tinker with the car engine, there's great doubt that
2707 your child will have the right to tinker with the images she finds all
2708 around. The law and, increasingly, technology interfere with a
2709 freedom that technology, and curiosity, would otherwise ensure.
2712 These restrictions have become the focus of researchers and scholars.
2713 Professor Ed Felten of Princeton (whom we'll see more of in chapter
2714 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>)
2715 has developed a powerful argument in favor of the
<quote>right to
2716 tinker
</quote> as it applies to computer science and to knowledge in
2717 general.
<footnote><para>
2719 See, for example, Edward Felten and Andrew Appel,
<quote>Technological Access
2720 Control Interferes with Noninfringing Scholarship,
</quote> <citetitle>Communications
2721 of the Association for Computer Machinery
</citetitle> 43 (
2000):
9.
2723 But Brown's concern is earlier, or younger, or more fundamental. It is
2724 about the learning that kids can do, or can't do, because of the law.
2727 <quote>This is where education in the twenty-first century is going,
</quote> Brown
2728 explains. We need to
<quote>understand how kids who grow up digital think
2729 and want to learn.
</quote>
2732 <quote>Yet,
</quote> as Brown continued, and as the balance of this book will
2733 evince,
<quote>we are building a legal system that completely suppresses the
2734 natural tendencies of today's digital kids.
… We're building an
2735 architecture that unleashes
60 percent of the brain [and] a legal
2736 system that closes down that part of the brain.
</quote>
2738 <indexterm startref='idxbrownjohnseely' class='endofrange'
/>
2740 We're building a technology that takes the magic of Kodak, mixes
2741 moving images and sound, and adds a space for commentary and an
2742 opportunity to spread that creativity everywhere. But we're building
2743 the law to close down that technology.
2746 <quote>No way to run a culture,
</quote> as Brewster Kahle, whom we'll meet in
2747 chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"collectors"/>,
2748 quipped to me in a rare moment of despondence.
2750 <!-- PAGE BREAK 61 -->
2752 <chapter label=
"3" id=
"catalogs">
2753 <title>Chapter Three: Catalogs
</title>
2754 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
2755 <indexterm><primary>RPI
</primary><see>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</see></indexterm>
2756 <indexterm id='idxrensselaer' class='startofrange'
><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</primary></indexterm>
2757 <indexterm id='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</primary><secondary>computer network search engine of
</secondary></indexterm>
2758 <indexterm id='idxsearchengines' class='startofrange'
><primary>search engines
</primary></indexterm>
2759 <indexterm id='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='startofrange'
><primary>university computer networks, p2p sharing on
</primary></indexterm>
2760 <indexterm id='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>search engines used on
</secondary></indexterm>
2762 <emphasis role='strong'
>In the fall
</emphasis> of
2002, Jesse Jordan
2763 of Oceanside, New York, enrolled as a freshman at Rensselaer
2764 Polytechnic Institute, in Troy, New York. His major at RPI was
2765 information technology. Though he is not a programmer, in October
2766 Jesse decided to begin to tinker with search engine technology that
2767 was available on the RPI network.
2770 RPI is one of America's foremost technological research institutions.
2771 It offers degrees in fields ranging from architecture and engineering
2772 to information sciences. More than
65 percent of its five thousand
2773 undergraduates finished in the top
10 percent of their high school
2774 class. The school is thus a perfect mix of talent and experience to
2775 imagine and then build, a generation for the network age.
2778 RPI's computer network links students, faculty, and administration to
2779 one another. It also links RPI to the Internet. Not everything
2780 available on the RPI network is available on the Internet. But the
2781 network is designed to enable students to get access to the Internet,
2782 as well as more intimate access to other members of the RPI community.
2784 <indexterm id='idxgoogle' class='startofrange'
><primary>Google
</primary></indexterm>
2786 Search engines are a measure of a network's intimacy. Google
2787 <!-- PAGE BREAK 62 -->
2788 brought the Internet much closer to all of us by fantastically
2789 improving the quality of search on the network. Specialty search
2790 engines can do this even better. The idea of
<quote>intranet
</quote> search
2791 engines, search engines that search within the network of a particular
2792 institution, is to provide users of that institution with better
2793 access to material from that institution. Businesses do this all the
2794 time, enabling employees to have access to material that people
2795 outside the business can't get. Universities do it as well.
2797 <indexterm id='idxjordanjesse' class='startofrange'
><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
2798 <indexterm id='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>network file system of
</secondary></indexterm>
2800 These engines are enabled by the network technology itself.
2801 Microsoft, for example, has a network file system that makes it very
2802 easy for search engines tuned to that network to query the system for
2803 information about the publicly (within that network) available
2804 content. Jesse's search engine was built to take advantage of this
2805 technology. It used Microsoft's network file system to build an index
2806 of all the files available within the RPI network.
2808 <indexterm startref='idxgoogle' class='endofrange'
/>
2810 Jesse's wasn't the first search engine built for the RPI network.
2811 Indeed, his engine was a simple modification of engines that others
2812 had built. His single most important improvement over those engines
2813 was to fix a bug within the Microsoft file-sharing system that could
2814 cause a user's computer to crash. With the engines that existed
2815 before, if you tried to access a file through a Windows browser that
2816 was on a computer that was off-line, your computer could crash. Jesse
2817 modified the system a bit to fix that problem, by adding a button that
2818 a user could click to see if the machine holding the file was still
2821 <indexterm startref='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='endofrange'
/>
2823 Jesse's engine went on-line in late October. Over the following six
2824 months, he continued to tweak it to improve its functionality. By
2825 March, the system was functioning quite well. Jesse had more than one
2826 million files in his directory, including every type of content that might
2827 be on users' computers.
2829 <indexterm startref='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='endofrange'
/>
2831 Thus the index his search engine produced included pictures, which
2832 students could use to put on their own Web sites; copies of notes or
2833 research; copies of information pamphlets; movie clips that students
2834 might have created; university brochures
—basically anything that
2835 <!-- PAGE BREAK 63 -->
2836 users of the RPI network made available in a public folder of their
2839 <indexterm><primary>Google
</primary></indexterm>
2840 <indexterm><primary>education
</primary><secondary>tinkering as means of
</secondary></indexterm>
2842 But the index also included music files. In fact, one quarter of the
2843 files that Jesse's search engine listed were music files. But that
2844 means, of course, that three quarters were not, and
—so that this
2845 point is absolutely clear
—Jesse did nothing to induce people to
2846 put music files in their public folders. He did nothing to target the
2847 search engine to these files. He was a kid tinkering with a
2848 Google-like technology at a university where he was studying
2849 information science, and hence, tinkering was the aim. Unlike Google,
2850 or Microsoft, for that matter, he made no money from this tinkering;
2851 he was not connected to any business that would make any money from
2852 this experiment. He was a kid tinkering with technology in an
2853 environment where tinkering with technology was precisely what he was
2856 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
2857 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>against student file sharing
</secondary></indexterm>
2858 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits of
</secondary></indexterm>
2859 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits filed by
</secondary></indexterm>
2860 <indexterm startref='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='endofrange'
/>
2862 On April
3,
2003, Jesse was contacted by the dean of students at
2863 RPI. The dean informed Jesse that the Recording Industry Association
2864 of America, the RIAA, would be filing a lawsuit against him and three
2865 other students whom he didn't even know, two of them at other
2866 universities. A few hours later, Jesse was served with papers from
2867 the suit. As he read these papers and watched the news reports about
2868 them, he was increasingly astonished.
2871 <quote>It was absurd,
</quote> he told me.
<quote>I don't think I did anything
2872 wrong.
… I don't think there's anything wrong with the search
2873 engine that I ran or
… what I had done to it. I mean, I hadn't
2874 modified it in any way that promoted or enhanced the work of
2875 pirates. I just modified the search engine in a way that would make it
2876 easier to use
</quote>—again, a
<emphasis>search engine
</emphasis>,
2877 which Jesse had not himself built, using the Windows filesharing
2878 system, which Jesse had not himself built, to enable members of the
2879 RPI community to get access to content, which Jesse had not himself
2880 created or posted, and the vast majority of which had nothing to do
2883 <indexterm startref='idxsearchengines' class='endofrange'
/>
2884 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
2885 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>statutory damages of
</secondary></indexterm>
2886 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>individual defendants intimidated by
</secondary></indexterm>
2887 <indexterm><primary>statutory damages
</primary></indexterm>
2888 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>intimidation tactics of
</secondary></indexterm>
2890 But the RIAA branded Jesse a pirate. They claimed he operated a
2891 network and had therefore
<quote>willfully
</quote> violated copyright laws. They
2892 <!-- PAGE BREAK 64 -->
2893 demanded that he pay them the damages for his wrong. For cases of
2894 <quote>willful infringement,
</quote> the Copyright Act specifies something lawyers
2895 call
<quote>statutory damages.
</quote> These damages permit a copyright owner to
2896 claim $
150,
000 per infringement. As the RIAA alleged more than one
2897 hundred specific copyright infringements, they therefore demanded that
2898 Jesse pay them at least $
15,
000,
000.
2900 <indexterm><primary>Michigan Technical University
</primary></indexterm>
2901 <indexterm><primary>Princeton University
</primary></indexterm>
2903 Similar lawsuits were brought against three other students: one other
2904 student at RPI, one at Michigan Technical University, and one at
2905 Princeton. Their situations were similar to Jesse's. Though each case
2906 was different in detail, the bottom line in each was exactly the same:
2907 huge demands for
<quote>damages
</quote> that the RIAA claimed it was entitled to.
2908 If you added up the claims, these four lawsuits were asking courts in
2909 the United States to award the plaintiffs close to $
100
2910 <emphasis>billion
</emphasis>—six times the
2911 <emphasis>total
</emphasis> profit of the film industry in
2912 2001.
<footnote><para>
2915 Tim Goral,
<quote>Recording Industry Goes After Campus P-
2-P Networks:
2916 Suit Alleges $
97.8 Billion in Damages,
</quote> <citetitle>Professional Media Group LCC
</citetitle> 6
2917 (
2003):
5, available at
2003 WL
55179443.
2920 <indexterm startref='idxrensselaer' class='endofrange'
/>
2922 Jesse called his parents. They were supportive but a bit frightened.
2923 An uncle was a lawyer. He began negotiations with the RIAA. They
2924 demanded to know how much money Jesse had. Jesse had saved
2925 $
12,
000 from summer jobs and other employment. They demanded
2926 $
12,
000 to dismiss the case.
2928 <indexterm><primary>Oppenheimer, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
2930 The RIAA wanted Jesse to admit to doing something wrong. He
2931 refused. They wanted him to agree to an injunction that would
2932 essentially make it impossible for him to work in many fields of
2933 technology for the rest of his life. He refused. They made him
2934 understand that this process of being sued was not going to be
2935 pleasant. (As Jesse's father recounted to me, the chief lawyer on the
2936 case, Matt Oppenheimer, told Jesse,
<quote>You don't want to pay another
2937 visit to a dentist like me.
</quote>) And throughout, the RIAA insisted it
2938 would not settle the case until it took every penny Jesse had saved.
2940 <indexterm><primary>legal system, attorney costs in
</primary></indexterm>
2942 Jesse's family was outraged at these claims. They wanted to fight.
2943 But Jesse's uncle worked to educate the family about the nature of the
2944 American legal system. Jesse could fight the RIAA. He might even
2945 win. But the cost of fighting a lawsuit like this, Jesse was told, would be
2946 at least $
250,
000. If he won, he would not recover that money. If he
2947 <!-- PAGE BREAK 65 -->
2948 won, he would have a piece of paper saying he had won, and a piece of
2949 paper saying he and his family were bankrupt.
2952 So Jesse faced a mafia-like choice: $
250,
000 and a chance at winning,
2953 or $
12,
000 and a settlement.
2955 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
2956 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
2957 <indexterm><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>lobbying power of
</secondary></indexterm>
2959 The recording industry insists this is a matter of law and morality.
2960 Let's put the law aside for a moment and think about the morality.
2961 Where is the morality in a lawsuit like this? What is the virtue in
2962 scapegoatism? The RIAA is an extraordinarily powerful lobby. The
2963 president of the RIAA is reported to make more than $
1 million a year.
2964 Artists, on the other hand, are not well paid. The average recording
2965 artist makes $
45,
900.
<footnote><para>
2967 Occupational Employment Survey, U.S. Dept. of Labor (
2001)
2968 (
27–2042—Musicians and Singers). See also National Endowment for
2969 the Arts,
<citetitle>More Than One in a Blue Moon
</citetitle> (
2000).
2971 There are plenty of ways for the RIAA to affect
2972 and direct policy. So where is the morality in taking money from a
2973 student for running a search engine?
<footnote><para>
2975 Douglas Lichtman makes a related point in
<quote>KaZaA and Punishment,
</quote>
2976 <citetitle>Wall Street Journal
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, A24.
2979 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='endofrange'
/>
2980 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='endofrange'
/>
2982 On June
23, Jesse wired his savings to the lawyer working for the
2983 RIAA. The case against him was then dismissed. And with this, this
2984 kid who had tinkered a computer into a $
15 million lawsuit became an
2989 I was definitely not an activist [before]. I never really meant to be
2990 an activist.
… [But] I've been pushed into this. In no way did I
2991 ever foresee anything like this, but I think it's just completely
2992 absurd what the RIAA has done.
2996 Jesse's parents betray a certain pride in their reluctant activist. As
2997 his father told me, Jesse
<quote>considers himself very conservative, and so do
2998 I.
… He's not a tree hugger.
… I think it's bizarre that they would
2999 pick on him. But he wants to let people know that they're sending the
3000 wrong message. And he wants to correct the record.
</quote>
3002 <indexterm startref='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='endofrange'
/>
3003 <indexterm startref='idxjordanjesse' class='endofrange'
/>
3004 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
3005 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='endofrange'
/>
3006 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='endofrange'
/>
3007 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='endofrange'
/>
3008 <!-- PAGE BREAK 66 -->
3010 <chapter label=
"4" id=
"pirates">
3011 <title>Chapter Four:
<quote>Pirates
</quote></title>
3012 <indexterm id='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in development of content industry
</secondary></indexterm>
3013 <indexterm><primary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory
</primary></indexterm>
3015 <emphasis role='strong'
>If
<quote>piracy
</quote> means
</emphasis>
3016 using the creative property of others without their
3017 permission
—if
<quote>if value, then right
</quote> is
3018 true
—then the history of the content industry is a history of
3019 piracy. Every important sector of
<quote>big media
</quote>
3020 today
—film, records, radio, and cable TV
—was born of a
3021 kind of piracy so defined. The consistent story is how last
3022 generation's pirates join this generation's country club
—until
3028 The film industry of Hollywood was built by fleeing pirates.
<footnote><para>
3030 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
3031 I am grateful to Peter DiMauro for pointing me to this extraordinary
3032 history. See also Siva Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
87–93,
3033 which details Edison's
<quote>adventures
</quote> with copyright and patent.
3035 Creators and directors migrated from the East Coast to California in
3036 the early twentieth century in part to escape controls that patents
3037 granted the inventor of filmmaking, Thomas Edison. These controls were
3038 exercised through a monopoly
<quote>trust,
</quote> the Motion Pictures Patents
3039 Company, and were based on Thomas Edison's creative
3040 property
—patents. Edison formed the MPPC to exercise the rights
3041 this creative property
3042 <!-- PAGE BREAK 67 -->
3043 gave him, and the MPPC was serious about the control it demanded.
3046 As one commentator tells one part of the story,
3050 A January
1909 deadline was set for all companies to comply with
3051 the license. By February, unlicensed outlaws, who referred to
3052 themselves as independents protested the trust and carried on
3053 business without submitting to the Edison monopoly. In the
3054 summer of
1909 the independent movement was in full-swing,
3055 with producers and theater owners using illegal equipment and
3056 imported film stock to create their own underground market.
3058 <indexterm><primary>Fox, William
</primary></indexterm>
3059 <indexterm><primary>General Film Company
</primary></indexterm>
3060 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
3062 With the country experiencing a tremendous expansion in the number of
3063 nickelodeons, the Patents Company reacted to the independent movement
3064 by forming a strong-arm subsidiary known as the General Film Company
3065 to block the entry of non-licensed independents. With coercive tactics
3066 that have become legendary, General Film confiscated unlicensed
3067 equipment, discontinued product supply to theaters which showed
3068 unlicensed films, and effectively monopolized distribution with the
3069 acquisition of all U.S. film exchanges, except for the one owned by
3070 the independent William Fox who defied the Trust even after his
3071 license was revoked.
<footnote><para>
3073 J. A. Aberdeen,
<citetitle>Hollywood Renegades: The Society of Independent Motion
3074 Picture Producers
</citetitle> (Cobblestone Entertainment,
2000) and expanded texts
3075 posted at
<quote>The Edison Movie Monopoly: The Motion Picture Patents
3076 Company vs. the Independent Outlaws,
</quote> available at
3077 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
11</ulink>. For a
3078 discussion of the economic motive behind both these limits and the
3079 limits imposed by Victor on phonographs, see Randal C. Picker,
<quote>From
3080 Edison to the Broadcast Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and
3081 the Propertization of Copyright
</quote> (September
2002), University of
3082 Chicago Law School, James M. Olin Program in Law and Economics,
3083 Working Paper No.
159.
3084 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
3089 The Napsters of those days, the
<quote>independents,
</quote> were companies like
3090 Fox. And no less than today, these independents were vigorously
3091 resisted.
<quote>Shooting was disrupted by machinery stolen, and
3092 `accidents' resulting in loss of negatives, equipment, buildings and
3093 sometimes life and limb frequently occurred.
</quote><footnote><para>
3095 Marc Wanamaker,
<quote>The First Studios,
</quote> <citetitle>The Silents Majority
</citetitle>, archived at
3096 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
12</ulink>.
3098 That led the independents to flee the East
3099 Coast. California was remote enough from Edison's reach that
3100 filmmakers there could pirate his inventions without fear of the
3101 law. And the leaders of Hollywood filmmaking, Fox most prominently,
3105 Of course, California grew quickly, and the effective enforcement
3106 of federal law eventually spread west. But because patents grant the
3107 patent holder a truly
<quote>limited
</quote> monopoly (just seventeen years at that
3109 <!-- PAGE BREAK 68 -->
3110 time), by the time enough federal marshals appeared, the patents had
3111 expired. A new industry had been born, in part from the piracy of
3112 Edison's creative property.
3115 <section id=
"recordedmusic">
3116 <title>Recorded Music
</title>
3117 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on music recordings
</secondary></indexterm>
3119 The record industry was born of another kind of piracy, though to see
3120 how requires a bit of detail about the way the law regulates music.
3122 <indexterm id='idxfourneauxhenri' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fourneaux, Henri
</primary></indexterm>
3123 <indexterm><primary>Russel, Phil
</primary></indexterm>
3125 At the time that Edison and Henri Fourneaux invented machines
3126 for reproducing music (Edison the phonograph, Fourneaux the player
3127 piano), the law gave composers the exclusive right to control copies of
3128 their music and the exclusive right to control public performances of
3129 their music. In other words, in
1900, if I wanted a copy of Phil Russel's
3130 1899 hit
<quote>Happy Mose,
</quote> the law said I would have to pay for the right
3131 to get a copy of the musical score, and I would also have to pay for the
3132 right to perform it publicly.
3134 <indexterm><primary>Beatles
</primary></indexterm>
3136 But what if I wanted to record
<quote>Happy Mose,
</quote> using Edison's phonograph
3137 or Fourneaux's player piano? Here the law stumbled. It was clear
3138 enough that I would have to buy any copy of the musical score that I
3139 performed in making this recording. And it was clear enough that I
3140 would have to pay for any public performance of the work I was
3141 recording. But it wasn't totally clear that I would have to pay for a
3142 <quote>public performance
</quote> if I recorded the song in my own house (even
3143 today, you don't owe the Beatles anything if you sing their songs in
3144 the shower), or if I recorded the song from memory (copies in your
3145 brain are not
—yet
— regulated by copyright law). So if I
3146 simply sang the song into a recording device in the privacy of my own
3147 home, it wasn't clear that I owed the composer anything. And more
3148 importantly, it wasn't clear whether I owed the composer anything if I
3149 then made copies of those recordings. Because of this gap in the law,
3150 then, I could effectively pirate someone else's song without paying
3151 its composer anything.
3153 <indexterm startref='idxfourneauxhenri' class='endofrange'
/>
3155 The composers (and publishers) were none too happy about
3156 <!-- PAGE BREAK 69 -->
3157 this capacity to pirate. As South Dakota senator Alfred Kittredge
3159 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred
</primary></indexterm>
3163 Imagine the injustice of the thing. A composer writes a song or an
3164 opera. A publisher buys at great expense the rights to the same and
3165 copyrights it. Along come the phonographic companies and companies who
3166 cut music rolls and deliberately steal the work of the brain of the
3167 composer and publisher without any regard for [their]
3168 rights.
<footnote><para>
3170 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright: Hearings on
3171 S.
6330 and H.R.
19853 Before the (Joint) Committees on Patents,
59th
3172 Cong.
59,
1st sess. (
1906) (statement of Senator Alfred B. Kittredge,
3173 of South Dakota, chairman), reprinted in
<citetitle>Legislative History of the
3174 Copyright Act
</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and Abe Goldman, eds. (South
3175 Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints,
1976).
3176 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred
</primary></indexterm>
3180 <indexterm><primary>Sousa, John Philip
</primary></indexterm>
3182 The innovators who developed the technology to record other
3183 people's works were
<quote>sponging upon the toil, the work, the talent, and
3184 genius of American composers,
</quote><footnote><para>
3186 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
223
3187 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3189 and the
<quote>music publishing industry
</quote>
3190 was thereby
<quote>at the complete mercy of this one pirate.
</quote><footnote><para>
3192 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
226
3193 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3196 Sousa put it, in as direct a way as possible,
<quote>When they make money
3197 out of my pieces, I want a share of it.
</quote><footnote><para>
3199 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
23
3200 (statement of John Philip Sousa, composer).
3203 <indexterm><primary>American Graphophone Company
</primary></indexterm>
3204 <indexterm><primary>player pianos
</primary></indexterm>
3205 <indexterm><primary>sheet music
</primary></indexterm>
3206 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
3207 <indexterm id='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
3208 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
3209 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustrystatutorylicensesystemin' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>statutory license system in
</secondary></indexterm>
3211 These arguments have familiar echoes in the wars of our day. So, too,
3212 do the arguments on the other side. The innovators who developed the
3213 player piano argued that
<quote>it is perfectly demonstrable that the
3214 introduction of automatic music players has not deprived any composer
3215 of anything he had before their introduction.
</quote> Rather, the machines
3216 increased the sales of sheet music.
<footnote><para>
3219 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
283–84
3220 (statement of Albert Walker, representative of the Auto-Music
3221 Perforating Company of New York).
3222 </para></footnote> In any case, the innovators argued, the job of
3223 Congress was
<quote>to consider first the interest of [the public], whom
3224 they represent, and whose servants they are.
</quote> <quote>All talk about
3225 `theft,'
</quote> the general counsel of the American Graphophone Company
3226 wrote,
<quote>is the merest claptrap, for there exists no property in ideas
3227 musical, literary or artistic, except as defined by
3228 statute.
</quote><footnote><para>
3230 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
376 (prepared
3231 memorandum of Philip Mauro, general patent counsel of the American
3232 Graphophone Company Association).
3235 <indexterm><primary>cover songs
</primary></indexterm>
3237 The law soon resolved this battle in favor of the composer
3238 <emphasis>and
</emphasis> the recording artist. Congress amended the
3239 law to make sure that composers would be paid for the
<quote>mechanical
3240 reproductions
</quote> of their music. But rather than simply granting the
3241 composer complete control over the right to make mechanical
3242 reproductions, Congress gave recording artists a right to record the
3243 music, at a price set by Congress, once the composer allowed it to be
3244 recorded once. This is the part of
3246 <!-- PAGE BREAK 70 -->
3247 copyright law that makes cover songs possible. Once a composer
3248 authorizes a recording of his song, others are free to record the same
3249 song, so long as they pay the original composer a fee set by the law.
3251 <indexterm id='idxcompulsorylicense' class='startofrange'
><primary>compulsory license
</primary></indexterm>
3252 <indexterm id='idxstatutorylicenses' class='startofrange'
><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
3254 American law ordinarily calls this a
<quote>compulsory license,
</quote> but I will
3255 refer to it as a
<quote>statutory license.
</quote> A statutory license is a license
3256 whose key terms are set by law. After Congress's amendment of the
3257 Copyright Act in
1909, record companies were free to distribute copies
3258 of recordings so long as they paid the composer (or copyright holder)
3259 the fee set by the statute.
3261 <indexterm id='idxgrishamjohn' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grisham, John
</primary></indexterm>
3263 This is an exception within the law of copyright. When John Grisham
3264 writes a novel, a publisher is free to publish that novel only if
3265 Grisham gives the publisher permission. Grisham, in turn, is free to
3266 charge whatever he wants for that permission. The price to publish
3267 Grisham is thus set by Grisham, and copyright law ordinarily says you
3268 have no permission to use Grisham's work except with permission of
3271 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='endofrange'
/>
3272 <indexterm><primary>Beatles
</primary></indexterm>
3274 But the law governing recordings gives recording artists less. And
3275 thus, in effect, the law
<emphasis>subsidizes
</emphasis> the recording
3276 industry through a kind of piracy
—by giving recording artists a
3277 weaker right than it otherwise gives creative authors. The Beatles
3278 have less control over their creative work than Grisham does. And the
3279 beneficiaries of this less control are the recording industry and the
3280 public. The recording industry gets something of value for less than
3281 it otherwise would pay; the public gets access to a much wider range
3282 of musical creativity. Indeed, Congress was quite explicit about its
3283 reasons for granting this right. Its fear was the monopoly power of
3284 rights holders, and that that power would stifle follow-on
3285 creativity.
<footnote><para>
3288 Copyright Law Revision: Hearings on S.
2499, S.
2900, H.R.
243, and
3289 H.R.
11794 Before the (Joint) Committee on Patents,
60th Cong.,
1st
3290 sess.,
217 (
1908) (statement of Senator Reed Smoot, chairman), reprinted
3291 in
<citetitle>Legislative History of the
1909 Copyright Act
</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and
3292 Abe Goldman, eds. (South Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints,
1976).
3295 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws' class='endofrange'
/>
3296 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
3297 <indexterm startref='idxgrishamjohn' class='endofrange'
/>
3299 While the recording industry has been quite coy about this recently,
3300 historically it has been quite a supporter of the statutory license for
3301 records. As a
1967 report from the House Committee on the Judiciary
3306 the record producers argued vigorously that the compulsory
3307 <!-- PAGE BREAK 71 -->
3308 license system must be retained. They asserted that the record
3309 industry is a half-billion-dollar business of great economic
3310 importance in the United States and throughout the world; records
3311 today are the principal means of disseminating music, and this creates
3312 special problems, since performers need unhampered access to musical
3313 material on nondiscriminatory terms. Historically, the record
3314 producers pointed out, there were no recording rights before
1909 and
3315 the
1909 statute adopted the compulsory license as a deliberate
3316 anti-monopoly condition on the grant of these rights. They argue that
3317 the result has been an outpouring of recorded music, with the public
3318 being given lower prices, improved quality, and a greater
3319 choice.
<footnote><para>
3321 Copyright Law Revision: Report to Accompany H.R.
2512, House Committee
3322 on the Judiciary,
90th Cong.,
1st sess., House Document no.
83, (
8
3323 March
1967). I am grateful to Glenn Brown for drawing my attention to
3324 this report.
</para></footnote>
3327 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin' class='endofrange'
/>
3328 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustrystatutorylicensesystemin' class='endofrange'
/>
3329 <indexterm startref='idxcompulsorylicense' class='endofrange'
/>
3330 <indexterm startref='idxstatutorylicenses' class='endofrange'
/>
3332 By limiting the rights musicians have, by partially pirating their
3333 creative work, the record producers, and the public, benefit.
3336 <section id=
"radio">
3337 <title>Radio
</title>
3338 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
3339 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
3341 Radio was also born of piracy.
3344 When a radio station plays a record on the air, that constitutes a
3345 <quote>public performance
</quote> of the composer's work.
<footnote><para>
3347 See
17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, sections
106 and
110. At the beginning,
3348 record companies printed
<quote>Not Licensed for Radio Broadcast
</quote> and other
3349 messages purporting to restrict the ability to play a record on a
3350 radio station. Judge Learned Hand rejected the argument that a
3351 warning attached to a record might restrict the rights of the radio
3352 station. See
<citetitle>RCA Manufacturing Co
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Whiteman
</citetitle>,
114 F.
2d
86 (
2nd
3353 Cir.
1940). See also Randal C. Picker,
<quote>From Edison to the Broadcast
3354 Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and the Propertization of
3355 Copyright,
</quote> <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
281.
3356 <indexterm><primary>Hand, Learned
</primary></indexterm>
3357 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
3359 As I described above, the law gives the composer (or copyright holder)
3360 an exclusive right to public performances of his work. The radio
3361 station thus owes the composer money for that performance.
3364 But when the radio station plays a record, it is not only performing a
3365 copy of the
<emphasis>composer's
</emphasis> work. The radio station is
3366 also performing a copy of the
<emphasis>recording artist's
</emphasis>
3367 work. It's one thing to have
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> sung on the radio by the
3368 local children's choir; it's quite another to have it sung by the
3369 Rolling Stones or Lyle Lovett. The recording artist is adding to the
3370 value of the composition performed on the radio station. And if the
3371 law were perfectly consistent, the radio station would have to pay the
3372 recording artist for his work, just as it pays the composer of the
3374 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
3376 <!-- PAGE BREAK 72 -->
3379 But it doesn't. Under the law governing radio performances, the radio
3380 station does not have to pay the recording artist. The radio station
3381 need only pay the composer. The radio station thus gets a bit of
3382 something for nothing. It gets to perform the recording artist's work
3383 for free, even if it must pay the composer something for the privilege
3384 of playing the song.
3386 <indexterm id='idxmadonna' class='startofrange'
><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
3388 This difference can be huge. Imagine you compose a piece of music.
3389 Imagine it is your first. You own the exclusive right to authorize
3390 public performances of that music. So if Madonna wants to sing your
3391 song in public, she has to get your permission.
3394 Imagine she does sing your song, and imagine she likes it a lot. She
3395 then decides to make a recording of your song, and it becomes a top
3396 hit. Under our law, every time a radio station plays your song, you
3397 get some money. But Madonna gets nothing, save the indirect effect on
3398 the sale of her CDs. The public performance of her recording is not a
3399 <quote>protected
</quote> right. The radio station thus gets to
3400 <emphasis>pirate
</emphasis> the value of Madonna's work without paying
3403 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto' class='endofrange'
/>
3404 <indexterm startref='idxmadonna' class='endofrange'
/>
3406 No doubt, one might argue that, on balance, the recording artists
3407 benefit. On average, the promotion they get is worth more than the
3408 performance rights they give up. Maybe. But even if so, the law
3409 ordinarily gives the creator the right to make this choice. By making
3410 the choice for him or her, the law gives the radio station the right
3411 to take something for nothing.
3413 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand' class='endofrange'
/>
3415 <section id=
"cabletv">
3416 <title>Cable TV
</title>
3417 <indexterm id='idxcabletelevision' class='startofrange'
><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
3419 Cable TV was also born of a kind of piracy.
3422 When cable entrepreneurs first started wiring communities with cable
3423 television in
1948, most refused to pay broadcasters for the content
3424 that they echoed to their customers. Even when the cable companies
3425 started selling access to television broadcasts, they refused to pay
3426 <!-- PAGE BREAK 73 -->
3427 for what they sold. Cable companies were thus Napsterizing
3428 broadcasters' content, but more egregiously than anything Napster ever
3429 did
— Napster never charged for the content it enabled others to
3432 <indexterm><primary>Anello, Douglas
</primary></indexterm>
3433 <indexterm><primary>Burdick, Quentin
</primary></indexterm>
3434 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.
</primary></indexterm>
3436 Broadcasters and copyright owners were quick to attack this theft.
3437 Rosel Hyde, chairman of the FCC, viewed the practice as a kind of
3438 <quote>unfair and potentially destructive competition.
</quote><footnote><para>
3440 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV: Hearing on S.
1006 Before the
3441 Subcommittee on Patents, Trademarks, and Copyrights of the Senate
3442 Committee on the Judiciary,
89th Cong.,
2nd sess.,
78 (
1966)
3443 (statement of Rosel H. Hyde, chairman of the Federal Communications
3445 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.
</primary></indexterm>
3447 There may have been a
<quote>public interest
</quote> in spreading the reach of cable
3448 TV, but as Douglas Anello, general counsel to the National Association
3449 of Broadcasters, asked Senator Quentin Burdick during testimony,
<quote>Does public
3450 interest dictate that you use somebody else's property?
</quote><footnote><para>
3452 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
116 (statement of Douglas A. Anello,
3453 general counsel of the National Association of Broadcasters).
3455 As another broadcaster put it,
3459 The extraordinary thing about the CATV business is that it is the
3460 only business I know of where the product that is being sold is not
3461 paid for.
<footnote><para>
3463 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
126 (statement of Ernest W. Jennes,
3464 general counsel of the Association of Maximum Service Telecasters, Inc.).
3469 Again, the demand of the copyright holders seemed reasonable enough:
3473 All we are asking for is a very simple thing, that people who now
3474 take our property for nothing pay for it. We are trying to stop
3475 piracy and I don't think there is any lesser word to describe it. I
3476 think there are harsher words which would fit it.
<footnote><para>
3478 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
169 (joint statement of Arthur B.
3479 Krim, president of United Artists Corp., and John Sinn, president of
3480 United Artists Television, Inc.).
3484 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton
</primary></indexterm>
3486 These were
<quote>free-ride[rs],
</quote> Screen Actor's Guild president Charlton
3487 Heston said, who were
<quote>depriving actors of
3488 compensation.
</quote><footnote><para>
3490 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
209 (statement of Charlton Heston,
3491 president of the Screen Actors Guild).
3492 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton
</primary></indexterm>
3497 But again, there was another side to the debate. As Assistant Attorney
3498 General Edwin Zimmerman put it,
3502 Our point here is that unlike the problem of whether you have any
3503 copyright protection at all, the problem here is whether copyright
3504 holders who are already compensated, who already have a monopoly,
3505 should be permitted to extend that monopoly.
… The
3507 <!-- PAGE BREAK 74 -->
3508 question here is how much compensation they should have and
3509 how far back they should carry their right to compensation.
<footnote><para>
3511 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
216 (statement of Edwin M.
3512 Zimmerman, acting assistant attorney general).
3513 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin
</primary></indexterm>
3515 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin
</primary></indexterm>
3519 Copyright owners took the cable companies to court. Twice the Supreme
3520 Court held that the cable companies owed the copyright owners nothing.
3523 It took Congress almost thirty years before it resolved the question
3524 of whether cable companies had to pay for the content they
<quote>pirated.
</quote>
3525 In the end, Congress resolved this question in the same way that it
3526 resolved the question about record players and player pianos. Yes,
3527 cable companies would have to pay for the content that they broadcast;
3528 but the price they would have to pay was not set by the copyright
3529 owner. The price was set by law, so that the broadcasters couldn't
3530 exercise veto power over the emerging technologies of cable. Cable
3531 companies thus built their empire in part upon a
<quote>piracy
</quote> of the value
3532 created by broadcasters' content.
3534 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
3535 <indexterm startref='idxcabletelevision' class='endofrange'
/>
3537 <emphasis role='strong'
>These separate stories
</emphasis> sing a
3538 common theme. If
<quote>piracy
</quote> means using value from someone
3539 else's creative property without permission from that creator
—as
3540 it is increasingly described today
<footnote><para>
3542 See, for example, National Music Publisher's Association,
<citetitle>The Engine
3543 of Free Expression: Copyright on the Internet
—The Myth of Free
3544 Information
</citetitle>, available at
3545 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
13</ulink>.
<quote>The
3546 threat of piracy
—the use of someone else's creative work without
3547 permission or compensation
—has grown with the Internet.
</quote>
3549 — then
<emphasis>every
</emphasis> industry affected by copyright
3550 today is the product and beneficiary of a certain kind of
3551 piracy. Film, records, radio, cable TV.
… The list is long and
3552 could well be expanded. Every generation welcomes the pirates from the
3553 last. Every generation
—until now.
3555 <!-- PAGE BREAK 75 -->
3558 <chapter label=
"5" id=
"piracy">
3559 <title>Chapter Five:
<quote>Piracy
</quote></title>
3561 <emphasis role='strong'
>There is piracy
</emphasis> of copyrighted
3562 material. Lots of it. This piracy comes in many forms. The most
3563 significant is commercial piracy, the unauthorized taking of other
3564 people's content within a commercial context. Despite the many
3565 justifications that are offered in its defense, this taking is
3566 wrong. No one should condone it, and the law should stop it.
3569 But as well as copy-shop piracy, there is another kind of
<quote>taking
</quote>
3570 that is more directly related to the Internet. That taking, too, seems
3571 wrong to many, and it is wrong much of the time. Before we paint this
3572 taking
<quote>piracy,
</quote> however, we should understand its nature a bit more.
3573 For the harm of this taking is significantly more ambiguous than
3574 outright copying, and the law should account for that ambiguity, as it
3575 has so often done in the past.
3576 <!-- PAGE BREAK 76 -->
3578 <section id=
"piracy-i">
3579 <title>Piracy I
</title>
3580 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3581 <indexterm id='idxcdsforeign' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>foreign piracy of
</secondary></indexterm>
3583 All across the world, but especially in Asia and Eastern Europe, there
3584 are businesses that do nothing but take others people's copyrighted
3585 content, copy it, and sell it
—all without the permission of a copyright
3586 owner. The recording industry estimates that it loses about $
4.6 billion
3587 every year to physical piracy
<footnote><para>
3589 See IFPI (International Federation of the Phonographic Industry),
<citetitle>The
3590 Recording Industry Commercial Piracy Report
2003</citetitle>, July
2003, available
3591 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
14</ulink>. See
3592 also Ben Hunt,
<quote>Companies Warned on Music Piracy Risk,
</quote> <citetitle>Financial
3593 Times
</citetitle>,
14 February
2003,
11.
3595 (that works out to one in three CDs sold worldwide). The MPAA
3596 estimates that it loses $
3 billion annually worldwide to piracy.
3599 This is piracy plain and simple. Nothing in the argument of this
3600 book, nor in the argument that most people make when talking about
3601 the subject of this book, should draw into doubt this simple point:
3602 This piracy is wrong.
3605 Which is not to say that excuses and justifications couldn't be made
3606 for it. We could, for example, remind ourselves that for the first one
3607 hundred years of the American Republic, America did not honor foreign
3608 copyrights. We were born, in this sense, a pirate nation. It might
3609 therefore seem hypocritical for us to insist so strongly that other
3610 developing nations treat as wrong what we, for the first hundred years
3611 of our existence, treated as right.
3614 That excuse isn't terribly strong. Technically, our law did not ban
3615 the taking of foreign works. It explicitly limited itself to American
3616 works. Thus the American publishers who published foreign works
3617 without the permission of foreign authors were not violating any rule.
3618 The copy shops in Asia, by contrast, are violating Asian law. Asian
3619 law does protect foreign copyrights, and the actions of the copy shops
3620 violate that law. So the wrong of piracy that they engage in is not
3621 just a moral wrong, but a legal wrong, and not just an internationally
3622 legal wrong, but a locally legal wrong as well.
3625 True, these local rules have, in effect, been imposed upon these
3626 countries. No country can be part of the world economy and choose
3627 <!-- PAGE BREAK 77-->
3628 not to protect copyright internationally. We may have been born a
3629 pirate nation, but we will not allow any other nation to have a
3633 If a country is to be treated as a sovereign, however, then its laws are
3634 its laws regardless of their source. The international law under which
3635 these nations live gives them some opportunities to escape the burden
3636 of intellectual property law.
<footnote><para>
3638 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite, Information Feudalism:
3639 <citetitle>Who Owns the Knowledge Economy?
</citetitle> (New York: The
3640 New Press,
2003),
10–13,
209. The Trade-Related Aspects of
3641 Intellectual Property Rights (TRIPS) agreement obligates member
3642 nations to create administrative and enforcement mechanisms for
3643 intellectual property rights, a costly proposition for developing
3644 countries. Additionally, patent rights may lead to higher prices for
3645 staple industries such as agriculture. Critics of TRIPS question the
3646 disparity between burdens imposed upon developing countries and
3647 benefits conferred to industrialized nations. TRIPS does permit
3648 governments to use patents for public, noncommercial uses without
3649 first obtaining the patent holder's permission. Developing nations may
3650 be able to use this to gain the benefits of foreign patents at lower
3651 prices. This is a promising strategy for developing nations within the
3653 <indexterm><primary>agricultural patents
</primary></indexterm>
3654 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
3655 </para></footnote> In my view, more developing nations should take
3656 advantage of that opportunity, but when they don't, then their laws
3657 should be respected. And under the laws of these nations, this piracy
3660 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3662 Alternatively, we could try to excuse this piracy by noting that in
3663 any case, it does no harm to the industry. The Chinese who get access
3664 to American CDs at
50 cents a copy are not people who would have
3665 bought those American CDs at $
15 a copy. So no one really has any
3666 less money than they otherwise would have had.
<footnote><para>
3668 For an analysis of the economic impact of copying technology, see Stan
3669 Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy
</citetitle> (New York: Amacom,
2002),
3670 144–90.
<quote>In some instances
… the impact of piracy on the
3671 copyright holder's ability to appropriate the value of the work will
3672 be negligible. One obvious instance is the case where the individual
3673 engaging in pirating would not have purchased an original even if
3674 pirating were not an option.
</quote> Ibid.,
149.
3675 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
3679 This is often true (though I have friends who have purchased many
3680 thousands of pirated DVDs who certainly have enough money to pay
3681 for the content they have taken), and it does mitigate to some degree
3682 the harm caused by such taking. Extremists in this debate love to say,
3683 <quote>You wouldn't go into Barnes
& Noble and take a book off of the shelf
3684 without paying; why should it be any different with on-line music?
</quote>
3685 The difference is, of course, that when you take a book from Barnes
&
3686 Noble, it has one less book to sell. By contrast, when you take an MP3
3687 from a computer network, there is not one less CD that can be sold.
3688 The physics of piracy of the intangible are different from the physics of
3689 piracy of the tangible.
3691 <indexterm startref='idxcdsforeign' class='endofrange'
/>
3693 This argument is still very weak. However, although copyright is a
3694 property right of a very special sort, it
<emphasis>is
</emphasis> a
3695 property right. Like all property rights, the copyright gives the
3696 owner the right to decide the terms under which content is shared. If
3697 the copyright owner doesn't want to sell, she doesn't have to. There
3698 are exceptions: important statutory licenses that apply to copyrighted
3699 content regardless of the wish of the copyright owner. Those licenses
3700 give people the right to
<quote>take
</quote> copyrighted content whether or not the
3701 copyright owner wants to sell. But
3703 <!-- PAGE BREAK 78 -->
3704 where the law does not give people the right to take content, it is
3705 wrong to take that content even if the wrong does no harm. If we have
3706 a property system, and that system is properly balanced to the
3707 technology of a time, then it is wrong to take property without the
3708 permission of a property owner. That is exactly what
<quote>property
</quote> means.
3710 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3711 <indexterm><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in Asia
</secondary></indexterm>
3712 <indexterm><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
3713 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3714 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3715 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>competitive strategies of
</secondary></indexterm>
3716 <indexterm><primary>Windows
</primary></indexterm>
3717 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>international software piracy of
</secondary></indexterm>
3718 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>Windows operating system of
</secondary></indexterm>
3720 Finally, we could try to excuse this piracy with the argument that the
3721 piracy actually helps the copyright owner. When the Chinese
<quote>steal
</quote>
3722 Windows, that makes the Chinese dependent on Microsoft. Microsoft
3723 loses the value of the software that was taken. But it gains users who
3724 are used to life in the Microsoft world. Over time, as the nation
3725 grows more wealthy, more and more people will buy software rather than
3726 steal it. And hence over time, because that buying will benefit
3727 Microsoft, Microsoft benefits from the piracy. If instead of pirating
3728 Microsoft Windows, the Chinese used the free GNU/Linux operating
3729 system, then these Chinese users would not eventually be buying
3730 Microsoft. Without piracy, then, Microsoft would lose.
3732 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>databases of case reports in
</secondary></indexterm>
3734 This argument, too, is somewhat true. The addiction strategy is a good
3735 one. Many businesses practice it. Some thrive because of it. Law
3736 students, for example, are given free access to the two largest legal
3737 databases. The companies marketing both hope the students will become
3738 so used to their service that they will want to use it and not the
3739 other when they become lawyers (and must pay high subscription fees).
3741 <indexterm><primary>Netscape
</primary></indexterm>
3742 <indexterm><primary>Internet Explorer
</primary></indexterm>
3743 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3744 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3746 Still, the argument is not terribly persuasive. We don't give the
3747 alcoholic a defense when he steals his first beer, merely because that
3748 will make it more likely that he will buy the next three. Instead, we
3749 ordinarily allow businesses to decide for themselves when it is best
3750 to give their product away. If Microsoft fears the competition of
3751 GNU/Linux, then Microsoft can give its product away, as it did, for
3752 example, with Internet Explorer to fight Netscape. A property right
3753 means giving the property owner the right to say who gets access to
3754 what
—at least ordinarily. And if the law properly balances the
3755 rights of the copyright owner with the rights of access, then
3756 violating the law is still wrong.
3759 <!-- PAGE BREAK 79 -->
3760 Thus, while I understand the pull of these justifications for piracy,
3761 and I certainly see the motivation, in my view, in the end, these efforts
3762 at justifying commercial piracy simply don't cut it. This kind of piracy
3763 is rampant and just plain wrong. It doesn't transform the content it
3764 steals; it doesn't transform the market it competes in. It merely gives
3765 someone access to something that the law says he should not have.
3766 Nothing has changed to draw that law into doubt. This form of piracy
3770 But as the examples from the four chapters that introduced this part
3771 suggest, even if some piracy is plainly wrong, not all
<quote>piracy
</quote> is. Or
3772 at least, not all
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong if that term is understood in the
3773 way it is increasingly used today. Many kinds of
<quote>piracy
</quote> are useful
3774 and productive, to produce either new content or new ways of doing
3775 business. Neither our tradition nor any tradition has ever banned all
3776 <quote>piracy
</quote> in that sense of the term.
3779 This doesn't mean that there are no questions raised by the latest
3780 piracy concern, peer-to-peer file sharing. But it does mean that we
3781 need to understand the harm in peer-to-peer sharing a bit more before
3782 we condemn it to the gallows with the charge of piracy.
3785 For (
1) like the original Hollywood, p2p sharing escapes an overly
3786 controlling industry; and (
2) like the original recording industry, it
3787 simply exploits a new way to distribute content; but (
3) unlike cable
3788 TV, no one is selling the content that is shared on p2p services.
3791 These differences distinguish p2p sharing from true piracy. They
3792 should push us to find a way to protect artists while enabling this
3796 <section id=
"piracy-ii">
3797 <title>Piracy II
</title>
3799 The key to the
<quote>piracy
</quote> that the law aims to quash is a use that
<quote>rob[s]
3800 the author of [his] profit.
</quote><footnote><para>
3802 <citetitle>Bach
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Longman
</citetitle>,
98 Eng. Rep.
1274 (
1777).
3804 This means we must determine whether
3805 and how much p2p sharing harms before we know how strongly the
3806 <!-- PAGE BREAK 80 -->
3807 law should seek to either prevent it or find an alternative to assure the
3808 author of his profit.
3811 <indexterm><primary>Fanning, Shawn
</primary></indexterm>
3812 <indexterm><primary>innovation
</primary></indexterm>
3813 <indexterm id='idxnapster' class='startofrange'
><primary>Napster
</primary></indexterm>
3814 Peer-to-peer sharing was made famous by Napster. But the inventors of
3815 the Napster technology had not made any major technological
3816 innovations. Like every great advance in innovation on the Internet
3817 (and, arguably, off the Internet as well
<footnote><para>
3819 <indexterm><primary>innovation
</primary></indexterm>
3820 See Clayton M. Christensen,
<citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The Revolutionary
3821 National Bestseller That Changed the Way We Do Business
</citetitle> (New York:
3822 HarperBusiness,
2000). Professor Christensen examines why companies
3823 that give rise to and dominate a product area are frequently unable to
3824 come up with the most creative, paradigm-shifting uses for their own
3825 products. This job usually falls to outside innovators, who
3826 reassemble existing technology in inventive ways. For a discussion of
3827 Christensen's ideas, see Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>Future
</citetitle>,
89–92,
139.
3829 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.
</primary></indexterm>
3830 </para></footnote>), Shawn Fanning and crew had simply
3831 put together components that had been developed independently.
3834 <indexterm><primary>Kazaa
</primary></indexterm>
3835 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary><secondary>number of registrations on
</secondary></indexterm>
3836 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary><secondary>replacement of
</secondary></indexterm>
3837 The result was spontaneous combustion. Launched in July
1999,
3838 Napster amassed over
10 million users within nine months. After
3839 eighteen months, there were close to
80 million registered users of the
3840 system.
<footnote><para>
3842 See Carolyn Lochhead,
<quote>Silicon Valley Dream, Hollywood Nightmare,
</quote> <citetitle>San
3843 Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
24 September
2002, A1;
<quote>Rock 'n' Roll Suicide,
</quote>
3844 <citetitle>New Scientist
</citetitle>,
6 July
2002,
42; Benny Evangelista,
<quote>Napster Names CEO,
3845 Secures New Financing,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
23 May
2003, C1;
3846 <quote>Napster's Wake-Up Call,
</quote> <citetitle>Economist
</citetitle>,
24 June
2000,
23; John Naughton,
3847 <quote>Hollywood at War with the Internet
</quote> (London)
<citetitle>Times
</citetitle>,
26 July
2002,
18.
3849 Courts quickly shut Napster down, but other services emerged
3850 to take its place. (Kazaa is currently the most popular p2p service. It
3851 boasts over
100 million members.) These services' systems are different
3852 architecturally, though not very different in function: Each enables
3853 users to make content available to any number of other users. With a
3854 p2p system, you can share your favorite songs with your best friend
—
3855 or your
20,
000 best friends.
3857 <indexterm startref='idxnapster' class='endofrange'
/>
3859 According to a number of estimates, a huge proportion of Americans
3860 have tasted file-sharing technology. A study by Ipsos-Insight in
3861 September
2002 estimated that
60 million Americans had downloaded
3862 music
—28 percent of Americans older than
12.
<footnote><para>
3865 See Ipsos-Insight,
<citetitle>TEMPO: Keeping Pace with Online Music Distribution
</citetitle>
3866 (September
2002), reporting that
28 percent of Americans aged twelve
3867 and older have downloaded music off of the Internet and
30 percent have
3868 listened to digital music files stored on their computers.
3870 A survey by the NPD group quoted in
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>
3871 estimated that
43 million citizens used file-sharing networks to
3872 exchange content in May
2003.
<footnote><para>
3874 Amy Harmon,
<quote>Industry Offers a Carrot in Online Music Fight,
</quote> <citetitle>New
3875 York Times
</citetitle>,
6 June
2003, A1.
3877 The vast majority of these are not kids. Whatever the actual figure, a
3878 massive quantity of content is being
<quote>taken
</quote> on these networks. The
3879 ease and inexpensiveness of file-sharing networks have inspired
3880 millions to enjoy music in a way that they hadn't before.
3883 Some of this enjoying involves copyright infringement. Some of it does
3884 not. And even among the part that is technically copyright
3885 infringement, calculating the actual harm to copyright owners is more
3886 complicated than one might think. So consider
—a bit more
3887 carefully than the polarized voices around this debate usually
3888 do
—the kinds of sharing that file sharing enables, and the kinds
3892 <!-- PAGE BREAK 81 -->
3893 File sharers share different kinds of content. We can divide these
3894 different kinds into four types.
3896 <orderedlist numeration=
"upperalpha">
3898 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
3901 There are some who use sharing networks as substitutes for purchasing
3902 content. Thus, when a new Madonna CD is released, rather than buying
3903 the CD, these users simply take it. We might quibble about whether
3904 everyone who takes it would actually have bought it if sharing didn't
3905 make it available for free. Most probably wouldn't have, but clearly
3906 there are some who would. The latter are the target of category A:
3907 users who download instead of purchasing.
3911 There are some who use sharing networks to sample music before
3912 purchasing it. Thus, a friend sends another friend an MP3 of an artist
3913 he's not heard of. The other friend then buys CDs by that artist. This
3914 is a kind of targeted advertising, quite likely to succeed. If the
3915 friend recommending the album gains nothing from a bad recommendation,
3916 then one could expect that the recommendations will actually be quite
3917 good. The net effect of this sharing could increase the quantity of
3922 There are many who use sharing networks to get access to copyrighted
3923 content that is no longer sold or that they would not have purchased
3924 because the transaction costs off the Net are too high. This use of
3925 sharing networks is among the most rewarding for many. Songs that were
3926 part of your childhood but have long vanished from the marketplace
3927 magically appear again on the network. (One friend told me that when
3928 she discovered Napster, she spent a solid weekend
<quote>recalling
</quote> old
3929 songs. She was astonished at the range and mix of content that was
3930 available.) For content not sold, this is still technically a
3931 violation of copyright, though because the copyright owner is not
3932 selling the content anymore, the economic harm is zero
—the same
3933 harm that occurs when I sell my collection of
1960s
45-rpm records to
3937 <!-- PAGE BREAK 82 -->
3939 Finally, there are many who use sharing networks to get access
3940 to content that is not copyrighted or that the copyright owner
3945 How do these different types of sharing balance out?
3948 Let's start with some simple but important points. From the
3949 perspective of the law, only type D sharing is clearly legal. From the
3950 perspective of economics, only type A sharing is clearly
3951 harmful.
<footnote><para>
3953 See Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy
</citetitle>,
148–49.
3954 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
3956 Type B sharing is illegal but plainly beneficial. Type C sharing is
3957 illegal, yet good for society (since more exposure to music is good)
3958 and harmless to the artist (since the work is not otherwise
3959 available). So how sharing matters on balance is a hard question to
3960 answer
—and certainly much more difficult than the current
3961 rhetoric around the issue suggests.
3964 Whether on balance sharing is harmful depends importantly on how
3965 harmful type A sharing is. Just as Edison complained about Hollywood,
3966 composers complained about piano rolls, recording artists complained
3967 about radio, and broadcasters complained about cable TV, the music
3968 industry complains that type A sharing is a kind of
<quote>theft
</quote> that is
3969 <quote>devastating
</quote> the industry.
3971 <indexterm id='idxcassette' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
3973 While the numbers do suggest that sharing is harmful, how
3974 harmful is harder to reckon. It has long been the recording industry's
3975 practice to blame technology for any drop in sales. The history of
3976 cassette recording is a good example. As a study by Cap Gemini Ernst
3977 & Young put it,
<quote>Rather than exploiting this new, popular
3978 technology, the labels fought it.
</quote><footnote><para>
3980 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary></indexterm>
3981 See Cap Gemini Ernst
& Young,
<citetitle>Technology Evolution and the
3982 Music Industry's Business Model Crisis
</citetitle> (
2003),
3. This report
3983 describes the music industry's effort to stigmatize the budding
3984 practice of cassette taping in the
1970s, including an advertising
3985 campaign featuring a cassette-shape skull and the caption
<quote>Home taping
3986 is killing music.
</quote> At the time digital audio tape became a threat,
3987 the Office of Technical Assessment conducted a survey of consumer
3988 behavior. In
1988,
40 percent of consumers older than ten had taped
3989 music to a cassette format. U.S. Congress, Office of Technology
3990 Assessment,
<citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying: Technology Challenges the Law
</citetitle>,
3991 OTA-CIT-
422 (Washington, D.C.: U.S. Government Printing Office,
3992 October
1989),
145–56.
</para></footnote>
3993 The labels claimed that every album taped was an album unsold, and
3994 when record sales fell by
11.4 percent in
1981, the industry claimed
3995 that its point was proved. Technology was the problem, and banning or
3996 regulating technology was the answer.
3998 <indexterm><primary>MTV
</primary></indexterm>
4000 Yet soon thereafter, and before Congress was given an opportunity
4001 to enact regulation, MTV was launched, and the industry had a record
4002 turnaround.
<quote>In the end,
</quote> Cap Gemini concludes,
<quote>the `crisis'
… was
4003 not the fault of the tapers
—who did not [stop after MTV came into
4004 <!-- PAGE BREAK 83 -->
4005 being]
—but had to a large extent resulted from stagnation in musical
4006 innovation at the major labels.
</quote><footnote><para>
4008 U.S. Congress,
<citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying
</citetitle>,
4.
4011 <indexterm startref='idxcassette' class='endofrange'
/>
4013 But just because the industry was wrong before does not mean it is
4014 wrong today. To evaluate the real threat that p2p sharing presents to
4015 the industry in particular, and society in general
—or at least
4016 the society that inherits the tradition that gave us the film
4017 industry, the record industry, the radio industry, cable TV, and the
4018 VCR
—the question is not simply whether type A sharing is
4019 harmful. The question is also
<emphasis>how
</emphasis> harmful type A
4020 sharing is, and how beneficial the other types of sharing are.
4023 We start to answer this question by focusing on the net harm, from the
4024 standpoint of the industry as a whole, that sharing networks cause.
4025 The
<quote>net harm
</quote> to the industry as a whole is the amount by which type
4026 A sharing exceeds type B. If the record companies sold more records
4027 through sampling than they lost through substitution, then sharing
4028 networks would actually benefit music companies on balance. They would
4029 therefore have little
<emphasis>static
</emphasis> reason to resist
4033 <indexterm id='idxcdssales' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>sales levels of
</secondary></indexterm>
4035 Could that be true? Could the industry as a whole be gaining because
4036 of file sharing? Odd as that might sound, the data about CD sales
4037 actually suggest it might be close.
4040 In
2002, the RIAA reported that CD sales had fallen by
8.9 percent,
4041 from
882 million to
803 million units; revenues fell
6.7
4042 percent.
<footnote><para>
4044 See Recording Industry Association of America,
<citetitle>2002 Yearend Statistics
</citetitle>,
4046 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
15</ulink>. A later
4047 report indicates even greater losses. See Recording Industry
4048 Association of America,
<citetitle>Some Facts About Music Piracy
</citetitle>,
25 June
2003,
4049 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
4050 #
16</ulink>:
<quote>In the past four years, unit shipments of recorded music
4051 have fallen by
26 percent from
1.16 billion units in to
860 million
4052 units in
2002 in the United States (based on units shipped). In terms
4053 of sales, revenues are down
14 percent, from $
14.6 billion in to $
12.6
4054 billion last year (based on U.S. dollar value of shipments). The music
4055 industry worldwide has gone from a $
39 billion industry in
2000 down
4056 to a $
32 billion industry in
2002 (based on U.S. dollar value of
4059 This confirms a trend over the past few years. The RIAA blames
4060 Internet piracy for the trend, though there are many other causes that
4061 could account for this drop. SoundScan, for example, reports a more
4062 than
20 percent drop in the number of CDs released since
1999. That no
4063 doubt accounts for some of the decrease in sales. Rising prices could
4064 account for at least some of the loss.
<quote>From
1999 to
2001, the average
4065 price of a CD rose
7.2 percent, from $
13.04 to $
14.19.
</quote><footnote>
4068 Jane Black,
<quote>Big Music's Broken Record,
</quote> BusinessWeek online,
13
4069 February
2003, available at
4070 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
17</ulink>.
4071 <indexterm><primary>Black, Jane
</primary></indexterm>
4074 Competition from other forms of media could also account for some of
4075 the decline. As Jane Black of
<citetitle>BusinessWeek
</citetitle> notes,
<quote>The
4076 soundtrack to the film
<citetitle>High Fidelity
</citetitle> has a list price of
4077 $
18.98. You could get the whole movie [on DVD] for
4078 $
19.99.
</quote><footnote><para>
4085 <!-- PAGE BREAK 84 -->
4086 But let's assume the RIAA is right, and all of the decline in CD sales
4087 is because of Internet sharing. Here's the rub: In the same period
4088 that the RIAA estimates that
803 million CDs were sold, the RIAA
4089 estimates that
2.1 billion CDs were downloaded for free. Thus,
4090 although
2.6 times the total number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4091 free, sales revenue fell by just
6.7 percent.
4094 There are too many different things happening at the same time to
4095 explain these numbers definitively, but one conclusion is unavoidable:
4096 The recording industry constantly asks,
<quote>What's the difference between
4097 downloading a song and stealing a CD?
</quote>—but their own numbers
4098 reveal the difference. If I steal a CD, then there is one less CD to
4099 sell. Every taking is a lost sale. But on the basis of the numbers the
4100 RIAA provides, it is absolutely clear that the same is not true of
4101 downloads. If every download were a lost sale
—if every use of
4102 Kazaa
<quote>rob[bed] the author of [his] profit
</quote>—then the industry
4103 would have suffered a
100 percent drop in sales last year, not a
7
4104 percent drop. If
2.6 times the number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4105 free, and yet sales revenue dropped by just
6.7 percent, then there is
4106 a huge difference between
<quote>downloading a song and stealing a CD.
</quote>
4108 <indexterm startref='idxcdssales' class='endofrange'
/>
4110 These are the harms
—alleged and perhaps exaggerated but, let's
4111 assume, real. What of the benefits? File sharing may impose costs on
4112 the recording industry. What value does it produce in addition to
4116 One benefit is type C sharing
—making available content that
4117 is technically still under copyright but is no longer commercially
4118 available. This is not a small category of content. There are
4119 millions of tracks that are no longer commercially
4120 available.
<footnote><para>
4122 By one estimate,
75 percent of the music released by the major labels
4123 is no longer in print. See Online Entertainment and Copyright
4124 Law
—Coming Soon to a Digital Device Near You: Hearing Before the
4125 Senate Committee on the Judiciary,
107th Cong.,
1st sess. (
3 April
4126 2001) (prepared statement of the Future of Music Coalition), available
4127 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
18</ulink>.
4129 And while it's conceivable that some of this content is not available
4130 because the artist producing the content doesn't want it to be made
4131 available, the vast majority of it is unavailable solely because the
4132 publisher or the distributor has decided it no longer makes economic
4133 sense
<emphasis>to the company
</emphasis> to make it available.
4135 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
4137 In real space
—long before the Internet
—the market had a simple
4138 <!-- PAGE BREAK 85 -->
4139 response to this problem: used book and record stores. There are
4140 thousands of used book and used record stores in America
4141 today.
<footnote><para>
4143 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
4144 While there are not good estimates of the number of used record stores
4145 in existence, in
2002, there were
7,
198 used book dealers in the
4146 United States, an increase of
20 percent since
1993. See Book Hunter
4147 Press,
<citetitle>The Quiet Revolution: The Expansion of the Used Book
4148 Market
</citetitle> (
2002), available at
4149 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
19</ulink>. Used
4150 records accounted for $
260 million in sales in
2002. See National
4151 Association of Recording Merchandisers,
<quote>2002 Annual Survey
4152 Results,
</quote> available at
4153 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
20</ulink>.
4155 These stores buy content from owners, then sell the content they
4156 buy. And under American copyright law, when they buy and sell this
4157 content,
<emphasis>even if the content is still under
4158 copyright
</emphasis>, the copyright owner doesn't get a dime. Used
4159 book and record stores are commercial entities; their owners make
4160 money from the content they sell; but as with cable companies before
4161 statutory licensing, they don't have to pay the copyright owner for
4162 the content they sell.
4164 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
4165 <indexterm><primary>Bernstein, Leonard
</primary></indexterm>
4166 <indexterm id='idxinternetbookson' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>books on
</secondary></indexterm>
4168 Type C sharing, then, is very much like used book stores or used
4169 record stores. It is different, of course, because the person making
4170 the content available isn't making money from making the content
4171 available. It is also different, of course, because in real space,
4172 when I sell a record, I don't have it anymore, while in cyberspace,
4173 when someone shares my
1949 recording of Bernstein's
<quote>Two Love Songs,
</quote>
4174 I still have it. That difference would matter economically if the
4175 owner of the copyright were selling the record in competition to my
4176 sharing. But we're talking about the class of content that is not
4177 currently commercially available. The Internet is making it available,
4178 through cooperative sharing, without competing with the market.
4181 It may well be, all things considered, that it would be better if the
4182 copyright owner got something from this trade. But just because it may
4183 well be better, it doesn't follow that it would be good to ban used book
4184 stores. Or put differently, if you think that type C sharing should be
4185 stopped, do you think that libraries and used book stores should be
4188 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of
</secondary></indexterm>
4189 <indexterm><primary>Doctorow, Cory
</primary></indexterm>
4190 <indexterm><primary>Down and Out in the Magic Kingdom (Doctorow)
</primary></indexterm>
4192 Finally, and perhaps most importantly, file-sharing networks enable
4193 type D sharing to occur
—the sharing of content that copyright owners
4194 want to have shared or for which there is no continuing copyright. This
4195 sharing clearly benefits authors and society. Science fiction author
4196 Cory Doctorow, for example, released his first novel,
<citetitle>Down and Out in
4197 the Magic Kingdom
</citetitle>, both free on-line and in bookstores on the same
4199 <!-- PAGE BREAK 86 -->
4200 day. His (and his publisher's) thinking was that the on-line distribution
4201 would be a great advertisement for the
<quote>real
</quote> book. People would read
4202 part on-line, and then decide whether they liked the book or not. If
4203 they liked it, they would be more likely to buy it. Doctorow's content is
4204 type D content. If sharing networks enable his work to be spread, then
4205 both he and society are better off. (Actually, much better off: It is a
4208 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='endofrange'
/>
4210 Likewise for work in the public domain: This sharing benefits society
4211 with no legal harm to authors at all. If efforts to solve the problem
4212 of type A sharing destroy the opportunity for type D sharing, then we
4213 lose something important in order to protect type A content.
4216 The point throughout is this: While the recording industry
4217 understandably says,
<quote>This is how much we've lost,
</quote> we must also ask,
4218 <quote>How much has society gained from p2p sharing? What are the
4219 efficiencies? What is the content that otherwise would be
4220 unavailable?
</quote>
4222 <indexterm startref='idxinternetbookson' class='endofrange'
/>
4224 For unlike the piracy I described in the first section of this
4225 chapter, much of the
<quote>piracy
</quote> that file sharing enables is plainly
4226 legal and good. And like the piracy I described in chapter
4227 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"pirates"/>, much of
4228 this piracy is motivated by a new way of spreading content caused by
4229 changes in the technology of distribution. Thus, consistent with the
4230 tradition that gave us Hollywood, radio, the recording industry, and
4231 cable TV, the question we should be asking about file sharing is how
4232 best to preserve its benefits while minimizing (to the extent
4233 possible) the wrongful harm it causes artists. The question is one of
4234 balance. The law should seek that balance, and that balance will be
4235 found only with time.
4238 <quote>But isn't the war just a war against illegal sharing? Isn't the target
4239 just what you call type A sharing?
</quote>
4242 You would think. And we should hope. But so far, it is not. The effect
4243 of the war purportedly on type A sharing alone has been felt far
4244 beyond that one class of sharing. That much is obvious from the
4245 Napster case itself. When Napster told the district court that it had
4246 developed a technology to block the transfer of
99.4 percent of
4249 <!-- PAGE BREAK 87 -->
4250 infringing material, the district court told counsel for Napster
99.4
4251 percent was not good enough. Napster had to push the infringements
4252 <quote>down to zero.
</quote><footnote><para>
4254 See Transcript of Proceedings, In Re: Napster Copyright Litigation at
34-
4255 35 (N.D. Cal.,
11 July
2001), nos. MDL-
00-
1369 MHP, C
99-
5183
4258 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
21</ulink>. For an
4259 account of the litigation and its toll on Napster, see Joseph Menn,
4260 <citetitle>All the Rave: The Rise and Fall of Shawn Fanning's Napster
</citetitle> (New
4261 York: Crown Business,
2003),
269–82.
4265 If
99.4 percent is not good enough, then this is a war on file-sharing
4266 technologies, not a war on copyright infringement. There is no way to
4267 assure that a p2p system is used
100 percent of the time in compliance
4268 with the law, any more than there is a way to assure that
100 percent of
4269 VCRs or
100 percent of Xerox machines or
100 percent of handguns
4270 are used in compliance with the law. Zero tolerance means zero p2p.
4271 The court's ruling means that we as a society must lose the benefits of
4272 p2p, even for the totally legal and beneficial uses they serve, simply to
4273 assure that there are zero copyright infringements caused by p2p.
4276 Zero tolerance has not been our history. It has not produced the
4277 content industry that we know today. The history of American law has
4278 been a process of balance. As new technologies changed the way content
4279 was distributed, the law adjusted, after some time, to the new
4280 technology. In this adjustment, the law sought to ensure the
4281 legitimate rights of creators while protecting innovation. Sometimes
4282 this has meant more rights for creators. Sometimes less.
4284 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
4285 <indexterm><primary>composers, copyright protections of
</primary></indexterm>
4286 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
4287 <indexterm id='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
4288 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on music recordings
</secondary></indexterm>
4289 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
4290 <indexterm><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>music recordings played on
</secondary></indexterm>
4291 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
4292 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright protections in
</secondary></indexterm>
4293 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
4294 <indexterm><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
4295 <indexterm><primary>composer's rights vs. producers' rights in
</primary></indexterm>
4297 So, as we've seen, when
<quote>mechanical reproduction
</quote> threatened the
4298 interests of composers, Congress balanced the rights of composers
4299 against the interests of the recording industry. It granted rights to
4300 composers, but also to the recording artists: Composers were to be
4301 paid, but at a price set by Congress. But when radio started
4302 broadcasting the recordings made by these recording artists, and they
4303 complained to Congress that their
<quote>creative property
</quote> was not being
4304 respected (since the radio station did not have to pay them for the
4305 creativity it broadcast), Congress rejected their claim. An indirect
4308 <indexterm id='idxcabletv2' class='startofrange'
><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
4310 Cable TV followed the pattern of record albums. When the courts
4311 rejected the claim that cable broadcasters had to pay for the content
4312 they rebroadcast, Congress responded by giving broadcasters a right to
4313 compensation, but at a level set by the law. It likewise gave cable
4314 companies the right to the content, so long as they paid the statutory
4317 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='endofrange'
/>
4320 <!-- PAGE BREAK 88 -->
4321 This compromise, like the compromise affecting records and player
4322 pianos, served two important goals
—indeed, the two central goals
4323 of any copyright legislation. First, the law assured that new
4324 innovators would have the freedom to develop new ways to deliver
4325 content. Second, the law assured that copyright holders would be paid
4326 for the content that was distributed. One fear was that if Congress
4327 simply required cable TV to pay copyright holders whatever they
4328 demanded for their content, then copyright holders associated with
4329 broadcasters would use their power to stifle this new technology,
4330 cable. But if Congress had permitted cable to use broadcasters'
4331 content for free, then it would have unfairly subsidized cable. Thus
4332 Congress chose a path that would assure
4333 <emphasis>compensation
</emphasis> without giving the past
4334 (broadcasters) control over the future (cable).
4336 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='endofrange'
/>
4337 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='endofrange'
/>
4338 <indexterm startref='idxcabletv2' class='endofrange'
/>
4339 <indexterm id='idxbetamax' class='startofrange'
><primary>Betamax
</primary></indexterm>
4340 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs1' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
4342 In the same year that Congress struck this balance, two major
4343 producers and distributors of film content filed a lawsuit against
4344 another technology, the video tape recorder (VTR, or as we refer to
4345 them today, VCRs) that Sony had produced, the Betamax. Disney's and
4346 Universal's claim against Sony was relatively simple: Sony produced a
4347 device, Disney and Universal claimed, that enabled consumers to engage
4348 in copyright infringement. Because the device that Sony built had a
4349 <quote>record
</quote> button, the device could be used to record copyrighted movies
4350 and shows. Sony was therefore benefiting from the copyright
4351 infringement of its customers. It should therefore, Disney and
4352 Universal claimed, be partially liable for that infringement.
4354 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='endofrange'
/>
4356 There was something to Disney's and Universal's claim. Sony did
4357 decide to design its machine to make it very simple to record television
4358 shows. It could have built the machine to block or inhibit any direct
4359 copying from a television broadcast. Or possibly, it could have built the
4360 machine to copy only if there were a special
<quote>copy me
</quote> signal on the
4361 line. It was clear that there were many television shows that did not
4362 grant anyone permission to copy. Indeed, if anyone had asked, no
4363 doubt the majority of shows would not have authorized copying. And
4364 <!-- PAGE BREAK 89 -->
4365 in the face of this obvious preference, Sony could have designed its
4366 system to minimize the opportunity for copyright infringement. It did
4367 not, and for that, Disney and Universal wanted to hold it responsible
4368 for the architecture it chose.
4370 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
4371 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on VCR technology
</secondary></indexterm>
4373 MPAA president Jack Valenti became the studios' most vocal
4374 champion. Valenti called VCRs
<quote>tapeworms.
</quote> He warned,
<quote>When there are
4375 20,
30,
40 million of these VCRs in the land, we will be invaded by
4376 millions of `tapeworms,' eating away at the very heart and essence of
4377 the most precious asset the copyright owner has, his
4378 copyright.
</quote><footnote><para>
4380 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders): Hearing on
4381 S.
1758 Before the Senate Committee on the Judiciary,
97th Cong.,
1st
4382 and
2nd sess.,
459 (
1982) (testimony of Jack Valenti, president, Motion
4383 Picture Association of America, Inc.).
4385 <quote>One does not have to be trained in sophisticated marketing and
4386 creative judgment,
</quote> he told Congress,
<quote>to understand the devastation
4387 on the after-theater marketplace caused by the hundreds of millions of
4388 tapings that will adversely impact on the future of the creative
4389 community in this country. It is simply a question of basic economics
4390 and plain common sense.
</quote><footnote><para>
4392 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders),
475.
4394 Indeed, as surveys would later show,
45
4395 percent of VCR owners had movie libraries of ten videos or more
<footnote><para>
4397 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle>,
480 F. Supp.
429,
4400 — a use the Court would later hold was not
<quote>fair.
</quote> By
4401 <quote>allowing VCR owners to copy freely by the means of an exemption from
4402 copyright infringement without creating a mechanism to compensate
4403 copyright owners,
</quote> Valenti testified, Congress would
<quote>take from the
4404 owners the very essence of their property: the exclusive right to
4405 control who may use their work, that is, who may copy it and thereby
4406 profit from its reproduction.
</quote><footnote><para>
4408 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders),
485 (testimony
4412 <indexterm startref='idxbetamax' class='endofrange'
/>
4414 It took eight years for this case to be resolved by the Supreme
4415 Court. In the interim, the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals, which
4416 includes Hollywood in its jurisdiction
—leading Judge Alex
4417 Kozinski, who sits on that court, refers to it as the
<quote>Hollywood
4418 Circuit
</quote>—held that Sony would be liable for the copyright
4419 infringement made possible by its machines. Under the Ninth Circuit's
4420 rule, this totally familiar technology
—which Jack Valenti had
4421 called
<quote>the Boston Strangler of the American film industry
</quote> (worse
4422 yet, it was a
<emphasis>Japanese
</emphasis> Boston Strangler of the
4423 American film industry)
—was an illegal
4424 technology.
<footnote><para>
4426 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle>,
659 F.
2d
963 (
9th Cir.
4429 <indexterm><primary>Kozinski, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
4432 But the Supreme Court reversed the decision of the Ninth Circuit.
4434 <!-- PAGE BREAK 90 -->
4435 And in its reversal, the Court clearly articulated its understanding of
4436 when and whether courts should intervene in such disputes. As the
4441 Sound policy, as well as history, supports our consistent deference
4442 to Congress when major technological innovations alter the
4444 for copyrighted materials. Congress has the constitutional
4446 and the institutional ability to accommodate fully the
4447 varied permutations of competing interests that are inevitably
4449 by such new technology.
<footnote><para>
4451 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
431 (
1984).
4455 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='endofrange'
/>
4457 Congress was asked to respond to the Supreme Court's decision. But as
4458 with the plea of recording artists about radio broadcasts, Congress
4459 ignored the request. Congress was convinced that American film got
4460 enough, this
<quote>taking
</quote> notwithstanding. If we put these cases
4461 together, a pattern is clear:
4464 <informaltable id=
"t1">
4465 <tgroup cols=
"4" align=
"left">
4469 <entry>WHOSE VALUE WAS
<quote>PIRATED
</quote></entry>
4470 <entry>RESPONSE OF THE COURTS
</entry>
4471 <entry>RESPONSE OF CONGRESS
</entry>
4476 <entry>Recordings
</entry>
4477 <entry>Composers
</entry>
4478 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4479 <entry>Statutory license
</entry>
4482 <entry>Radio
</entry>
4483 <entry>Recording artists
</entry>
4485 <entry>Nothing
</entry>
4488 <entry>Cable TV
</entry>
4489 <entry>Broadcasters
</entry>
4490 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4491 <entry>Statutory license
</entry>
4495 <entry>Film creators
</entry>
4496 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4497 <entry>Nothing
</entry>
4502 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs1' class='endofrange'
/>
4504 In each case throughout our history, a new technology changed the
4505 way content was distributed.
<footnote><para>
4507 These are the most important instances in our history, but there are other
4508 cases as well. The technology of digital audio tape (DAT), for example,
4509 was regulated by Congress to minimize the risk of piracy. The remedy
4510 Congress imposed did burden DAT producers, by taxing tape sales and
4511 controlling the technology of DAT. See Audio Home Recording Act of
4512 1992 (Title
17 of the
<citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>), Pub. L. No.
102-
563,
106 Stat.
4513 4237, codified at
17 U.S.C. §
1001. Again, however, this regulation did not
4514 eliminate the opportunity for free riding in the sense I've described. See
4515 Lessig,
<citetitle>Future
</citetitle>,
71. See also Picker,
<quote>From Edison to the Broadcast Flag,
</quote>
4516 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
293–96.
4517 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
4518 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
4520 In each case, throughout our history,
4521 that change meant that someone got a
<quote>free ride
</quote> on someone else's
4525 In
<emphasis>none
</emphasis> of these cases did either the courts or
4526 Congress eliminate all free riding. In
<emphasis>none
</emphasis> of
4527 these cases did the courts or Congress insist that the law should
4528 assure that the copyright holder get all the value that his copyright
4529 created. In every case, the copyright owners complained of
<quote>piracy.
</quote>
4530 In every case, Congress acted to recognize some of the legitimacy in
4531 the behavior of the
<quote>pirates.
</quote> In each case, Congress allowed some new
4532 technology to benefit from content made before. It balanced the
4534 <!-- PAGE BREAK 91 -->
4536 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
4538 When you think across these examples, and the other examples that
4539 make up the first four chapters of this section, this balance makes
4540 sense. Was Walt Disney a pirate? Would doujinshi be better if creators
4541 had to ask permission? Should tools that enable others to capture and
4542 spread images as a way to cultivate or criticize our culture be better
4544 Is it really right that building a search engine should expose you
4545 to $
15 million in damages? Would it have been better if Edison had
4546 controlled film? Should every cover band have to hire a lawyer to get
4547 permission to record a song?
4549 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on balance of interests in copyright law
</secondary></indexterm>
4551 We could answer yes to each of these questions, but our tradition
4552 has answered no. In our tradition, as the Supreme Court has stated,
4553 copyright
<quote>has never accorded the copyright owner complete control
4554 over all possible uses of his work.
</quote><footnote><para>
4556 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
4559 Instead, the particular uses that the law regulates have been defined
4560 by balancing the good that comes from granting an exclusive right
4561 against the burdens such an exclusive right creates. And this
4562 balancing has historically been done
<emphasis>after
</emphasis> a
4563 technology has matured, or settled into the mix of technologies that
4564 facilitate the distribution of content.
4567 We should be doing the same thing today. The technology of the
4568 Internet is changing quickly. The way people connect to the Internet
4569 (wires vs. wireless) is changing very quickly. No doubt the network
4570 should not become a tool for
<quote>stealing
</quote> from artists. But neither
4571 should the law become a tool to entrench one particular way in which
4572 artists (or more accurately, distributors) get paid. As I describe in
4573 some detail in the last chapter of this book, we should be securing
4574 income to artists while we allow the market to secure the most
4575 efficient way to promote and distribute content. This will require
4576 changes in the law, at least in the interim. These changes should be
4577 designed to balance the protection of the law against the strong
4578 public interest that innovation continue.
4582 <!-- PAGE BREAK 92 -->
4583 This is especially true when a new technology enables a vastly
4584 superior mode of distribution. And this p2p has done. P2p technologies
4585 can be ideally efficient in moving content across a widely diverse
4586 network. Left to develop, they could make the network vastly more
4587 efficient. Yet these
<quote>potential public benefits,
</quote> as John Schwartz
4588 writes in
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>,
<quote>could be delayed in the P2P
4589 fight.
</quote><footnote><para>
4591 John Schwartz,
<quote>New Economy: The Attack on Peer-to-Peer Software
4592 Echoes Past Efforts,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
22 September
2003, C3.
4596 <emphasis role='strong'
>Yet when anyone
</emphasis> begins to talk
4597 about
<quote>balance,
</quote> the copyright warriors raise a different
4598 argument.
<quote>All this hand waving about balance and
4599 incentives,
</quote> they say,
<quote>misses a fundamental point. Our
4600 content,
</quote> the warriors insist,
<quote>is our
4601 <emphasis>property
</emphasis>. Why should we wait for Congress to
4602 `rebalance' our property rights? Do you have to wait before calling
4603 the police when your car has been stolen? And why should Congress
4604 deliberate at all about the merits of this theft? Do we ask whether
4605 the car thief had a good use for the car before we arrest him?
</quote>
4608 <quote>It is
<emphasis>our property
</emphasis>,
</quote> the warriors
4609 insist.
<quote>And it should be protected just as any other property
4610 is protected.
</quote>
4612 <!-- PAGE BREAK 93 -->
4616 <part id=
"c-property">
4617 <title><quote>Property
</quote></title>
4621 <!-- PAGE BREAK 94 -->
4622 <emphasis role='strong'
>The copyright warriors
</emphasis> are right: A
4623 copyright is a kind of property. It can be owned and sold, and the law
4624 protects against its theft. Ordinarily, the copyright owner gets to
4625 hold out for any price he wants. Markets reckon the supply and demand
4626 that partially determine the price she can get.
4629 But in ordinary language, to call a copyright a
<quote>property
</quote> right is a
4630 bit misleading, for the property of copyright is an odd kind of
4631 property. Indeed, the very idea of property in any idea or any
4632 expression is very odd. I understand what I am taking when I take the
4633 picnic table you put in your backyard. I am taking a thing, the picnic
4634 table, and after I take it, you don't have it. But what am I taking
4635 when I take the good
<emphasis>idea
</emphasis> you had to put a picnic
4636 table in the backyard
—by, for example, going to Sears, buying a
4637 table, and putting it in my backyard? What is the thing I am taking
4640 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
4642 The point is not just about the thingness of picnic tables versus
4643 ideas, though that's an important difference. The point instead is that
4644 <!-- PAGE BREAK 95 -->
4645 in the ordinary case
—indeed, in practically every case except for a
4647 range of exceptions
—ideas released to the world are free. I don't
4648 take anything from you when I copy the way you dress
—though I
4649 might seem weird if I did it every day, and especially weird if you are a
4650 woman. Instead, as Thomas Jefferson said (and as is especially true
4651 when I copy the way someone else dresses),
<quote>He who receives an idea
4652 from me, receives instruction himself without lessening mine; as he who
4653 lights his taper at mine, receives light without darkening me.
</quote><footnote><para>
4655 Letter from Thomas Jefferson to Isaac McPherson (
13 August
1813) in
4656 <citetitle>The Writings of Thomas Jefferson
</citetitle>, vol.
6 (Andrew A. Lipscomb and Albert
4657 Ellery Bergh, eds.,
1903),
330,
333–34.
4660 <indexterm><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>intangibility of
</secondary></indexterm>
4662 The exceptions to free use are ideas and expressions within the
4663 reach of the law of patent and copyright, and a few other domains that
4664 I won't discuss here. Here the law says you can't take my idea or
4666 without my permission: The law turns the intangible into
4670 But how, and to what extent, and in what form
—the details,
4671 in other words
—matter. To get a good sense of how this practice
4672 of turning the intangible into property emerged, we need to place this
4673 <quote>property
</quote> in its proper context.
<footnote><para>
4675 As the legal realists taught American law, all property rights are
4676 intangible. A property right is simply a right that an individual has
4677 against the world to do or not do certain things that may or may not
4678 attach to a physical object. The right itself is intangible, even if
4679 the object to which it is (metaphorically) attached is tangible. See
4680 Adam Mossoff,
<quote>What Is Property? Putting the Pieces Back Together,
</quote>
4681 <citetitle>Arizona Law Review
</citetitle> 45 (
2003):
373,
429 n.
241.
4685 My strategy in doing this will be the same as my strategy in the
4686 preceding part. I offer four stories to help put the idea of
4687 <quote>copyright material is property
</quote> in context. Where did the idea come
4688 from? What are its limits? How does it function in practice? After
4689 these stories, the significance of this true
4690 statement
—<quote>copyright material is property
</quote>— will be a bit
4691 more clear, and its implications will be revealed as quite different
4692 from the implications that the copyright warriors would have us draw.
4696 <!-- PAGE BREAK 96 -->
4697 <chapter label=
"6" id=
"founders">
4698 <title>Chapter Six: Founders
</title>
4699 <indexterm id='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>English copyright law developed for
</secondary></indexterm>
4700 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawdevelopmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
4701 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawenglish' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>English
</secondary></indexterm>
4702 <indexterm id='idxenglandcopyrightlawsdevelopedin' class='startofrange'
><primary>England, copyright laws developed in
</primary></indexterm>
4703 <indexterm id='idxunitedkingdomhistoryofcopyrightlawin' class='startofrange'
><primary>United Kingdom
</primary><secondary>history of copyright law in
</secondary></indexterm>
4704 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
4705 <indexterm><primary>Henry V
</primary></indexterm>
4706 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4707 <indexterm id='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='startofrange'
><primary>Romeo and Juliet (Shakespeare)
</primary></indexterm>
4709 <emphasis role='strong'
>William Shakespeare
</emphasis> wrote
4710 <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> in
1595. The play was first
4711 published in
1597. It was the eleventh major play that Shakespeare had
4712 written. He would continue to write plays through
1613, and the plays
4713 that he wrote have continued to define Anglo-American culture ever
4714 since. So deeply have the works of a sixteenth-century writer seeped
4715 into our culture that we often don't even recognize their source. I
4716 once overheard someone commenting on Kenneth Branagh's adaptation of
4717 Henry V:
<quote>I liked it, but Shakespeare is so full of
4720 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4721 <indexterm id='idxtonsonjacob' class='startofrange'
><primary>Tonson, Jacob
</primary></indexterm>
4723 In
1774, almost
180 years after
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> was written, the
4724 <quote>copy-right
</quote> for the work was still thought by many to be the exclusive
4725 right of a single London publisher, Jacob Tonson.
<footnote><para>
4727 <indexterm><primary>Jonson, Ben
</primary></indexterm>
4728 <indexterm><primary>Dryden, John
</primary></indexterm>
4729 Jacob Tonson is typically remembered for his associations with prominent
4730 eighteenth-century literary figures, especially John Dryden, and for his
4731 handsome
<quote>definitive editions
</quote> of classic works. In addition to
<citetitle>Romeo and
4732 Juliet
</citetitle>, he published an astonishing array of works that still remain at the
4733 heart of the English canon, including collected works of Shakespeare, Ben
4734 Jonson, John Milton, and John Dryden. See Keith Walker,
<quote>Jacob Tonson,
4735 Bookseller,
</quote> <citetitle>American Scholar
</citetitle> 61:
3 (
1992):
424–31.
4737 Tonson was the most prominent of a small group of publishers called
4738 the Conger
<footnote><para>
4740 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective
</citetitle> (Nashville:
4741 Vanderbilt University Press,
1968),
151–52.
4743 who controlled bookselling in England during the eighteenth
4744 century. The Conger claimed a perpetual right to control the
<quote>copy
</quote> of
4745 books that they had acquired from authors. That perpetual right meant
4747 <!-- PAGE BREAK 97 -->
4748 one else could publish copies of a book to which they held the
4749 copyright. Prices of the classics were thus kept high; competition to
4750 produce better or cheaper editions was eliminated.
4752 <indexterm><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4753 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
4754 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>renewability of
</secondary></indexterm>
4755 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4757 Now, there's something puzzling about the year
1774 to anyone who
4758 knows a little about copyright law. The better-known year in the
4759 history of copyright is
1710, the year that the British Parliament
4760 adopted the first
<quote>copyright
</quote> act. Known as the Statute of Anne, the
4761 act stated that all published works would get a copyright term of
4762 fourteen years, renewable once if the author was alive, and that all
4763 works already published by
1710 would get a single term of twenty-one
4764 additional years.
<footnote><para>
4766 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
4767 As Siva Vaidhyanathan nicely argues, it is erroneous to call this a
4768 <quote>copyright law.
</quote> See Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
40.
4769 </para></footnote> Under this law,
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> should have been
4770 free in
1731. So why was there any issue about it still being under
4771 Tonson's control in
1774?
4773 <indexterm startref='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='endofrange'
/>
4774 <indexterm startref='idxtonsonjacob' class='endofrange'
/>
4775 <indexterm id='idxlawcommonvspositive' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>common vs. positive
</secondary></indexterm>
4776 <indexterm><primary>positive law
</primary></indexterm>
4777 <indexterm><primary>Licensing Act (
1662)
</primary></indexterm>
4779 The reason is that the English hadn't yet agreed on what a
<quote>copyright
</quote>
4780 was
—indeed, no one had. At the time the English passed the
4781 Statute of Anne, there was no other legislation governing copyrights.
4782 The last law regulating publishers, the Licensing Act of
1662, had
4783 expired in
1695. That law gave publishers a monopoly over publishing,
4784 as a way to make it easier for the Crown to control what was
4785 published. But after it expired, there was no positive law that said
4786 that the publishers, or
<quote>Stationers,
</quote> had an exclusive right to print
4789 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof2' class='endofrange'
/>
4790 <indexterm><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
4792 There was no
<emphasis>positive
</emphasis> law, but that didn't mean
4793 that there was no law. The Anglo-American legal tradition looks to
4794 both the words of legislatures and the words of judges to know the
4795 rules that are to govern how people are to behave. We call the words
4796 from legislatures
<quote>positive law.
</quote> We call the words from judges
4797 <quote>common law.
</quote> The common law sets the background against which
4798 legislatures legislate; the legislature, ordinarily, can trump that
4799 background only if it passes a law to displace it. And so the real
4800 question after the licensing statutes had expired was whether the
4801 common law protected a copyright, independent of any positive law.
4803 <indexterm startref='idxlawcommonvspositive' class='endofrange'
/>
4804 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4805 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4806 <indexterm><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
4807 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4809 This question was important to the publishers, or
<quote>booksellers,
</quote> as
4810 they were called, because there was growing competition from foreign
4811 publishers. The Scottish, in particular, were increasingly publishing
4812 and exporting books to England. That competition reduced the profits
4814 <!-- PAGE BREAK 98 -->
4815 of the Conger, which reacted by demanding that Parliament pass a law
4816 to again give them exclusive control over publishing. That demand
4818 resulted in the Statute of Anne.
4820 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightasnarrowmonopolyright' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>as narrow monopoly right
</secondary></indexterm>
4822 The Statute of Anne granted the author or
<quote>proprietor
</quote> of a book an
4823 exclusive right to print that book. In an important limitation,
4824 however, and to the horror of the booksellers, the law gave the
4825 bookseller that right for a limited term. At the end of that term, the
4826 copyright
<quote>expired,
</quote> and the work would then be free and could be
4827 published by anyone. Or so the legislature is thought to have
4830 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne' class='endofrange'
/>
4832 Now, the thing to puzzle about for a moment is this: Why would
4833 Parliament limit the exclusive right? Not why would they limit it to
4834 the particular limit they set, but why would they limit the right
4835 <emphasis>at all?
</emphasis>
4837 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament' class='endofrange'
/>
4838 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4839 <indexterm><primary>Romeo and Juliet (Shakespeare)
</primary></indexterm>
4841 For the booksellers, and the authors whom they represented, had a very
4842 strong claim. Take
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> as an example: That play
4843 was written by Shakespeare. It was his genius that brought it into the
4844 world. He didn't take anybody's property when he created this play
4845 (that's a controversial claim, but never mind), and by his creating
4846 this play, he didn't make it any harder for others to craft a play. So
4847 why is it that the law would ever allow someone else to come along and
4848 take Shakespeare's play without his, or his estate's, permission? What
4849 reason is there to allow someone else to
<quote>steal
</quote> Shakespeare's work?
4851 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4853 The answer comes in two parts. We first need to see something special
4854 about the notion of
<quote>copyright
</quote> that existed at the time of the
4855 Statute of Anne. Second, we have to see something important about
4856 <quote>booksellers.
</quote>
4858 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
4860 First, about copyright. In the last three hundred years, we have come
4861 to apply the concept of
<quote>copyright
</quote> ever more broadly. But in
1710, it
4862 wasn't so much a concept as it was a very particular right. The
4863 copyright was born as a very specific set of restrictions: It forbade
4864 others from reprinting a book. In
1710, the
<quote>copy-right
</quote> was a right
4865 to use a particular machine to replicate a particular work. It did not
4866 go beyond that very narrow right. It did not control any more
4868 <!-- PAGE BREAK 99 -->
4869 a work could be
<emphasis>used
</emphasis>. Today the right includes a
4870 large collection of restrictions on the freedom of others: It grants
4871 the author the exclusive right to copy, the exclusive right to
4872 distribute, the exclusive right to perform, and so on.
4874 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
4875 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4877 So, for example, even if the copyright to Shakespeare's works were
4878 perpetual, all that would have meant under the original meaning of the
4879 term was that no one could reprint Shakespeare's work without the
4880 permission of the Shakespeare estate. It would not have controlled
4881 anything, for example, about how the work could be performed, whether
4882 the work could be translated, or whether Kenneth Branagh would be
4883 allowed to make his films. The
<quote>copy-right
</quote> was only an exclusive
4884 right to print
—no less, of course, but also no more.
4886 <indexterm><primary>Henry VIII, King of England
</primary></indexterm>
4887 <indexterm id='idxmonopolycopyrightas' class='startofrange'
><primary>monopoly, copyright as
</primary></indexterm>
4888 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Monopolies (
1656)
</primary></indexterm>
4890 Even that limited right was viewed with skepticism by the British.
4891 They had had a long and ugly experience with
<quote>exclusive rights,
</quote>
4892 especially
<quote>exclusive rights
</quote> granted by the Crown. The English had
4893 fought a civil war in part about the Crown's practice of handing out
4894 monopolies
—especially monopolies for works that already
4895 existed. King Henry VIII granted a patent to print the Bible and a
4896 monopoly to Darcy to print playing cards. The English Parliament began
4897 to fight back against this power of the Crown. In
1656, it passed the
4898 Statute of Monopolies, limiting monopolies to patents for new
4899 inventions. And by
1710, Parliament was eager to deal with the growing
4900 monopoly in publishing.
4903 Thus the
<quote>copy-right,
</quote> when viewed as a monopoly right, was naturally
4904 viewed as a right that should be limited. (However convincing the
4905 claim that
<quote>it's my property, and I should have it forever,
</quote> try
4906 sounding convincing when uttering,
<quote>It's my monopoly, and I should
4907 have it forever.
</quote>) The state would protect the exclusive right, but
4908 only so long as it benefited society. The British saw the harms from
4909 specialinterest favors; they passed a law to stop them.
4911 <indexterm><primary>Milton, John
</primary></indexterm>
4912 <indexterm id='idxbooksellersenglish' class='startofrange'
><primary>booksellers, English
</primary></indexterm>
4913 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4914 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
4916 Second, about booksellers. It wasn't just that the copyright was a
4917 monopoly. It was also that it was a monopoly held by the booksellers.
4918 Booksellers sound quaint and harmless to us. They were not viewed
4919 as harmless in seventeenth-century England. Members of the Conger
4920 <!-- PAGE BREAK 100 -->
4922 were increasingly seen as monopolists of the worst
4923 kind
—tools of the Crown's repression, selling the liberty of
4924 England to guarantee themselves a monopoly profit. The attacks against
4925 these monopolists were harsh: Milton described them as
<quote>old patentees
4926 and monopolizers in the trade of book-selling
</quote>; they were
<quote>men who do
4927 not therefore labour in an honest profession to which learning is
4928 indetted.
</quote><footnote><para>
4931 Philip Wittenberg,
<citetitle>The Protection and Marketing of Literary
4932 Property
</citetitle> (New York: J. Messner, Inc.,
1937),
31.
4935 <indexterm><primary>Enlightenment
</primary></indexterm>
4936 <indexterm><primary>knowledge, freedom of
</primary></indexterm>
4938 Many believed the power the booksellers exercised over the spread of
4939 knowledge was harming that spread, just at the time the Enlightenment
4940 was teaching the importance of education and knowledge spread
4941 generally. The idea that knowledge should be free was a hallmark of
4942 the time, and these powerful commercial interests were interfering
4945 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament2' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4947 To balance this power, Parliament decided to increase competition
4948 among booksellers, and the simplest way to do that was to spread the
4949 wealth of valuable books. Parliament therefore limited the term of
4950 copyrights, and thereby guaranteed that valuable books would become
4951 open to any publisher to publish after a limited time. Thus the setting
4952 of the term for existing works to just twenty-one years was a
4954 to fight the power of the booksellers. The limitation on terms was
4955 an indirect way to assure competition among publishers, and thus the
4956 construction and spread of culture.
4958 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
4959 </primary></indexterm>
4960 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
4962 When
1731 (
1710 +
21) came along, however, the booksellers were
4963 getting anxious. They saw the consequences of more competition, and
4964 like every competitor, they didn't like them. At first booksellers simply
4965 ignored the Statute of Anne, continuing to insist on the perpetual right
4966 to control publication. But in
1735 and
1737, they tried to persuade
4967 Parliament to extend their terms. Twenty-one years was not enough,
4968 they said; they needed more time.
4971 Parliament rejected their requests. As one pamphleteer put it, in
4972 words that echo today,
4976 I see no Reason for granting a further Term now, which will not
4977 hold as well for granting it again and again, as often as the Old
4978 <!-- PAGE BREAK 101 -->
4979 ones Expire; so that should this Bill pass, it will in Effect be
4980 establishing a perpetual Monopoly, a Thing deservedly odious in the
4981 Eye of the Law; it will be a great Cramp to Trade, a Discouragement to
4982 Learning, no Benefit to the Authors, but a general Tax on the Publick;
4983 and all this only to increase the private Gain of the
4984 Booksellers.
<footnote><para>
4986 A Letter to a Member of Parliament concerning the Bill now depending
4987 in the House of Commons, for making more effectual an Act in the
4988 Eighth Year of the Reign of Queen Anne, entitled, An Act for the
4989 Encouragement of Learning, by Vesting the Copies of Printed Books in
4990 the Authors or Purchasers of such Copies, during the Times therein
4991 mentioned (London,
1735), in Brief Amici Curiae of Tyler T. Ochoa et
4992 al.,
8,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618).
4996 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne2' class='endofrange'
/>
4997 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity' class='endofrange'
/>
4998 <indexterm><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
4999 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>common vs. positive
</secondary></indexterm>
5000 <indexterm><primary>positive law
</primary></indexterm>
5002 Having failed in Parliament, the publishers turned to the courts in a
5003 series of cases. Their argument was simple and direct: The Statute of
5004 Anne gave authors certain protections through positive law, but those
5005 protections were not intended as replacements for the common law.
5006 Instead, they were intended simply to supplement the common law.
5007 Under common law, it was already wrong to take another person's
5008 creative
<quote>property
</quote> and use it without his permission. The Statute of
5009 Anne, the booksellers argued, didn't change that. Therefore, just
5010 because the protections of the Statute of Anne expired, that didn't
5011 mean the protections of the common law expired: Under the common law
5012 they had the right to ban the publication of a book, even if its
5013 Statute of Anne copyright had expired. This, they argued, was the only
5014 way to protect authors.
5016 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament2' class='endofrange'
/>
5018 This was a clever argument, and one that had the support of some of
5019 the leading jurists of the day. It also displayed extraordinary
5020 chutzpah. Until then, as law professor Raymond Patterson has put it,
5021 <quote>The publishers
… had as much concern for authors as a cattle
5022 rancher has for cattle.
</quote><footnote><para>
5024 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
5025 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
5026 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<quote>Free Speech, Copyright, and Fair Use,
</quote> <citetitle>Vanderbilt
5027 Law Review
</citetitle> 40 (
1987):
28. For a wonderfully compelling account, see
5028 Vaidhyanathan,
37–48.
5030 The bookseller didn't care squat for the rights of the author. His
5031 concern was the monopoly profit that the author's work gave.
5033 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonalexander' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson, Alexander
</primary></indexterm>
5034 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
5035 <indexterm id='idxscottishpublishers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
5037 The booksellers' argument was not accepted without a fight.
5038 The hero of this fight was a Scottish bookseller named Alexander
5039 Donaldson.
<footnote><para>
5041 For a compelling account, see David Saunders,
<citetitle>Authorship and Copyright
</citetitle>
5042 (London: Routledge,
1992),
62–69.
5045 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
5046 <indexterm id='idxconger' class='startofrange'
><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
5047 <indexterm><primary>Boswell, James
</primary></indexterm>
5048 <indexterm><primary>Erskine, Andrew
</primary></indexterm>
5050 Donaldson was an outsider to the London Conger. He began his
5051 career in Edinburgh in
1750. The focus of his business was inexpensive
5052 reprints
<quote>of standard works whose copyright term had expired,
</quote> at least
5053 under the Statute of Anne.
<footnote><para>
5055 Mark Rose,
<citetitle>Authors and Owners
</citetitle> (Cambridge: Harvard University Press,
5057 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark
</primary></indexterm>
5059 Donaldson's publishing house prospered
5060 <!-- PAGE BREAK 102 -->
5061 and became
<quote>something of a center for literary Scotsmen.
</quote> <quote>[A]mong
5062 them,
</quote> Professor Mark Rose writes, was
<quote>the young James Boswell
5063 who, together with his friend Andrew Erskine, published an anthology
5064 of contemporary Scottish poems with Donaldson.
</quote><footnote><para>
5069 <indexterm id='idxcommonlaw' class='startofrange'
><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
5071 When the London booksellers tried to shut down Donaldson's shop in
5072 Scotland, he responded by moving his shop to London, where he sold
5073 inexpensive editions
<quote>of the most popular English books, in defiance
5074 of the supposed common law right of Literary
5075 Property.
</quote><footnote><para>
5077 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
5078 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective
</citetitle>,
167 (quoting
5081 His books undercut the Conger prices by
30 to
50 percent, and he
5082 rested his right to compete upon the ground that, under the Statute of
5083 Anne, the works he was selling had passed out of protection.
5085 <indexterm startref='idxconger' class='endofrange'
/>
5086 <indexterm id='idxmillarvtaylor' class='startofrange'
><primary>Millar v. Taylor
</primary></indexterm>
5088 The London booksellers quickly brought suit to block
<quote>piracy
</quote> like
5089 Donaldson's. A number of actions were successful against the
<quote>pirates,
</quote>
5090 the most important early victory being
<citetitle>Millar
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Taylor
</citetitle>.
5092 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonalexander' class='endofrange'
/>
5093 <indexterm startref='idxscottishpublishers' class='endofrange'
/>
5094 <indexterm id='idxthomsonjames' class='startofrange'
><primary>Thomson, James
</primary></indexterm>
5095 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
5096 <indexterm><primary>Seasons, The (Thomson)
</primary></indexterm>
5097 <indexterm><primary>Taylor, Robert
</primary></indexterm>
5099 Millar was a bookseller who in
1729 had purchased the rights to James
5100 Thomson's poem
<quote>The Seasons.
</quote> Millar complied with the requirements of
5101 the Statute of Anne, and therefore received the full protection of the
5102 statute. After the term of copyright ended, Robert Taylor began
5103 printing a competing volume. Millar sued, claiming a perpetual common
5104 law right, the Statute of Anne notwithstanding.
<footnote><para>
5106 Howard B. Abrams,
<quote>The Historic Foundation of American Copyright Law:
5107 Exploding the Myth of Common Law Copyright,
</quote> <citetitle>Wayne Law Review
</citetitle> 29
5111 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord
</primary></indexterm>
5113 Astonishingly to modern lawyers, one of the greatest judges in English
5114 history, Lord Mansfield, agreed with the booksellers. Whatever
5115 protection the Statute of Anne gave booksellers, it did not, he held,
5116 extinguish any common law right. The question was whether the common
5117 law would protect the author against subsequent
<quote>pirates.
</quote>
5118 Mansfield's answer was yes: The common law would bar Taylor from
5119 reprinting Thomson's poem without Millar's permission. That common law
5120 rule thus effectively gave the booksellers a perpetual right to
5121 control the publication of any book assigned to them.
5123 <indexterm startref='idxcommonlaw' class='endofrange'
/>
5124 <indexterm startref='idxthomsonjames' class='endofrange'
/>
5125 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity2' class='endofrange'
/>
5126 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament3' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
5128 Considered as a matter of abstract justice
—reasoning as if
5129 justice were just a matter of logical deduction from first
5130 principles
—Mansfield's conclusion might make some sense. But
5131 what it ignored was the larger issue that Parliament had struggled
5132 with in
1710: How best to limit
5133 <!-- PAGE BREAK 103 -->
5134 the monopoly power of publishers? Parliament's strategy was to offer a
5135 term for existing works that was long enough to buy peace in
1710, but
5136 short enough to assure that culture would pass into competition within
5137 a reasonable period of time. Within twenty-one years, Parliament
5138 believed, Britain would mature from the controlled culture that the
5139 Crown coveted to the free culture that we inherited.
5141 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='endofrange'
/>
5142 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonalexander2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson, Alexander
</primary></indexterm>
5143 <indexterm id='idxscottishpublishers2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
5145 The fight to defend the limits of the Statute of Anne was not to end
5146 there, however, and it is here that Donaldson enters the mix.
5148 <indexterm><primary>Thomson, James
</primary></indexterm>
5149 <indexterm><primary>Beckett, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
5150 <indexterm id='idxhouseoflords' class='startofrange'
><primary>House of Lords
</primary></indexterm>
5151 <indexterm id='idxsupremecourtushouseoflordsvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>House of Lords vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
5153 Millar died soon after his victory, so his case was not appealed. His
5154 estate sold Thomson's poems to a syndicate of printers that included
5155 Thomas Beckett.
<footnote><para>
5159 Donaldson then released an unauthorized edition
5160 of Thomson's works. Beckett, on the strength of the decision in
<citetitle>Millar
</citetitle>,
5161 got an injunction against Donaldson. Donaldson appealed the case to
5162 the House of Lords, which functioned much like our own Supreme
5163 Court. In February of
1774, that body had the chance to interpret the
5164 meaning of Parliament's limits from sixty years before.
5166 <indexterm startref='idxmillarvtaylor' class='endofrange'
/>
5167 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament3' class='endofrange'
/>
5168 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonvbeckett' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson v. Beckett
</primary></indexterm>
5169 <indexterm id='idxcommonlaw2' class='startofrange'
><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
5171 As few legal cases ever do,
<citetitle>Donaldson
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Beckett
</citetitle> drew an
5172 enormous amount of attention throughout Britain. Donaldson's lawyers
5173 argued that whatever rights may have existed under the common law, the
5174 Statute of Anne terminated those rights. After passage of the Statute
5175 of Anne, the only legal protection for an exclusive right to control
5176 publication came from that statute. Thus, they argued, after the term
5177 specified in the Statute of Anne expired, works that had been
5178 protected by the statute were no longer protected.
5180 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne3' class='endofrange'
/>
5182 The House of Lords was an odd institution. Legal questions were
5183 presented to the House and voted upon first by the
<quote>law lords,
</quote>
5184 members of special legal distinction who functioned much like the
5185 Justices in our Supreme Court. Then, after the law lords voted, the
5186 House of Lords generally voted.
5188 <indexterm startref='idxsupremecourtushouseoflordsvs' class='endofrange'
/>
5189 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
5190 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainenglishlegalestablishmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>English legal establishment of
</secondary></indexterm>
5192 The reports about the law lords' votes are mixed. On some counts,
5193 it looks as if perpetual copyright prevailed. But there is no ambiguity
5194 <!-- PAGE BREAK 104 -->
5195 about how the House of Lords voted as whole. By a two-to-one majority
5196 (
22 to
11) they voted to reject the idea of perpetual copyrights.
5197 Whatever one's understanding of the common law, now a copyright was
5198 fixed for a limited time, after which the work protected by copyright
5199 passed into the public domain.
5201 <indexterm><primary>Bacon, Francis
</primary></indexterm>
5202 <indexterm><primary>Bunyan, John
</primary></indexterm>
5203 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Samuel
</primary></indexterm>
5204 <indexterm><primary>Milton, John
</primary></indexterm>
5205 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
5207 <quote>The public domain.
</quote> Before the case of
<citetitle>Donaldson
</citetitle>
5208 v.
<citetitle>Beckett
</citetitle>, there was no clear idea of a public domain in
5209 England. Before
1774, there was a strong argument that common law
5210 copyrights were perpetual. After
1774, the public domain was
5211 born. For the first time in Anglo-American history, the legal control
5212 over creative works expired, and the greatest works in English
5213 history
—including those of Shakespeare, Bacon, Milton, Johnson,
5214 and Bunyan
—were free of legal restraint.
5216 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonalexander2' class='endofrange'
/>
5217 <indexterm startref='idxscottishpublishers2' class='endofrange'
/>
5218 <indexterm startref='idxcommonlaw2' class='endofrange'
/>
5219 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity3' class='endofrange'
/>
5220 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainenglishlegalestablishmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
5221 <indexterm><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
5223 It is hard for us to imagine, but this decision by the House of Lords
5224 fueled an extraordinarily popular and political reaction. In Scotland,
5225 where most of the
<quote>pirate publishers
</quote> did their work, people
5226 celebrated the decision in the streets. As the
<citetitle>Edinburgh Advertiser
</citetitle>
5227 reported,
<quote>No private cause has so much engrossed the attention of the
5228 public, and none has been tried before the House of Lords in the
5229 decision of which so many individuals were interested.
</quote> <quote>Great
5230 rejoicing in Edinburgh upon victory over literary property: bonfires
5231 and illuminations.
</quote><footnote><para>
5236 <indexterm startref='idxhouseoflords' class='endofrange'
/>
5238 In London, however, at least among publishers, the reaction was
5239 equally strong in the opposite direction. The
<citetitle>Morning Chronicle
</citetitle>
5244 By the above decision
… near
200,
000 pounds worth of what was
5245 honestly purchased at public sale, and which was yesterday thought
5246 property is now reduced to nothing. The Booksellers of London and
5247 Westminster, many of whom sold estates and houses to purchase
5248 Copy-right, are in a manner ruined, and those who after many years
5249 industry thought they had acquired a competency to provide for their
5250 families now find themselves without a shilling to devise to their
5251 successors.
<footnote><para>
5257 <indexterm><primary>House of Lords
</primary></indexterm>
5258 <indexterm><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>English legal establishment of
</secondary></indexterm>
5260 <!-- PAGE BREAK 105 -->
5261 <quote>Ruined
</quote> is a bit of an exaggeration. But it is not an exaggeration to
5262 say that the change was profound. The decision of the House of Lords
5263 meant that the booksellers could no longer control how culture in
5264 England would grow and develop. Culture in England was thereafter
5265 <emphasis>free
</emphasis>. Not in the sense that copyrights would not
5266 be respected, for of course, for a limited time after a work was
5267 published, the bookseller had an exclusive right to control the
5268 publication of that book. And not in the sense that books could be
5269 stolen, for even after a copyright expired, you still had to buy the
5270 book from someone. But
<emphasis>free
</emphasis> in the sense that the
5271 culture and its growth would no longer be controlled by a small group
5272 of publishers. As every free market does, this free market of free
5273 culture would grow as the consumers and producers chose. English
5274 culture would develop as the many English readers chose to let it
5275 develop
— chose in the books they bought and wrote; chose in the
5276 memes they repeated and endorsed. Chose in a
<emphasis>competitive
5277 context
</emphasis>, not a context in which the choices about what
5278 culture is available to people and how they get access to it are made
5279 by the few despite the wishes of the many.
5281 <indexterm startref='idxbooksellersenglish' class='endofrange'
/>
5282 <indexterm><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
5284 At least, this was the rule in a world where the Parliament is
5285 antimonopoly, resistant to the protectionist pleas of publishers. In a
5286 world where the Parliament is more pliant, free culture would be less
5289 <indexterm startref='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='endofrange'
/>
5290 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawdevelopmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
5291 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawenglish' class='endofrange'
/>
5292 <indexterm startref='idxenglandcopyrightlawsdevelopedin' class='endofrange'
/>
5293 <indexterm startref='idxunitedkingdomhistoryofcopyrightlawin' class='endofrange'
/>
5294 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightasnarrowmonopolyright' class='endofrange'
/>
5295 <indexterm startref='idxmonopolycopyrightas' class='endofrange'
/>
5296 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof3' class='endofrange'
/>
5297 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonvbeckett' class='endofrange'
/>
5298 <!-- PAGE BREAK 106 -->
5300 <chapter label=
"7" id=
"recorders">
5301 <title>Chapter Seven: Recorders
</title>
5302 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
5303 <indexterm id='idxdocumentaryfilm' class='startofrange'
><primary>documentary film
</primary></indexterm>
5304 <indexterm id='idxelsejon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Else, Jon
</primary></indexterm>
5305 <indexterm id='idxfairuseindocumentaryfilm' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>in documentary film
</secondary></indexterm>
5306 <indexterm id='idxfilmsfairuseofcopyrightedmaterialin' class='startofrange'
><primary>films
</primary><secondary>fair use of copyrighted material in
</secondary></indexterm>
5308 <emphasis role='strong'
>Jon Else
</emphasis> is a filmmaker. He is best
5309 known for his documentaries and has been very successful in spreading
5310 his art. He is also a teacher, and as a teacher myself, I envy the
5311 loyalty and admiration that his students feel for him. (I met, by
5312 accident, two of his students at a dinner party. He was their god.)
5315 Else worked on a documentary that I was involved in. At a break,
5316 he told me a story about the freedom to create with film in America
5319 <indexterm id='idxwagnerrichard' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wagner, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
5320 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera
</primary></indexterm>
5322 In
1990, Else was working on a documentary about Wagner's Ring
5323 Cycle. The focus was stagehands at the San Francisco Opera.
5324 Stagehands are a particularly funny and colorful element of an opera.
5325 During a show, they hang out below the stage in the grips' lounge and
5326 in the lighting loft. They make a perfect contrast to the art on the
5329 <indexterm id='idxsimpsonsthe' class='startofrange'
><primary>Simpsons, The
</primary></indexterm>
5331 During one of the performances, Else was shooting some stagehands
5332 playing checkers. In one corner of the room was a television set.
5333 Playing on the television set, while the stagehands played checkers
5334 and the opera company played Wagner, was
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>. As Else judged
5335 <!-- PAGE BREAK 107 -->
5336 it, this touch of cartoon helped capture the flavor of what was special
5339 <indexterm startref='idxwagnerrichard' class='endofrange'
/>
5340 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>multiple copyrights associated with
</secondary></indexterm>
5342 Years later, when he finally got funding to complete the film, Else
5343 attempted to clear the rights for those few seconds of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>.
5344 For of course, those few seconds are copyrighted; and of course, to use
5345 copyrighted material you need the permission of the copyright owner,
5346 unless
<quote>fair use
</quote> or some other privilege applies.
5348 <indexterm id='idxgraciefilms' class='startofrange'
><primary>Gracie Films
</primary></indexterm>
5349 <indexterm id='idxgroeningmatt' class='startofrange'
><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5351 Else called
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> creator Matt Groening's office to get permission.
5352 Groening approved the shot. The shot was a four-and-a-halfsecond image
5353 on a tiny television set in the corner of the room. How could it hurt?
5354 Groening was happy to have it in the film, but he told Else to contact
5355 Gracie Films, the company that produces the program.
5357 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5359 Gracie Films was okay with it, too, but they, like Groening, wanted
5360 to be careful. So they told Else to contact Fox, Gracie's parent company.
5361 Else called Fox and told them about the clip in the corner of the one
5362 room shot of the film. Matt Groening had already given permission,
5363 Else said. He was just confirming the permission with Fox.
5365 <indexterm startref='idxgraciefilms' class='endofrange'
/>
5367 Then, as Else told me,
<quote>two things happened. First we discovered
5368 … that Matt Groening doesn't own his own creation
—or at
5369 least that someone [at Fox] believes he doesn't own his own creation.
</quote>
5370 And second, Fox
<quote>wanted ten thousand dollars as a licensing fee for us
5371 to use this four-point-five seconds of
… entirely unsolicited
5372 <citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> which was in the corner of the shot.
</quote>
5374 <indexterm startref='idxgroeningmatt' class='endofrange'
/>
5375 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany' class='endofrange'
/>
5376 <indexterm id='idxherrerarebecca' class='startofrange'
><primary>Herrera, Rebecca
</primary></indexterm>
5378 Else was certain there was a mistake. He worked his way up to someone
5379 he thought was a vice president for licensing, Rebecca Herrera. He
5380 explained to her,
<quote>There must be some mistake here.
… We're
5381 asking for your educational rate on this.
</quote> That was the educational
5382 rate, Herrera told Else. A day or so later, Else called again to
5383 confirm what he had been told.
5385 <indexterm><primary>Wagner, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
5387 <quote>I wanted to make sure I had my facts straight,
</quote> he told me.
<quote>Yes, you
5388 have your facts straight,
</quote> she said. It would cost $
10,
000 to use the
5389 clip of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle> in the corner of a shot in a documentary film
5392 <!-- PAGE BREAK 108 -->
5393 Wagner's Ring Cycle. And then, astonishingly, Herrera told Else,
<quote>And
5394 if you quote me, I'll turn you over to our attorneys.
</quote> As an assistant
5395 to Herrera told Else later on,
<quote>They don't give a shit. They just want
5398 <indexterm startref='idxherrerarebecca' class='endofrange'
/>
5399 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera
</primary></indexterm>
5400 <indexterm><primary>Day After Trinity, The
</primary></indexterm>
5402 Else didn't have the money to buy the right to replay what was playing
5403 on the television backstage at the San Francisco Opera. To reproduce
5404 this reality was beyond the documentary filmmaker's budget. At the
5405 very last minute before the film was to be released, Else digitally
5406 replaced the shot with a clip from another film that he had worked on,
5407 <citetitle>The Day After Trinity
</citetitle>, from ten years before.
5409 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5410 <indexterm id='idxgroeningmatt2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5412 There's no doubt that someone, whether Matt Groening or Fox, owns the
5413 copyright to
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>. That copyright is their property. To use
5414 that copyrighted material thus sometimes requires the permission of
5415 the copyright owner. If the use that Else wanted to make of the
5416 <citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> copyright were one of the uses restricted by the law, then he
5417 would need to get the permission of the copyright owner before he
5418 could use the work in that way. And in a free market, it is the owner
5419 of the copyright who gets to set the price for any use that the law
5420 says the owner gets to control.
5423 For example,
<quote>public performance
</quote> is a use of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle> that the
5424 copyright owner gets to control. If you take a selection of favorite
5425 episodes, rent a movie theater, and charge for tickets to come see
<quote>My
5426 Favorite
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>,
</quote> then you need to get permission from the copyright
5427 owner. And the copyright owner (rightly, in my view) can charge
5428 whatever she wants
—$
10 or $
1,
000,
000. That's her right, as set
5432 But when lawyers hear this story about Jon Else and Fox, their first
5433 thought is
<quote>fair use.
</quote><footnote><para>
5435 For an excellent argument that such use is
<quote>fair use,
</quote> but that
5436 lawyers don't permit recognition that it is
<quote>fair use,
</quote> see Richard
5437 A. Posner with William F. Patry,
<quote>Fair Use and Statutory Reform in the
5438 Wake of
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle></quote> (draft on file with author), University of Chicago
5439 Law School,
5 August
2003.
5441 Else's use of just
4.5 seconds of an indirect shot of a
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>
5442 episode is clearly a fair use of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>—and fair use does
5443 not require the permission of anyone.
5445 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany2' class='endofrange'
/>
5446 <indexterm startref='idxgroeningmatt2' class='endofrange'
/>
5448 <!-- PAGE BREAK 109 -->
5449 So I asked Else why he didn't just rely upon
<quote>fair use.
</quote> Here's his reply:
5452 <indexterm id='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>legal intimidation tactics against
</secondary></indexterm>
5454 The
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> fiasco was for me a great lesson in the gulf between what
5455 lawyers find irrelevant in some abstract sense, and what is crushingly
5456 relevant in practice to those of us actually trying to make and
5457 broadcast documentaries. I never had any doubt that it was
<quote>clearly
5458 fair use
</quote> in an absolute legal sense. But I couldn't rely on the
5459 concept in any concrete way. Here's why:
5461 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
5463 <indexterm><primary>Errors and Omissions insurance
</primary></indexterm>
5466 Before our films can be broadcast, the network requires that we buy
5467 Errors and Omissions insurance. The carriers require a detailed
5468 <quote>visual cue sheet
</quote> listing the source and licensing status of each
5469 shot in the film. They take a dim view of
<quote>fair use,
</quote> and a claim of
5470 <quote>fair use
</quote> can grind the application process to a halt.
5473 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5474 <indexterm><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5475 <indexterm><primary>Lucas, George
</primary></indexterm>
5476 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Star Wars
</citetitle></primary></indexterm>
5479 I probably never should have asked Matt Groening in the first
5480 place. But I knew (at least from folklore) that Fox had a history of
5481 tracking down and stopping unlicensed
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> usage, just as George
5482 Lucas had a very high profile litigating
<citetitle>Star Wars
</citetitle> usage. So I decided
5483 to play by the book, thinking that we would be granted free or cheap
5484 license to four seconds of
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>. As a documentary producer working
5485 to exhaustion on a shoestring, the last thing I wanted was to risk
5486 legal trouble, even nuisance legal trouble, and even to defend a
5491 I did, in fact, speak with one of your colleagues at Stanford Law
5492 School
… who confirmed that it was fair use. He also confirmed
5493 that Fox would
<quote>depose and litigate you to within an inch of your
5494 life,
</quote> regardless of the merits of my claim. He made clear that it
5495 would boil down to who had the bigger legal department and the deeper
5496 pockets, me or them.
5497 <!-- PAGE BREAK 110 -->
5499 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany3' class='endofrange'
/>
5503 The question of fair use usually comes up at the end of the
5504 project, when we are up against a release deadline and out of
5509 <indexterm startref='idxsimpsonsthe' class='endofrange'
/>
5511 In theory, fair use means you need no permission. The theory therefore
5512 supports free culture and insulates against a permission culture. But
5513 in practice, fair use functions very differently. The fuzzy lines of
5514 the law, tied to the extraordinary liability if lines are crossed,
5515 means that the effective fair use for many types of creators is
5516 slight. The law has the right aim; practice has defeated the aim.
5519 This practice shows just how far the law has come from its
5520 eighteenth-century roots. The law was born as a shield to protect
5521 publishers' profits against the unfair competition of a pirate. It has
5522 matured into a sword that interferes with any use, transformative or
5525 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand' class='endofrange'
/>
5526 <indexterm startref='idxdocumentaryfilm' class='endofrange'
/>
5527 <indexterm startref='idxelsejon' class='endofrange'
/>
5528 <indexterm startref='idxfairuseindocumentaryfilm' class='endofrange'
/>
5529 <indexterm startref='idxfilmsfairuseofcopyrightedmaterialin' class='endofrange'
/>
5530 <indexterm startref='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst' class='endofrange'
/>
5531 <!-- PAGE BREAK 111 -->
5533 <chapter label=
"8" id=
"transformers">
5534 <title>Chapter Eight: Transformers
</title>
5535 <indexterm><primary>Allen, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
5536 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5537 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary></indexterm>
5539 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1993</emphasis>, Alex Alben was a lawyer
5540 working at Starwave, Inc. Starwave was an innovative company founded
5541 by Microsoft cofounder Paul Allen to develop digital
5542 entertainment. Long before the Internet became popular, Starwave began
5543 investing in new technology for delivering entertainment in
5544 anticipation of the power of networks.
5546 <indexterm id='idxartistsretrospective' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>retrospective compilations on
</secondary></indexterm>
5547 <indexterm id='idxcdroms' class='startofrange'
><primary>CD-ROMs, film clips used in
</primary></indexterm>
5549 Alben had a special interest in new technology. He was intrigued by
5550 the emerging market for CD-ROM technology
—not to distribute
5551 film, but to do things with film that otherwise would be very
5552 difficult. In
1993, he launched an initiative to develop a product to
5553 build retrospectives on the work of particular actors. The first actor
5554 chosen was Clint Eastwood. The idea was to showcase all of the work of
5555 Eastwood, with clips from his films and interviews with figures
5556 important to his career.
5559 At that time, Eastwood had made more than fifty films, as an actor and
5560 as a director. Alben began with a series of interviews with Eastwood,
5561 asking him about his career. Because Starwave produced those
5562 interviews, it was free to include them on the CD.
5565 <!-- PAGE BREAK 112 -->
5566 That alone would not have made a very interesting product, so
5567 Starwave wanted to add content from the movies in Eastwood's career:
5568 posters, scripts, and other material relating to the films Eastwood
5569 made. Most of his career was spent at Warner Brothers, and so it was
5570 relatively easy to get permission for that content.
5573 Then Alben and his team decided to include actual film clips.
<quote>Our
5574 goal was that we were going to have a clip from every one of
5575 Eastwood's films,
</quote> Alben told me. It was here that the problem
5576 arose.
<quote>No one had ever really done this before,
</quote> Alben explained.
<quote>No
5577 one had ever tried to do this in the context of an artistic look at an
5578 actor's career.
</quote>
5581 Alben brought the idea to Michael Slade, the CEO of Starwave.
5582 Slade asked,
<quote>Well, what will it take?
</quote>
5585 Alben replied,
<quote>Well, we're going to have to clear rights from
5586 everyone who appears in these films, and the music and everything
5587 else that we want to use in these film clips.
</quote> Slade said,
<quote>Great! Go
5588 for it.
</quote><footnote>
5591 Technically, the rights that Alben had to clear were mainly those of
5592 publicity
—rights an artist has to control the commercial
5593 exploitation of his image. But these rights, too, burden
<quote>Rip, Mix,
5594 Burn
</quote> creativity, as this chapter evinces.
5595 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>publicity rights on images of
</secondary></indexterm>
5596 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5600 The problem was that neither Alben nor Slade had any idea what
5601 clearing those rights would mean. Every actor in each of the films
5602 could have a claim to royalties for the reuse of that film. But CD-
5603 ROMs had not been specified in the contracts for the actors, so there
5604 was no clear way to know just what Starwave was to do.
5607 I asked Alben how he dealt with the problem. With an obvious
5608 pride in his resourcefulness that obscured the obvious bizarreness of his
5609 tale, Alben recounted just what they did:
5613 So we very mechanically went about looking up the film clips. We made
5614 some artistic decisions about what film clips to include
—of
5615 course we were going to use the
<quote>Make my day
</quote> clip from
<citetitle>Dirty
5616 Harry
</citetitle>. But you then need to get the guy on the ground who's wiggling
5617 under the gun and you need to get his permission. And then you have
5618 to decide what you are going to pay him.
5621 <!-- PAGE BREAK 113 -->
5622 We decided that it would be fair if we offered them the dayplayer rate
5623 for the right to reuse that performance. We're talking about a clip of
5624 less than a minute, but to reuse that performance in the CD-ROM the
5625 rate at the time was about $
600. So we had to identify the
5626 people
—some of them were hard to identify because in Eastwood
5627 movies you can't tell who's the guy crashing through the
5628 glass
—is it the actor or is it the stuntman? And then we just,
5629 we put together a team, my assistant and some others, and we just
5630 started calling people.
5633 <indexterm><primary>Sutherland, Donald
</primary></indexterm>
5635 Some actors were glad to help
—Donald Sutherland, for example,
5636 followed up himself to be sure that the rights had been cleared.
5637 Others were dumbfounded at their good fortune. Alben would ask,
5638 <quote>Hey, can I pay you $
600 or maybe if you were in two films, you
5639 know, $
1,
200?
</quote> And they would say,
<quote>Are you for real? Hey, I'd love
5640 to get $
1,
200.
</quote> And some of course were a bit difficult (estranged
5641 ex-wives, in particular). But eventually, Alben and his team had
5642 cleared the rights to this retrospective CD-ROM on Clint Eastwood's
5646 It was one
<emphasis>year
</emphasis> later
—<quote>and even then we
5647 weren't sure whether we were totally in the clear.
</quote>
5650 Alben is proud of his work. The project was the first of its kind and
5651 the only time he knew of that a team had undertaken such a massive
5652 project for the purpose of releasing a retrospective.
5656 Everyone thought it would be too hard. Everyone just threw up their
5657 hands and said,
<quote>Oh, my gosh, a film, it's so many copyrights, there's
5658 the music, there's the screenplay, there's the director, there's the
5659 actors.
</quote> But we just broke it down. We just put it into its
5660 constituent parts and said,
<quote>Okay, there's this many actors, this many
5661 directors,
… this many musicians,
</quote> and we just went at it very
5662 systematically and cleared the rights.
5667 <!-- PAGE BREAK 114 -->
5668 And no doubt, the product itself was exceptionally good. Eastwood
5669 loved it, and it sold very well.
5671 <indexterm><primary>Drucker, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
5673 But I pressed Alben about how weird it seems that it would have to
5674 take a year's work simply to clear rights. No doubt Alben had done
5675 this efficiently, but as Peter Drucker has famously quipped,
<quote>There is
5676 nothing so useless as doing efficiently that which should not be done
5677 at all.
</quote><footnote><para>
5679 U.S. Department of Commerce Office of Acquisition Management,
<citetitle>Seven
5680 Steps to Performance-Based Services Acquisition
</citetitle>, available at
5681 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
22</ulink>.
5683 Did it make sense, I asked Alben, that this is the way a new work
5687 For, as he acknowledged,
<quote>very few
… have the time and resources,
5688 and the will to do this,
</quote> and thus, very few such works would ever be
5689 made. Does it make sense, I asked him, from the standpoint of what
5690 anybody really thought they were ever giving rights for originally, that
5691 you would have to go clear rights for these kinds of clips?
5695 I don't think so. When an actor renders a performance in a movie,
5696 he or she gets paid very well.
… And then when
30 seconds of
5697 that performance is used in a new product that is a retrospective
5698 of somebody's career, I don't think that that person
… should be
5699 compensated for that.
5703 Or at least, is this
<emphasis>how
</emphasis> the artist should be
5704 compensated? Would it make sense, I asked, for there to be some kind
5705 of statutory license that someone could pay and be free to make
5706 derivative use of clips like this? Did it really make sense that a
5707 follow-on creator would have to track down every artist, actor,
5708 director, musician, and get explicit permission from each? Wouldn't a
5709 lot more be created if the legal part of the creative process could be
5710 made to be more clean?
5714 Absolutely. I think that if there were some fair-licensing
5715 mechanism
—where you weren't subject to hold-ups and you weren't
5716 subject to estranged former spouses
—you'd see a lot more of this
5717 work, because it wouldn't be so daunting to try to put together a
5718 <!-- PAGE BREAK 115 -->
5719 retrospective of someone's career and meaningfully illustrate it with
5720 lots of media from that person's career. You'd build in a cost as the
5721 producer of one of these things. You'd build in a cost of paying X
5722 dollars to the talent that performed. But it would be a known
5723 cost. That's the thing that trips everybody up and makes this kind of
5724 product hard to get off the ground. If you knew I have a hundred
5725 minutes of film in this product and it's going to cost me X, then you
5726 build your budget around it, and you can get investments and
5727 everything else that you need to produce it. But if you say,
<quote>Oh, I
5728 want a hundred minutes of something and I have no idea what it's going
5729 to cost me, and a certain number of people are going to hold me up for
5730 money,
</quote> then it becomes difficult to put one of these things together.
5734 Alben worked for a big company. His company was backed by some of the
5735 richest investors in the world. He therefore had authority and access
5736 that the average Web designer would not have. So if it took him a
5737 year, how long would it take someone else? And how much creativity is
5738 never made just because the costs of clearing the rights are so high?
5740 <indexterm startref='idxcdroms' class='endofrange'
/>
5741 <indexterm startref='idxartistsretrospective' class='endofrange'
/>
5743 These costs are the burdens of a kind of regulation. Put on a
5744 Republican hat for a moment, and get angry for a bit. The government
5745 defines the scope of these rights, and the scope defined determines
5746 how much it's going to cost to negotiate them. (Remember the idea that
5747 land runs to the heavens, and imagine the pilot purchasing flythrough
5748 rights as he negotiates to fly from Los Angeles to San Francisco.)
5749 These rights might well have once made sense; but as circumstances
5750 change, they make no sense at all. Or at least, a well-trained,
5751 regulationminimizing Republican should look at the rights and ask,
5752 <quote>Does this still make sense?
</quote>
5754 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex1' class='endofrange'
/>
5756 I've seen the flash of recognition when people get this point, but only
5757 a few times. The first was at a conference of federal judges in California.
5758 The judges were gathered to discuss the emerging topic of cyber-law. I
5759 was asked to be on the panel. Harvey Saferstein, a well-respected lawyer
5761 <!-- PAGE BREAK 116 -->
5762 from an L.A. firm, introduced the panel with a video that he and a
5763 friend, Robert Fairbank, had produced.
5766 The video was a brilliant collage of film from every period in the
5767 twentieth century, all framed around the idea of a
<citetitle>60 Minutes
</citetitle> episode.
5768 The execution was perfect, down to the sixty-minute stopwatch. The
5769 judges loved every minute of it.
5771 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, David
</primary></indexterm>
5773 When the lights came up, I looked over to my copanelist, David
5774 Nimmer, perhaps the leading copyright scholar and practitioner in the
5775 nation. He had an astonished look on his face, as he peered across the
5776 room of over
250 well-entertained judges. Taking an ominous tone, he
5777 began his talk with a question:
<quote>Do you know how many federal laws
5778 were just violated in this room?
</quote>
5781 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5782 <indexterm><primary>Boies, David
</primary></indexterm>
5783 <indexterm><primary>Court of Appeals
</primary><secondary>Ninth Circuit
</secondary></indexterm>
5784 <indexterm><primary>Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals
</primary></indexterm>
5785 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary></indexterm>
5786 For of course, the two brilliantly talented creators who made this
5787 film hadn't done what Alben did. They hadn't spent a year clearing the
5788 rights to these clips; technically, what they had done violated the
5789 law. Of course, it wasn't as if they or anyone were going to be
5790 prosecuted for this violation (the presence of
250 judges and a gaggle
5791 of federal marshals notwithstanding). But Nimmer was making an
5792 important point: A year before anyone would have heard of the word
5793 Napster, and two years before another member of our panel, David
5794 Boies, would defend Napster before the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals,
5795 Nimmer was trying to get the judges to see that the law would not be
5796 friendly to the capacities that this technology would
5797 enable. Technology means you can now do amazing things easily; but you
5798 couldn't easily do them legally.
5801 We live in a
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> culture enabled by technology. Anyone
5802 building a presentation knows the extraordinary freedom that the cut
5803 and paste architecture of the Internet created
—in a second you can
5804 find just about any image you want; in another second, you can have it
5805 planted in your presentation.
5807 <indexterm><primary>Camp Chaos
</primary></indexterm>
5809 But presentations are just a tiny beginning. Using the Internet and
5810 <!-- PAGE BREAK 117 -->
5811 its archives, musicians are able to string together mixes of sound
5812 never before imagined; filmmakers are able to build movies out of
5813 clips on computers around the world. An extraordinary site in Sweden
5814 takes images of politicians and blends them with music to create
5815 biting political commentary. A site called Camp Chaos has produced
5816 some of the most biting criticism of the record industry that there is
5817 through the mixing of Flash! and music.
5820 All of these creations are technically illegal. Even if the creators
5821 wanted to be
<quote>legal,
</quote> the cost of complying with the law is impossibly
5822 high. Therefore, for the law-abiding sorts, a wealth of creativity is
5823 never made. And for that part that is made, if it doesn't follow the
5824 clearance rules, it doesn't get released.
5827 To some, these stories suggest a solution: Let's alter the mix of
5828 rights so that people are free to build upon our culture. Free to add
5829 or mix as they see fit. We could even make this change without
5830 necessarily requiring that the
<quote>free
</quote> use be free as in
<quote>free beer.
</quote>
5831 Instead, the system could simply make it easy for follow-on creators
5832 to compensate artists without requiring an army of lawyers to come
5833 along: a rule, for example, that says
<quote>the royalty owed the copyright
5834 owner of an unregistered work for the derivative reuse of his work
5835 will be a flat
1 percent of net revenues, to be held in escrow for the
5836 copyright owner.
</quote> Under this rule, the copyright owner could benefit
5837 from some royalty, but he would not have the benefit of a full
5838 property right (meaning the right to name his own price) unless he
5842 Who could possibly object to this? And what reason would there be
5843 for objecting? We're talking about work that is not now being made;
5844 which if made, under this plan, would produce new income for artists.
5845 What reason would anyone have to oppose it?
5848 <emphasis role='strong'
>In February
2003</emphasis>, DreamWorks
5849 studios announced an agreement with Mike Myers, the comic genius of
5850 <citetitle>Saturday Night Live
</citetitle> and
5851 <!-- PAGE BREAK 118 -->
5852 Austin Powers. According to the announcement, Myers and Dream-Works
5853 would work together to form a
<quote>unique filmmaking pact.
</quote> Under the
5854 agreement, DreamWorks
<quote>will acquire the rights to existing motion
5855 picture hits and classics, write new storylines and
—with the use
5856 of stateof-the-art digital technology
—insert Myers and other
5857 actors into the film, thereby creating an entirely new piece of
5858 entertainment.
</quote>
5861 The announcement called this
<quote>film sampling.
</quote> As Myers explained,
5862 <quote>Film Sampling is an exciting way to put an original spin on existing
5863 films and allow audiences to see old movies in a new light. Rap
5864 artists have been doing this for years with music and now we are able
5865 to take that same concept and apply it to film.
</quote> Steven Spielberg is
5866 quoted as saying,
<quote>If anyone can create a way to bring old films to
5867 new audiences, it is Mike.
</quote>
5870 Spielberg is right. Film sampling by Myers will be brilliant. But if
5871 you don't think about it, you might miss the truly astonishing point
5872 about this announcement. As the vast majority of our film heritage
5873 remains under copyright, the real meaning of the DreamWorks
5874 announcement is just this: It is Mike Myers and only Mike Myers who is
5875 free to sample. Any general freedom to build upon the film archive of
5876 our culture, a freedom in other contexts presumed for us all, is now a
5877 privilege reserved for the funny and famous
—and presumably rich.
5880 This privilege becomes reserved for two sorts of reasons. The first
5881 continues the story of the last chapter: the vagueness of
<quote>fair use.
</quote>
5882 Much of
<quote>sampling
</quote> should be considered
<quote>fair use.
</quote> But few would
5883 rely upon so weak a doctrine to create. That leads to the second reason
5884 that the privilege is reserved for the few: The costs of negotiating the
5885 legal rights for the creative reuse of content are astronomically high.
5886 These costs mirror the costs with fair use: You either pay a lawyer to
5887 defend your fair use rights or pay a lawyer to track down permissions
5888 so you don't have to rely upon fair use rights. Either way, the creative
5889 process is a process of paying lawyers
—again a privilege, or perhaps a
5890 curse, reserved for the few.
5892 <!-- PAGE BREAK 119 -->
5894 <chapter label=
"9" id=
"collectors">
5895 <title>Chapter Nine: Collectors
</title>
5896 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital1' class='startofrange'
><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
5897 <indexterm><primary>bots
</primary></indexterm>
5899 <emphasis role='strong'
>In April
1996</emphasis>, millions of
5900 <quote>bots
</quote>—computer codes designed to
5901 <quote>spider,
</quote> or automatically search the Internet and copy
5902 content
—began running across the Net. Page by page, these bots
5903 copied Internet-based information onto a small set of computers
5904 located in a basement in San Francisco's Presidio. Once the bots
5905 finished the whole of the Internet, they started again. Over and over
5906 again, once every two months, these bits of code took copies of the
5907 Internet and stored them.
5909 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
5911 By October
2001, the bots had collected more than five years of
5912 copies. And at a small announcement in Berkeley, California, the
5913 archive that these copies created, the Internet Archive, was opened to
5914 the world. Using a technology called
<quote>the Way Back Machine,
</quote> you could
5915 enter a Web page, and see all of its copies going back to
1996, as
5916 well as when those pages changed.
5918 <indexterm id='idxorwellgeorge' class='startofrange'
><primary>Orwell, George
</primary></indexterm>
5920 This is the thing about the Internet that Orwell would have
5921 appreciated. In the dystopia described in
<citetitle>1984</citetitle>, old newspapers were
5922 constantly updated to assure that the current view of the world,
5923 approved of by the government, was not contradicted by previous news
5927 <!-- PAGE BREAK 120 -->
5928 Thousands of workers constantly reedited the past, meaning there was
5929 no way ever to know whether the story you were reading today was the
5930 story that was printed on the date published on the paper.
5933 It's the same with the Internet. If you go to a Web page today,
5934 there's no way for you to know whether the content you are reading is
5935 the same as the content you read before. The page may seem the same,
5936 but the content could easily be different. The Internet is Orwell's
5937 library
—constantly updated, without any reliable memory.
5939 <indexterm startref='idxorwellgeorge' class='endofrange'
/>
5940 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
5942 Until the Way Back Machine, at least. With the Way Back Machine, and
5943 the Internet Archive underlying it, you can see what the Internet
5944 was. You have the power to see what you remember. More importantly,
5945 perhaps, you also have the power to find what you don't remember and
5946 what others might prefer you forget.
<footnote><para>
5948 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
5949 <indexterm><primary>White House press releases
</primary></indexterm>
5950 The temptations remain, however. Brewster Kahle reports that the White
5951 House changes its own press releases without notice. A May
13,
2003,
5952 press release stated,
<quote>Combat Operations in Iraq Have Ended.
</quote> That was
5953 later changed, without notice, to
<quote>Major Combat Operations in Iraq
5954 Have Ended.
</quote> E-mail from Brewster Kahle,
1 December
2003.
5957 <indexterm><primary>history, records of
</primary></indexterm>
5959 <emphasis role='strong'
>We take it
</emphasis> for granted that we can
5960 go back to see what we remember reading. Think about newspapers. If
5961 you wanted to study the reaction of your hometown newspaper to the
5962 race riots in Watts in
1965, or to Bull Connor's water cannon in
1963,
5963 you could go to your public library and look at the newspapers. Those
5964 papers probably exist on microfiche. If you're lucky, they exist in
5965 paper, too. Either way, you are free, using a library, to go back and
5966 remember
—not just what it is convenient to remember, but
5967 remember something close to the truth.
5970 It is said that those who fail to remember history are doomed to
5971 repeat it. That's not quite correct. We
<emphasis>all
</emphasis>
5972 forget history. The key is whether we have a way to go back to
5973 rediscover what we forget. More directly, the key is whether an
5974 objective past can keep us honest. Libraries help do that, by
5975 collecting content and keeping it, for schoolchildren, for
5976 researchers, for grandma. A free society presumes this knowedge.
5979 The Internet was an exception to this presumption. Until the Internet
5980 Archive, there was no way to go back. The Internet was the
5981 quintessentially transitory medium. And yet, as it becomes more
5982 important in forming and reforming society, it becomes more and more
5983 <!-- PAGE BREAK 121 -->
5984 important to maintain in some historical form. It's just bizarre to
5985 think that we have scads of archives of newspapers from tiny towns
5986 around the world, yet there is but one copy of the Internet
—the
5987 one kept by the Internet Archive.
5990 Brewster Kahle is the founder of the Internet Archive. He was a very
5991 successful Internet entrepreneur after he was a successful computer
5992 researcher. In the
1990s, Kahle decided he had had enough business
5993 success. It was time to become a different kind of success. So he
5994 launched a series of projects designed to archive human knowledge. The
5995 Internet Archive was just the first of the projects of this Andrew
5996 Carnegie of the Internet. By December of
2002, the archive had over
10
5997 billion pages, and it was growing at about a billion pages a month.
5999 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
6000 <indexterm><primary>Television Archive
</primary></indexterm>
6001 <indexterm><primary>Vanderbilt University
</primary></indexterm>
6002 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
6003 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>archival function of
</secondary></indexterm>
6004 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage2' class='startofrange'
><primary>news coverage
</primary></indexterm>
6006 The Way Back Machine is the largest archive of human knowledge in
6007 human history. At the end of
2002, it held
<quote>two hundred and thirty
6008 terabytes of material
</quote>—and was
<quote>ten times larger than the
6009 Library of Congress.
</quote> And this was just the first of the archives that
6010 Kahle set out to build. In addition to the Internet Archive, Kahle has
6011 been constructing the Television Archive. Television, it turns out, is
6012 even more ephemeral than the Internet. While much of twentieth-century
6013 culture was constructed through television, only a tiny proportion of
6014 that culture is available for anyone to see today. Three hours of news
6015 are recorded each evening by Vanderbilt University
—thanks to a
6016 specific exemption in the copyright law. That content is indexed, and
6017 is available to scholars for a very low fee.
<quote>But other than that,
6018 [television] is almost unavailable,
</quote> Kahle told me.
<quote>If you were
6019 Barbara Walters you could get access to [the archives], but if you are
6020 just a graduate student?
</quote> As Kahle put it,
6023 <indexterm><primary>Quayle, Dan
</primary></indexterm>
6024 <indexterm><primary>60 Minutes
</primary></indexterm>
6026 Do you remember when Dan Quayle was interacting with Murphy Brown?
6027 Remember that back and forth surreal experience of a politician
6028 interacting with a fictional television character? If you were a
6029 graduate student wanting to study that, and you wanted to get those
6030 original back and forth exchanges between the two, the
6032 <!-- PAGE BREAK 122 -->
6033 <citetitle>60 Minutes
</citetitle> episode that came out after it
… it would be almost
6034 impossible.
… Those materials are almost unfindable.
…
6037 <indexterm><primary>newspapers
</primary><secondary>archives of
</secondary></indexterm>
6039 Why is that? Why is it that the part of our culture that is recorded
6040 in newspapers remains perpetually accessible, while the part that is
6041 recorded on videotape is not? How is it that we've created a world
6042 where researchers trying to understand the effect of media on
6043 nineteenthcentury America will have an easier time than researchers
6044 trying to understand the effect of media on twentieth-century America?
6047 In part, this is because of the law. Early in American copyright law,
6048 copyright owners were required to deposit copies of their work in
6049 libraries. These copies were intended both to facilitate the spread
6050 of knowledge and to assure that a copy of the work would be around
6051 once the copyright expired, so that others might access and copy the
6054 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
6055 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>archive of
</secondary></indexterm>
6057 These rules applied to film as well. But in
1915, the Library
6058 of Congress made an exception for film. Film could be copyrighted so
6059 long as such deposits were made. But the filmmaker was then allowed to
6060 borrow back the deposits
—for an unlimited time at no cost. In
6061 1915 alone, there were more than
5,
475 films deposited and
<quote>borrowed
6062 back.
</quote> Thus, when the copyrights to films expire, there is no copy
6063 held by any library. The copy exists
—if it exists at
6064 all
—in the library archive of the film company.
<footnote><para>
6066 Doug Herrick,
<quote>Toward a National Film Collection: Motion Pictures at
6067 the Library of Congress,
</quote> <citetitle>Film Library Quarterly
</citetitle> 13 nos.
2–3
6068 (
1980):
5; Anthony Slide,
<citetitle>Nitrate Won't Wait: A History of Film
6069 Preservation in the United States
</citetitle> (Jefferson, N.C.: McFarland
&
6074 The same is generally true about television. Television broadcasts
6075 were originally not copyrighted
—there was no way to capture the
6076 broadcasts, so there was no fear of
<quote>theft.
</quote> But as technology enabled
6077 capturing, broadcasters relied increasingly upon the law. The law
6078 required they make a copy of each broadcast for the work to be
6079 <quote>copyrighted.
</quote> But those copies were simply kept by the
6080 broadcasters. No library had any right to them; the government didn't
6081 demand them. The content of this part of American culture is
6082 practically invisible to anyone who would look.
6084 <indexterm><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
6086 Kahle was eager to correct this. Before September
11,
2001, he and
6087 <!-- PAGE BREAK 123 -->
6088 his allies had started capturing television. They selected twenty
6089 stations from around the world and hit the Record button. After
6090 September
11, Kahle, working with dozens of others, selected twenty
6091 stations from around the world and, beginning October
11,
2001, made
6092 their coverage during the week of September
11 available free on-line.
6093 Anyone could see how news reports from around the world covered the
6096 <indexterm><primary>Movie Archive
</primary></indexterm>
6097 <indexterm><primary>archive.org
</primary><seealso>Internet Archive
</seealso></indexterm>
6098 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage2' class='endofrange'
/>
6099 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>archive of
</secondary></indexterm>
6100 <indexterm><primary>Internet Archive
</primary></indexterm>
6101 <indexterm><primary>Duck and Cover film
</primary></indexterm>
6102 <indexterm><primary>ephemeral films
</primary></indexterm>
6103 <indexterm><primary>Prelinger, Rick
</primary></indexterm>
6105 Kahle had the same idea with film. Working with Rick Prelinger, whose
6106 archive of film includes close to
45,
000 <quote>ephemeral films
</quote> (meaning
6107 films other than Hollywood movies, films that were never copyrighted),
6108 Kahle established the Movie Archive. Prelinger let Kahle digitize
6109 1,
300 films in this archive and post those films on the Internet to be
6110 downloaded for free. Prelinger's is a for-profit company. It sells
6111 copies of these films as stock footage. What he has discovered is that
6112 after he made a significant chunk available for free, his stock
6113 footage sales went up dramatically. People could easily find the
6114 material they wanted to use. Some downloaded that material and made
6115 films on their own. Others purchased copies to enable other films to
6116 be made. Either way, the archive enabled access to this important
6117 part of our culture. Want to see a copy of the
<quote>Duck and Cover
</quote> film
6118 that instructed children how to save themselves in the middle of
6119 nuclear attack? Go to archive.org, and you can download the film in a
6120 few minutes
—for free.
6123 Here again, Kahle is providing access to a part of our culture that we
6124 otherwise could not get easily, if at all. It is yet another part of
6125 what defines the twentieth century that we have lost to history. The
6126 law doesn't require these copies to be kept by anyone, or to be
6127 deposited in an archive by anyone. Therefore, there is no simple way
6131 The key here is access, not price. Kahle wants to enable free access
6132 to this content, but he also wants to enable others to sell access to
6133 it. His aim is to ensure competition in access to this important part
6134 of our culture. Not during the commercial life of a bit of creative
6135 property, but during a second life that all creative property
6136 has
—a noncommercial life.
6139 For here is an idea that we should more clearly recognize. Every bit
6140 of creative property goes through different
<quote>lives.
</quote> In its first
6143 <!-- PAGE BREAK 124 -->
6144 creator is lucky, the content is sold. In such cases the commercial
6145 market is successful for the creator. The vast majority of creative
6146 property doesn't enjoy such success, but some clearly does. For that
6147 content, commercial life is extremely important. Without this
6148 commercial market, there would be, many argue, much less creativity.
6151 After the commercial life of creative property has ended, our
6152 tradition has always supported a second life as well. A newspaper
6153 delivers the news every day to the doorsteps of America. The very next
6154 day, it is used to wrap fish or to fill boxes with fragile gifts or to
6155 build an archive of knowledge about our history. In this second life,
6156 the content can continue to inform even if that information is no
6159 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
6161 The same has always been true about books. A book goes out of print
6162 very quickly (the average today is after about a year
<footnote><para>
6164 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
6165 Dave Barns,
<quote>Fledgling Career in Antique Books: Woodstock Landlord,
6166 Bar Owner Starts a New Chapter by Adopting Business,
</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
6167 5 September
1997, at Metro Lake
1L. Of books published between
1927
6168 and
1946, only
2.2 percent were in print in
2002. R. Anthony Reese,
6169 <quote>The First Sale Doctrine in the Era of Digital Networks,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston
6170 College Law Review
</citetitle> 44 (
2003):
593 n.
51.
6171 </para></footnote>). After
6172 it is out of print, it can be sold in used book stores without the
6173 copyright owner getting anything and stored in libraries, where many
6174 get to read the book, also for free. Used book stores and libraries
6175 are thus the second life of a book. That second life is extremely
6176 important to the spread and stability of culture.
6179 Yet increasingly, any assumption about a stable second life for
6180 creative property does not hold true with the most important
6181 components of popular culture in the twentieth and twenty-first
6182 centuries. For these
—television, movies, music, radio, the
6183 Internet
—there is no guarantee of a second life. For these sorts
6184 of culture, it is as if we've replaced libraries with Barnes
&
6185 Noble superstores. With this culture, what's accessible is nothing but
6186 what a certain limited market demands. Beyond that, culture
6190 <emphasis role='strong'
>For most of
</emphasis> the twentieth century,
6191 it was economics that made this so. It would have been insanely
6192 expensive to collect and make accessible all television and film and
6193 music: The cost of analog copies is extraordinarily high. So even
6194 though the law in principle would have restricted the ability of a
6195 Brewster Kahle to copy culture generally, the
6196 <!-- PAGE BREAK 125 -->
6197 real restriction was economics. The market made it impossibly
6198 difficult to do anything about this ephemeral culture; the law had
6199 little practical effect.
6202 Perhaps the single most important feature of the digital revolution is
6203 that for the first time since the Library of Alexandria, it is
6204 feasible to imagine constructing archives that hold all culture
6205 produced or distributed publicly. Technology makes it possible to
6206 imagine an archive of all books published, and increasingly makes it
6207 possible to imagine an archive of all moving images and sound.
6210 The scale of this potential archive is something we've never imagined
6211 before. The Brewster Kahles of our history have dreamed about it; but
6212 we are for the first time at a point where that dream is possible. As
6216 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>total number of
</secondary></indexterm>
6218 It looks like there's about two to three million recordings of music.
6219 Ever. There are about a hundred thousand theatrical releases of
6220 movies,
… and about one to two million movies [distributed] during
6221 the twentieth century. There are about twenty-six million different
6222 titles of books. All of these would fit on computers that would fit in
6223 this room and be able to be afforded by a small company. So we're at
6224 a turning point in our history. Universal access is the goal. And the
6225 opportunity of leading a different life, based on this, is
6226 … thrilling. It could be one of the things humankind would be most
6227 proud of. Up there with the Library of Alexandria, putting a man on
6228 the moon, and the invention of the printing press.
6231 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
6233 Kahle is not the only librarian. The Internet Archive is not the only
6234 archive. But Kahle and the Internet Archive suggest what the future of
6235 libraries or archives could be.
<emphasis>When
</emphasis> the
6236 commercial life of creative property ends, I don't know. But it
6237 does. And whenever it does, Kahle and his archive hint at a world
6238 where this knowledge, and culture, remains perpetually available. Some
6239 will draw upon it to understand it;
6240 <!-- PAGE BREAK 126 -->
6241 some to criticize it. Some will use it, as Walt Disney did, to
6242 re-create the past for the future. These technologies promise
6243 something that had become unimaginable for much of our past
—a
6244 future
<emphasis>for
</emphasis> our past. The technology of digital
6245 arts could make the dream of the Library of Alexandria real again.
6248 Technologists have thus removed the economic costs of building such an
6249 archive. But lawyers' costs remain. For as much as we might like to
6250 call these
<quote>archives,
</quote> as warm as the idea of a
<quote>library
</quote> might seem,
6251 the
<quote>content
</quote> that is collected in these digital spaces is also
6252 someone's
<quote>property.
</quote> And the law of property restricts the freedoms
6253 that Kahle and others would exercise.
6255 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital1' class='endofrange'
/>
6256 <!-- PAGE BREAK 127 -->
6258 <chapter label=
"10" id=
"property-i">
6259 <title>Chapter Ten:
<quote>Property
</quote></title>
6260 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Lyndon
</primary></indexterm>
6261 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.
</primary></indexterm>
6263 <emphasis role='strong'
>Jack Valenti
</emphasis> has been the president
6264 of the Motion Picture Association of America since
1966. He first came
6265 to Washington, D.C., with Lyndon Johnson's
6266 administration
—literally. The famous picture of Johnson's
6267 swearing-in on Air Force One after the assassination of President
6268 Kennedy has Valenti in the background. In his almost forty years of
6269 running the MPAA, Valenti has established himself as perhaps the most
6270 prominent and effective lobbyist in Washington.
6272 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
6273 <indexterm><primary>Sony Pictures Entertainment
</primary></indexterm>
6274 <indexterm><primary>MGM
</primary></indexterm>
6275 <indexterm><primary>Paramount Pictures
</primary></indexterm>
6276 <indexterm><primary>Twentieth Century Fox
</primary></indexterm>
6277 <indexterm><primary>Universal Pictures
</primary></indexterm>
6278 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
6280 The MPAA is the American branch of the international Motion Picture
6281 Association. It was formed in
1922 as a trade association whose goal
6282 was to defend American movies against increasing domestic criticism.
6283 The organization now represents not only filmmakers but producers and
6284 distributors of entertainment for television, video, and cable. Its
6285 board is made up of the chairmen and presidents of the seven major
6286 producers and distributors of motion picture and television programs
6287 in the United States: Walt Disney, Sony Pictures Entertainment, MGM,
6288 Paramount Pictures, Twentieth Century Fox, Universal Studios, and
6292 <!-- PAGE BREAK 128 -->
6293 Valenti is only the third president of the MPAA. No president before
6294 him has had as much influence over that organization, or over
6295 Washington. As a Texan, Valenti has mastered the single most important
6296 political skill of a Southerner
—the ability to appear simple and
6297 slow while hiding a lightning-fast intellect. To this day, Valenti
6298 plays the simple, humble man. But this Harvard MBA, and author of four
6299 books, who finished high school at the age of fifteen and flew more
6300 than fifty combat missions in World War II, is no Mr. Smith. When
6301 Valenti went to Washington, he mastered the city in a quintessentially
6305 In defending artistic liberty and the freedom of speech that our
6306 culture depends upon, the MPAA has done important good. In crafting
6307 the MPAA rating system, it has probably avoided a great deal of
6308 speech-regulating harm. But there is an aspect to the organization's
6309 mission that is both the most radical and the most important. This is
6310 the organization's effort, epitomized in Valenti's every act, to
6311 redefine the meaning of
<quote>creative property.
</quote>
6314 In
1982, Valenti's testimony to Congress captured the strategy
6319 No matter the lengthy arguments made, no matter the charges and the
6320 counter-charges, no matter the tumult and the shouting, reasonable men
6321 and women will keep returning to the fundamental issue, the central
6322 theme which animates this entire debate:
<emphasis>Creative property
6323 owners must be accorded the same rights and protection resident in all
6324 other property owners in the nation
</emphasis>. That is the issue.
6325 That is the question. And that is the rostrum on which this entire
6326 hearing and the debates to follow must rest.
<footnote><para>
6328 Home Recording of Copyrighted Works: Hearings on H.R.
4783, H.R.
6329 4794, H.R.
4808, H.R.
5250, H.R.
5488, and H.R.
5705 Before the
6330 Subcommittee on Courts, Civil Liberties, and the Administration of
6331 Justice of the Committee on the Judiciary of the House of
6332 Representatives,
97th Cong.,
2nd sess. (
1982):
65 (testimony of Jack
6338 The strategy of this rhetoric, like the strategy of most of Valenti's
6339 rhetoric, is brilliant and simple and brilliant because simple. The
6340 <quote>central theme
</quote> to which
<quote>reasonable men and women
</quote> will return is
6342 <!-- PAGE BREAK 129 -->
6343 <quote>Creative property owners must be accorded the same rights and
6344 protections resident in all other property owners in the nation.
</quote>
6345 There are no second-class citizens, Valenti might have
6346 continued. There should be no second-class property owners.
6349 This claim has an obvious and powerful intuitive pull. It is stated
6350 with such clarity as to make the idea as obvious as the notion that we
6351 use elections to pick presidents. But in fact, there is no more
6352 extreme a claim made by
<emphasis>anyone
</emphasis> who is serious in
6353 this debate than this claim of Valenti's. Jack Valenti, however sweet
6354 and however brilliant, is perhaps the nation's foremost extremist when
6355 it comes to the nature and scope of
<quote>creative property.
</quote> His views
6356 have
<emphasis>no
</emphasis> reasonable connection to our actual legal
6357 tradition, even if the subtle pull of his Texan charm has slowly
6358 redefined that tradition, at least in Washington.
6361 While
<quote>creative property
</quote> is certainly
<quote>property
</quote> in a nerdy and
6362 precise sense that lawyers are trained to understand,
<footnote><para>
6364 Lawyers speak of
<quote>property
</quote> not as an absolute thing, but as a bundle
6365 of rights that are sometimes associated with a particular
6366 object. Thus, my
<quote>property right
</quote> to my car gives me the right to
6367 exclusive use, but not the right to drive at
150 miles an hour. For
6368 the best effort to connect the ordinary meaning of
<quote>property
</quote> to
6369 <quote>lawyer talk,
</quote> see Bruce Ackerman,
<citetitle>Private Property and the
6370 Constitution
</citetitle> (New Haven: Yale University Press,
1977),
26–27.
6371 </para></footnote> it has never been the case, nor should it be, that
6372 <quote>creative property owners
</quote> have been
<quote>accorded the same rights and
6373 protection resident in all other property owners.
</quote> Indeed, if creative
6374 property owners were given the same rights as all other property
6375 owners, that would effect a radical, and radically undesirable, change
6379 Valenti knows this. But he speaks for an industry that cares squat for
6380 our tradition and the values it represents. He speaks for an industry
6381 that is instead fighting to restore the tradition that the British
6382 overturned in
1710. In the world that Valenti's changes would create,
6383 a powerful few would exercise powerful control over how our creative
6384 culture would develop.
6387 I have two purposes in this chapter. The first is to convince you
6388 that, historically, Valenti's claim is absolutely wrong. The second is
6389 to convince you that it would be terribly wrong for us to reject our
6390 history. We have always treated rights in creative property
6391 differently from the rights resident in all other property
6392 owners. They have never been the same. And they should never be the
6393 same, because, however counterintuitive this may seem, to make them
6394 the same would be to
6396 <!-- PAGE BREAK 130 -->
6397 fundamentally weaken the opportunity for new creators to create.
6398 Creativity depends upon the owners of creativity having less than
6402 Organizations such as the MPAA, whose board includes the most powerful
6403 of the old guard, have little interest, their rhetoric
6404 notwithstanding, in assuring that the new can displace them. No
6405 organization does. No person does. (Ask me about tenure, for example.)
6406 But what's good for the MPAA is not necessarily good for America. A
6407 society that defends the ideals of free culture must preserve
6408 precisely the opportunity for new creativity to threaten the old.
6411 <emphasis role='strong'
>To get
</emphasis> just a hint that there is
6412 something fundamentally wrong in Valenti's argument, we need look no
6413 further than the United States Constitution itself.
6416 The framers of our Constitution loved
<quote>property.
</quote> Indeed, so strongly
6417 did they love property that they built into the Constitution an
6418 important requirement. If the government takes your property
—if
6419 it condemns your house, or acquires a slice of land from your
6420 farm
—it is required, under the Fifth Amendment's
<quote>Takings
6421 Clause,
</quote> to pay you
<quote>just compensation
</quote> for that taking. The
6422 Constitution thus guarantees that property is, in a certain sense,
6423 sacred. It cannot
<emphasis>ever
</emphasis> be taken from the property
6424 owner unless the government pays for the privilege.
6427 Yet the very same Constitution speaks very differently about what
6428 Valenti calls
<quote>creative property.
</quote> In the clause granting Congress the
6429 power to create
<quote>creative property,
</quote> the Constitution
6430 <emphasis>requires
</emphasis> that after a
<quote>limited time,
</quote> Congress
6431 take back the rights that it has granted and set the
<quote>creative
6432 property
</quote> free to the public domain. Yet when Congress does this, when
6433 the expiration of a copyright term
<quote>takes
</quote> your copyright and turns it
6434 over to the public domain, Congress does not have any obligation to
6435 pay
<quote>just compensation
</quote> for this
<quote>taking.
</quote> Instead, the same
6436 Constitution that requires compensation for your land
6437 <!-- PAGE BREAK 131 -->
6438 requires that you lose your
<quote>creative property
</quote> right without any
6439 compensation at all.
6442 The Constitution thus on its face states that these two forms of
6443 property are not to be accorded the same rights. They are plainly to
6444 be treated differently. Valenti is therefore not just asking for a
6445 change in our tradition when he argues that creative-property owners
6446 should be accorded the same rights as every other property-right
6447 owner. He is effectively arguing for a change in our Constitution
6450 <indexterm id='idxjeffersonthomas' class='startofrange'
><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
6452 Arguing for a change in our Constitution is not necessarily wrong.
6453 There was much in our original Constitution that was plainly wrong.
6454 The Constitution of
1789 entrenched slavery; it left senators to be
6455 appointed rather than elected; it made it possible for the electoral
6456 college to produce a tie between the president and his own vice
6457 president (as it did in
1800). The framers were no doubt
6458 extraordinary, but I would be the first to admit that they made big
6459 mistakes. We have since rejected some of those mistakes; no doubt
6460 there could be others that we should reject as well. So my argument is
6461 not simply that because Jefferson did it, we should, too.
6464 Instead, my argument is that because Jefferson did it, we should at
6465 least try to understand
<emphasis>why
</emphasis>. Why did the framers,
6466 fanatical property types that they were, reject the claim that
6467 creative property be given the same rights as all other property? Why
6468 did they require that for creative property there must be a public
6471 <indexterm startref='idxjeffersonthomas' class='endofrange'
/>
6474 To answer this question, we need to get some perspective on the
6475 history of these
<quote>creative property
</quote> rights, and the control that they
6476 enabled. Once we see clearly how differently these rights have been
6477 defined, we will be in a better position to ask the question that
6478 should be at the core of this war: Not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis>
6479 creative property should be protected, but how. Not
6480 <emphasis>whether
</emphasis> we will enforce the rights the law gives
6481 to creative-property owners, but what the particular mix of rights
6482 ought to be. Not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis> artists should be paid,
6483 but whether institutions designed to assure that artists get paid need
6484 also control how culture develops.
6486 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturefourmodalitiesofconstrainton' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>four modalities of constraint on
</secondary></indexterm>
6487 <indexterm id='idxregulationfourmodalitiesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>four modalities of
</secondary></indexterm>
6488 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawasexpostregulationmodality' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as ex post regulation modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6489 <indexterm id='idxlawasconstraintmodality' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6492 <!-- PAGE BREAK 132 -->
6493 To answer these questions, we need a more general way to talk about
6494 how property is protected. More precisely, we need a more general way
6495 than the narrow language of the law allows. In
<citetitle>Code and Other Laws of
6496 Cyberspace
</citetitle>, I used a simple model to capture this more general
6497 perspective. For any particular right or regulation, this model asks
6498 how four different modalities of regulation interact to support or
6499 weaken the right or regulation. I represented it with this diagram:
6501 <figure id=
"fig-1331">
6503 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6505 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
6507 At the center of this picture is a regulated dot: the individual or
6508 group that is the target of regulation, or the holder of a right. (In
6509 each case throughout, we can describe this either as regulation or as
6510 a right. For simplicity's sake, I will speak only of regulations.)
6511 The ovals represent four ways in which the individual or group might
6512 be regulated
— either constrained or, alternatively, enabled. Law
6513 is the most obvious constraint (to lawyers, at least). It constrains
6514 by threatening punishments after the fact if the rules set in advance
6515 are violated. So if, for example, you willfully infringe Madonna's
6516 copyright by copying a song from her latest CD and posting it on the
6517 Web, you can be punished
6518 <!-- PAGE BREAK 133 -->
6519 with a $
150,
000 fine. The fine is an ex post punishment for violating
6520 an ex ante rule. It is imposed by the state.
6521 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
6523 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6525 Norms are a different kind of constraint. They, too, punish an
6526 individual for violating a rule. But the punishment of a norm is
6527 imposed by a community, not (or not only) by the state. There may be
6528 no law against spitting, but that doesn't mean you won't be punished
6529 if you spit on the ground while standing in line at a movie. The
6530 punishment might not be harsh, though depending upon the community, it
6531 could easily be more harsh than many of the punishments imposed by the
6532 state. The mark of the difference is not the severity of the rule, but
6533 the source of the enforcement.
6535 <indexterm id='idxmarketconstraints' class='startofrange'
><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6537 The market is a third type of constraint. Its constraint is effected
6538 through conditions: You can do X if you pay Y; you'll be paid M if you
6539 do N. These constraints are obviously not independent of law or
6540 norms
—it is property law that defines what must be bought if it
6541 is to be taken legally; it is norms that say what is appropriately
6542 sold. But given a set of norms, and a background of property and
6543 contract law, the market imposes a simultaneous constraint upon how an
6544 individual or group might behave.
6546 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6548 Finally, and for the moment, perhaps, most mysteriously,
6549 <quote>architecture
</quote>—the physical world as one finds it
—is a
6550 constraint on behavior. A fallen bridge might constrain your ability
6551 to get across a river. Railroad tracks might constrain the ability of
6552 a community to integrate its social life. As with the market,
6553 architecture does not effect its constraint through ex post
6554 punishments. Instead, also as with the market, architecture effects
6555 its constraint through simultaneous conditions. These conditions are
6556 imposed not by courts enforcing contracts, or by police punishing
6557 theft, but by nature, by
<quote>architecture.
</quote> If a
500-pound boulder
6558 blocks your way, it is the law of gravity that enforces this
6559 constraint. If a $
500 airplane ticket stands between you and a flight
6560 to New York, it is the market that enforces this constraint.
6562 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawasexpostregulationmodality' class='endofrange'
/>
6563 <indexterm startref='idxlawasconstraintmodality' class='endofrange'
/>
6564 <indexterm startref='idxmarketconstraints' class='endofrange'
/>
6565 <indexterm id='idxlawasconstraintmodality2' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6568 <!-- PAGE BREAK 134 -->
6569 So the first point about these four modalities of regulation is
6570 obvious: They interact. Restrictions imposed by one might be
6571 reinforced by another. Or restrictions imposed by one might be
6572 undermined by another.
6575 The second point follows directly: If we want to understand the
6576 effective freedom that anyone has at a given moment to do any
6577 particular thing, we have to consider how these four modalities
6578 interact. Whether or not there are other constraints (there may well
6579 be; my claim is not about comprehensiveness), these four are among the
6580 most significant, and any regulator (whether controlling or freeing)
6581 must consider how these four in particular interact.
6583 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6584 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6585 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6586 <indexterm id='idxdrivingspeedconstraintson' class='startofrange'
><primary>driving speed, constraints on
</primary></indexterm>
6587 <indexterm id='idxspeedingconstraintson' class='startofrange'
><primary>speeding, constraints on
</primary></indexterm>
6589 So, for example, consider the
<quote>freedom
</quote> to drive a car at a high
6590 speed. That freedom is in part restricted by laws: speed limits that
6591 say how fast you can drive in particular places at particular
6592 times. It is in part restricted by architecture: speed bumps, for
6593 example, slow most rational drivers; governors in buses, as another
6594 example, set the maximum rate at which the driver can drive. The
6595 freedom is in part restricted by the market: Fuel efficiency drops as
6596 speed increases, thus the price of gasoline indirectly constrains
6597 speed. And finally, the norms of a community may or may not constrain
6598 the freedom to speed. Drive at
50 mph by a school in your own
6599 neighborhood and you're likely to be punished by the neighbors. The
6600 same norm wouldn't be as effective in a different town, or at night.
6603 The final point about this simple model should also be fairly clear:
6604 While these four modalities are analytically independent, law has a
6605 special role in affecting the three.
<footnote><para>
6607 By describing the way law affects the other three modalities, I don't
6608 mean to suggest that the other three don't affect law. Obviously, they
6609 do. Law's only distinction is that it alone speaks as if it has a
6610 right self-consciously to change the other three. The right of the
6611 other three is more timidly expressed. See Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>Code: And
6612 Other Laws of Cyberspace
</citetitle> (New York: Basic Books,
1999):
90–95;
6613 Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>The New Chicago School,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Legal Studies
</citetitle>,
6616 The law, in other words, sometimes operates to increase or decrease
6617 the constraint of a particular modality. Thus, the law might be used
6618 to increase taxes on gasoline, so as to increase the incentives to
6619 drive more slowly. The law might be used to mandate more speed bumps,
6620 so as to increase the difficulty of driving rapidly. The law might be
6621 used to fund ads that stigmatize reckless driving. Or the law might be
6622 used to require that other laws be more
6623 <!-- PAGE BREAK 135 -->
6624 strict
—a federal requirement that states decrease the speed
6625 limit, for example
—so as to decrease the attractiveness of fast
6628 <indexterm startref='idxdrivingspeedconstraintson' class='endofrange'
/>
6629 <indexterm startref='idxspeedingconstraintson' class='endofrange'
/>
6630 <figure id=
"fig-1361">
6632 <graphic fileref=
"images/1361.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6635 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6637 These constraints can thus change, and they can be changed. To
6638 understand the effective protection of liberty or protection of
6639 property at any particular moment, we must track these changes over
6640 time. A restriction imposed by one modality might be erased by
6641 another. A freedom enabled by one modality might be displaced by
6645 Some people object to this way of talking about
<quote>liberty.
</quote> They object
6646 because their focus when considering the constraints that exist at any
6647 particular moment are constraints imposed exclusively by the
6648 government. For instance, if a storm destroys a bridge, these people
6649 think it is meaningless to say that one's liberty has been
6650 restrained. A bridge has washed out, and it's harder to get from one
6651 place to another. To talk about this as a loss of freedom, they say,
6652 is to confuse the stuff of politics with the vagaries of ordinary
6653 life. I don't mean to deny the value in this narrower view, which
6654 depends upon the context of the inquiry. I do, however, mean to argue
6655 against any insistence that this narrower view is the only proper view
6656 of liberty. As I argued in
<citetitle>Code
</citetitle>, we come from a
6657 long tradition of political thought with a broader focus than the
6658 narrow question of what the government did when. John Stuart Mill
6659 defended freedom of speech, for example, from the tyranny of narrow
6660 minds, not from the fear of government prosecution; John Stuart Mill,
6661 <citetitle>On Liberty
</citetitle> (Indiana: Hackett Publishing Co.,
6662 1978),
19. John R. Commons famously defended the economic freedom of
6663 labor from constraints imposed by the market; John R. Commons,
<quote>The
6664 Right to Work,
</quote> in Malcom Rutherford and Warren J. Samuels, eds.,
6665 <citetitle>John R. Commons: Selected Essays
</citetitle> (London:
6666 Routledge:
1997),
62. The Americans with Disabilities Act increases
6667 the liberty of people with physical disabilities by changing the
6668 architecture of certain public places, thereby making access to those
6669 places easier;
42 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
6670 12101 (
2000). Each of these interventions to change existing
6671 conditions changes the liberty of a particular group. The effect of
6672 those interventions should be accounted for in order to understand the
6673 effective liberty that each of these groups might face.
6674 <indexterm><primary>Americans with Disabilities Act (
1990)
</primary></indexterm>
6675 <indexterm><primary>Commons, John R.
</primary></indexterm>
6676 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6677 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6680 <indexterm startref='idxlawasconstraintmodality2' class='endofrange'
/>
6681 <section id=
"hollywood">
6682 <title>Why Hollywood Is Right
</title>
6683 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightfourregulatorymodalitieson' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>four regulatory modalities on
</secondary></indexterm>
6685 The most obvious point that this model reveals is just why, or just
6686 how, Hollywood is right. The copyright warriors have rallied Congress
6687 and the courts to defend copyright. This model helps us see why that
6688 rallying makes sense.
6691 Let's say this is the picture of copyright's regulation before the
6694 <figure id=
"fig-1371">
6696 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6699 <indexterm id='idxarchitectureconstrainteffectedthrough' class='startofrange'
><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6700 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6701 <indexterm id='idxnormsregulatoryinfluenceof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6703 <!-- PAGE BREAK 136 -->
6704 There is balance between law, norms, market, and architecture. The law
6705 limits the ability to copy and share content, by imposing penalties on
6706 those who copy and share content. Those penalties are reinforced by
6707 technologies that make it hard to copy and share content
6708 (architecture) and expensive to copy and share content
6709 (market). Finally, those penalties are mitigated by norms we all
6710 recognize
—kids, for example, taping other kids' records. These
6711 uses of copyrighted material may well be infringement, but the norms
6712 of our society (before the Internet, at least) had no problem with
6713 this form of infringement.
6715 <indexterm id='idxinternetcopyrightregulatorybalancelostwith' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>copyright regulatory balance lost with
</secondary></indexterm>
6716 <indexterm><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>regulatory balance lost in
</secondary></indexterm>
6717 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6718 <indexterm><primary>MP3s
</primary></indexterm>
6720 Enter the Internet, or, more precisely, technologies such as MP3s and
6721 p2p sharing. Now the constraint of architecture changes dramatically,
6722 as does the constraint of the market. And as both the market and
6723 architecture relax the regulation of copyright, norms pile on. The
6724 happy balance (for the warriors, at least) of life before the Internet
6725 becomes an effective state of anarchy after the Internet.
6727 <indexterm startref='idxarchitectureconstrainteffectedthrough' class='endofrange'
/>
6728 <indexterm startref='idxnormsregulatoryinfluenceof2' class='endofrange'
/>
6729 <indexterm><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>established industries threatened by changes in
</secondary></indexterm>
6731 Thus the sense of, and justification for, the warriors' response.
6732 Technology has changed, the warriors say, and the effect of this
6733 change, when ramified through the market and norms, is that a balance
6734 of protection for the copyright owners' rights has been lost. This is
6736 <!-- PAGE BREAK 137 -->
6737 after the fall of Saddam, but this time no government is justifying the
6738 looting that results.
6740 <figure id=
"fig-1381">
6742 <graphic fileref=
"images/1381.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6745 <indexterm><primary>Commerce, U.S. Department of
</primary></indexterm>
6746 <indexterm id='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>as establishment protectionism
</secondary></indexterm>
6748 Neither this analysis nor the conclusions that follow are new to the
6749 warriors. Indeed, in a
<quote>White Paper
</quote> prepared by the Commerce
6750 Department (one heavily influenced by the copyright warriors) in
1995,
6751 this mix of regulatory modalities had already been identified and the
6752 strategy to respond already mapped. In response to the changes the
6753 Internet had effected, the White Paper argued (
1) Congress should
6754 strengthen intellectual property law, (
2) businesses should adopt
6755 innovative marketing techniques, (
3) technologists should push to
6756 develop code to protect copyrighted material, and (
4) educators should
6757 educate kids to better protect copyright.
6759 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturefourmodalitiesofconstrainton' class='endofrange'
/>
6760 <indexterm startref='idxregulationfourmodalitiesof' class='endofrange'
/>
6761 <indexterm><primary>farming
</primary></indexterm>
6762 <indexterm><primary>steel industry
</primary></indexterm>
6764 This mixed strategy is just what copyright needed
—if it was to
6765 preserve the particular balance that existed before the change induced
6766 by the Internet. And it's just what we should expect the content
6767 industry to push for. It is as American as apple pie to consider the
6768 happy life you have as an entitlement, and to look to the law to
6769 protect it if something comes along to change that happy
6770 life. Homeowners living in a
6772 <!-- PAGE BREAK 138 -->
6773 flood plain have no hesitation appealing to the government to rebuild
6774 (and rebuild again) when a flood (architecture) wipes away their
6775 property (law). Farmers have no hesitation appealing to the government
6776 to bail them out when a virus (architecture) devastates their
6777 crop. Unions have no hesitation appealing to the government to bail
6778 them out when imports (market) wipe out the U.S. steel industry.
6780 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightfourregulatorymodalitieson' class='endofrange'
/>
6781 <indexterm startref='idxinternetcopyrightregulatorybalancelostwith' class='endofrange'
/>
6782 <indexterm><primary>Brown, John Seely
</primary></indexterm>
6784 Thus, there's nothing wrong or surprising in the content industry's
6785 campaign to protect itself from the harmful consequences of a
6786 technological innovation. And I would be the last person to argue that
6787 the changing technology of the Internet has not had a profound effect
6788 on the content industry's way of doing business, or as John Seely
6789 Brown describes it, its
<quote>architecture of revenue.
</quote>
6791 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
6792 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
6793 <indexterm><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
6794 <indexterm><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
6795 <indexterm><primary>digital cameras
</primary></indexterm>
6796 <indexterm><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
6797 <indexterm><primary>railroad industry
</primary></indexterm>
6798 <indexterm><primary>remote channel changers
</primary></indexterm>
6800 But just because a particular interest asks for government support, it
6801 doesn't follow that support should be granted. And just because
6802 technology has weakened a particular way of doing business, it doesn't
6803 follow that the government should intervene to support that old way of
6804 doing business. Kodak, for example, has lost perhaps as much as
20
6805 percent of their traditional film market to the emerging technologies
6806 of digital cameras.
<footnote><para>
6808 See Geoffrey Smith,
<quote>Film vs. Digital: Can Kodak Build a Bridge?
</quote>
6809 BusinessWeek online,
2 August
1999, available at
6810 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
23</ulink>. For a more
6811 recent analysis of Kodak's place in the market, see Chana
6812 R. Schoenberger,
<quote>Can Kodak Make Up for Lost Moments?
</quote> Forbes.com,
6
6813 October
2003, available at
6814 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
24</ulink>.
6817 Does anyone believe the government should ban digital cameras just to
6818 support Kodak? Highways have weakened the freight business for
6819 railroads. Does anyone think we should ban trucks from roads
6820 <emphasis>for the purpose of
</emphasis> protecting the railroads?
6821 Closer to the subject of this book, remote channel changers have
6822 weakened the
<quote>stickiness
</quote> of television advertising (if a boring
6823 commercial comes on the TV, the remote makes it easy to surf), and it
6824 may well be that this change has weakened the television advertising
6825 market. But does anyone believe we should regulate remotes to
6826 reinforce commercial television? (Maybe by limiting them to function
6827 only once a second, or to switch to only ten channels within an hour?)
6829 <indexterm id='idxfreemarkettechnologicalchangesin' class='startofrange'
><primary>free market, technological changes in
</primary></indexterm>
6830 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid
</primary></indexterm>
6831 <indexterm><primary>FM radio
</primary></indexterm>
6832 <indexterm><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>FM spectrum of
</secondary></indexterm>
6833 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
6834 <indexterm><primary>market competition
</primary></indexterm>
6835 <indexterm><primary>RCA
</primary></indexterm>
6837 The obvious answer to these obviously rhetorical questions is no.
6838 In a free society, with a free market, supported by free enterprise and
6839 free trade, the government's role is not to support one way of doing
6840 <!-- PAGE BREAK 139 -->
6841 business against others. Its role is not to pick winners and protect
6842 them against loss. If the government did this generally, then we would
6843 never have any progress. As Microsoft chairman Bill Gates wrote in
6844 1991, in a memo criticizing software patents,
<quote>established companies
6845 have an interest in excluding future competitors.
</quote><footnote><para>
6847 Fred Warshofsky,
<citetitle>The Patent Wars
</citetitle> (New York: Wiley,
1994),
170–71.
6850 startup, established companies also have the means. (Think RCA and
6851 FM radio.) A world in which competitors with new ideas must fight
6852 not only the market but also the government is a world in which
6853 competitors with new ideas will not succeed. It is a world of stasis and
6854 increasingly concentrated stagnation. It is the Soviet Union under
6858 Thus, while it is understandable for industries threatened with new
6859 technologies that change the way they do business to look to the
6860 government for protection, it is the special duty of policy makers to
6861 guarantee that that protection not become a deterrent to progress. It
6862 is the duty of policy makers, in other words, to assure that the
6863 changes they create, in response to the request of those hurt by
6864 changing technology, are changes that preserve the incentives and
6865 opportunities for innovation and change.
6867 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
6868 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
6869 <indexterm><primary>speech, freedom of
</primary><secondary>constitutional guarantee of
</secondary></indexterm>
6871 In the context of laws regulating speech
—which include,
6872 obviously, copyright law
—that duty is even stronger. When the
6873 industry complaining about changing technologies is asking Congress to
6874 respond in a way that burdens speech and creativity, policy makers
6875 should be especially wary of the request. It is always a bad deal for
6876 the government to get into the business of regulating speech
6877 markets. The risks and dangers of that game are precisely why our
6878 framers created the First Amendment to our Constitution:
<quote>Congress
6879 shall make no law
… abridging the freedom of speech.
</quote> So when
6880 Congress is being asked to pass laws that would
<quote>abridge
</quote> the freedom
6881 of speech, it should ask
— carefully
—whether such
6882 regulation is justified.
6884 <indexterm startref='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism' class='endofrange'
/>
6885 <indexterm startref='idxfreemarkettechnologicalchangesin' class='endofrange'
/>
6887 My argument just now, however, has nothing to do with whether
6888 <!-- PAGE BREAK 140 -->
6889 the changes that are being pushed by the copyright warriors are
6890 <quote>justified.
</quote> My argument is about their effect. For before we get to
6891 the question of justification, a hard question that depends a great
6892 deal upon your values, we should first ask whether we understand the
6893 effect of the changes the content industry wants.
6896 Here's the metaphor that will capture the argument to follow.
6898 <indexterm id='idxmllerpaulhermann' class='startofrange'
><primary>Müller, Paul Hermann
</primary></indexterm>
6899 <indexterm id='idxddt' class='startofrange'
><primary>DDT
</primary></indexterm>
6900 <indexterm id='idxinsecticideenvironmentalconsequencesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>insecticide, environmental consequences of
</primary></indexterm>
6901 <indexterm id='idxfarming' class='startofrange'
><primary>farming
</primary></indexterm>
6903 In
1873, the chemical DDT was first synthesized. In
1948, Swiss
6904 chemist Paul Hermann Müller won the Nobel Prize for his work
6905 demonstrating the insecticidal properties of DDT. By the
1950s, the
6906 insecticide was widely used around the world to kill disease-carrying
6907 pests. It was also used to increase farm production.
6910 No one doubts that killing disease-carrying pests or increasing crop
6911 production is a good thing. No one doubts that the work of Müller was
6912 important and valuable and probably saved lives, possibly millions.
6914 <indexterm><primary>Carson, Rachel
</primary></indexterm>
6915 <indexterm><primary>Silent Spring (Carson)
</primary></indexterm>
6916 <indexterm id='idxenvironmentalism' class='startofrange'
><primary>environmentalism
</primary></indexterm>
6918 But in
1962, Rachel Carson published
<citetitle>Silent Spring
</citetitle>, which argued that
6919 DDT, whatever its primary benefits, was also having unintended
6920 environmental consequences. Birds were losing the ability to
6921 reproduce. Whole chains of the ecology were being destroyed.
6924 No one set out to destroy the environment. Paul Müller certainly did
6925 not aim to harm any birds. But the effort to solve one set of problems
6926 produced another set which, in the view of some, was far worse than
6927 the problems that were originally attacked. Or more accurately, the
6928 problems DDT caused were worse than the problems it solved, at least
6929 when considering the other, more environmentally friendly ways to
6930 solve the problems that DDT was meant to solve.
6932 <indexterm startref='idxmllerpaulhermann' class='endofrange'
/>
6933 <indexterm><primary>Boyle, James
</primary></indexterm>
6934 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawinnovativefreedombalancedwithfaircompensationin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>innovative freedom balanced with fair compensation in
</secondary></indexterm>
6936 It is to this image precisely that Duke University law professor James
6937 Boyle appeals when he argues that we need an
<quote>environmentalism
</quote> for
6938 culture.
<footnote><para>
6940 See, for example, James Boyle,
<quote>A Politics of Intellectual Property:
6941 Environmentalism for the Net?
</quote> <citetitle>Duke Law Journal
</citetitle> 47 (
1997):
87.
6943 His point, and the point I want to develop in the balance of this
6944 chapter, is not that the aims of copyright are flawed. Or that authors
6945 should not be paid for their work. Or that music should be given away
6946 <quote>for free.
</quote> The point is that some of the ways in which we might
6947 protect authors will have unintended consequences for the cultural
6948 environment, much like DDT had for the natural environment. And just
6949 <!-- PAGE BREAK 141 -->
6950 as criticism of DDT is not an endorsement of malaria or an attack on
6951 farmers, so, too, is criticism of one particular set of regulations
6952 protecting copyright not an endorsement of anarchy or an attack on
6953 authors. It is an environment of creativity that we seek, and we
6954 should be aware of our actions' effects on the environment.
6956 <indexterm startref='idxfarming' class='endofrange'
/>
6958 My argument, in the balance of this chapter, tries to map exactly
6959 this effect. No doubt the technology of the Internet has had a dramatic
6960 effect on the ability of copyright owners to protect their content. But
6961 there should also be little doubt that when you add together the
6962 changes in copyright law over time, plus the change in technology that
6963 the Internet is undergoing just now, the net effect of these changes will
6964 not be only that copyrighted work is effectively protected. Also, and
6965 generally missed, the net effect of this massive increase in protection
6966 will be devastating to the environment for creativity.
6968 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawinnovativefreedombalancedwithfaircompensationin2' class='endofrange'
/>
6970 In a line: To kill a gnat, we are spraying DDT with consequences
6971 for free culture that will be far more devastating than that this gnat will
6974 <indexterm startref='idxddt' class='endofrange'
/>
6975 <indexterm startref='idxinsecticideenvironmentalconsequencesof' class='endofrange'
/>
6976 <indexterm startref='idxenvironmentalism' class='endofrange'
/>
6978 <section id=
"beginnings">
6979 <title>Beginnings
</title>
6980 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on creative property
</secondary></indexterm>
6981 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionuscopyrightpurposeestablishedin' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright purpose established in
</secondary></indexterm>
6982 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Progress Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
6983 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>constitutional purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
6984 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
6985 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyconstitutionaltraditionon2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>constitutional tradition on
</secondary></indexterm>
6986 <indexterm id='idxprogressclause' class='startofrange'
><primary>Progress Clause
</primary></indexterm>
6987 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
6989 America copied English copyright law. Actually, we copied and improved
6990 English copyright law. Our Constitution makes the purpose of
<quote>creative
6991 property
</quote> rights clear; its express limitations reinforce the English
6992 aim to avoid overly powerful publishers.
6994 <indexterm id='idxcongressusinconstitutionalprogressclause' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>in constitutional Progress Clause
</secondary></indexterm>
6996 The power to establish
<quote>creative property
</quote> rights is granted to
6997 Congress in a way that, for our Constitution, at least, is very
6998 odd. Article I, section
8, clause
8 of our Constitution states that:
7001 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science and
7002 useful Arts, by securing for limited Times to Authors and Inventors
7003 the exclusive Right to their respective Writings and Discoveries.
7005 <!-- PAGE BREAK 142 -->
7006 We can call this the
<quote>Progress Clause,
</quote> for notice what this clause
7007 does not say. It does not say Congress has the power to grant
7008 <quote>creative property rights.
</quote> It says that Congress has the power
7009 <emphasis>to promote progress
</emphasis>. The grant of power is its
7010 purpose, and its purpose is a public one, not the purpose of enriching
7011 publishers, nor even primarily the purpose of rewarding authors.
7013 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusinconstitutionalprogressclause' class='endofrange'
/>
7014 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawasprotectionofcreators' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as protection of creators
</secondary></indexterm>
7015 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawhistoryofamerican' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>history of American
</secondary></indexterm>
7017 The Progress Clause expressly limits the term of copyrights. As we saw
7018 in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"founders"/>,
7019 the English limited the term of copyright so as to assure that a few
7020 would not exercise disproportionate control over culture by exercising
7021 disproportionate control over publishing. We can assume the framers
7022 followed the English for a similar purpose. Indeed, unlike the
7023 English, the framers reinforced that objective, by requiring that
7024 copyrights extend
<quote>to Authors
</quote> only.
7026 <indexterm><primary>Senate, U.S.
</primary></indexterm>
7027 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>structural checks and balances of
</secondary></indexterm>
7028 <indexterm><primary>electoral college
</primary></indexterm>
7030 The design of the Progress Clause reflects something about the
7031 Constitution's design in general. To avoid a problem, the framers
7032 built structure. To prevent the concentrated power of publishers, they
7033 built a structure that kept copyrights away from publishers and kept
7034 them short. To prevent the concentrated power of a church, they banned
7035 the federal government from establishing a church. To prevent
7036 concentrating power in the federal government, they built structures
7037 to reinforce the power of the states
—including the Senate, whose
7038 members were at the time selected by the states, and an electoral
7039 college, also selected by the states, to select the president. In each
7040 case, a
<emphasis>structure
</emphasis> built checks and balances into
7041 the constitutional frame, structured to prevent otherwise inevitable
7042 concentrations of power.
7044 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof' class='endofrange'
/>
7045 <indexterm startref='idxprogressclause' class='endofrange'
/>
7047 I doubt the framers would recognize the regulation we call
<quote>copyright
</quote>
7048 today. The scope of that regulation is far beyond anything they ever
7049 considered. To begin to understand what they did, we need to put our
7050 <quote>copyright
</quote> in context: We need to see how it has changed in the
210
7051 years since they first struck its design.
7053 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionuscopyrightpurposeestablishedin' class='endofrange'
/>
7054 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyconstitutionaltraditionon2' class='endofrange'
/>
7055 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawasprotectionofcreators' class='endofrange'
/>
7056 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>four regulatory modalities on
</secondary></indexterm>
7058 Some of these changes come from the law: some in light of changes
7059 in technology, and some in light of changes in technology given a
7060 <!-- PAGE BREAK 143 -->
7061 particular concentration of market power. In terms of our model, we
7064 <figure id=
"fig-1441">
7066 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7071 <figure id=
"fig-1442">
7073 <graphic fileref=
"images/1442.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7077 <!-- PAGE BREAK 144 -->
7080 <section id=
"lawduration">
7081 <title>Law: Duration
</title>
7082 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof4' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
7083 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws5' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
7084 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightact' class='startofrange'
><primary>Copyright Act (
1790)
</primary></indexterm>
7085 <indexterm><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>common law protections of
</secondary></indexterm>
7086 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainbalanceofuscontentin' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>balance of U.S. content in
</secondary></indexterm>
7088 When the first Congress enacted laws to protect creative property, it
7089 faced the same uncertainty about the status of creative property that
7090 the English had confronted in
1774. Many states had passed laws
7091 protecting creative property, and some believed that these laws simply
7092 supplemented common law rights that already protected creative
7093 authorship.
<footnote>
7096 William W. Crosskey,
<citetitle>Politics and the Constitution in the History of
7097 the United States
</citetitle> (London: Cambridge University Press,
1953), vol.
1,
7098 485–86:
<quote>extinguish[ing], by plain implication of `the supreme
7099 Law of the Land,'
<emphasis>the perpetual rights which authors had, or
7100 were supposed by some to have, under the Common Law
</emphasis></quote>
7102 <indexterm><primary>Crosskey, William W.
</primary></indexterm>
7104 This meant that there was no guaranteed public domain in the United
7105 States in
1790. If copyrights were protected by the common law, then
7106 there was no simple way to know whether a work published in the United
7107 States was controlled or free. Just as in England, this lingering
7108 uncertainty would make it hard for publishers to rely upon a public
7109 domain to reprint and distribute works.
7111 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
7112 <indexterm id='idxlawfederalvsstate' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>federal vs. state
</secondary></indexterm>
7114 That uncertainty ended after Congress passed legislation granting
7115 copyrights. Because federal law overrides any contrary state law,
7116 federal protections for copyrighted works displaced any state law
7117 protections. Just as in England the Statute of Anne eventually meant
7118 that the copyrights for all English works expired, a federal statute
7119 meant that any state copyrights expired as well.
7121 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightrenewabilityof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>renewability of
</secondary></indexterm>
7123 In
1790, Congress enacted the first copyright law. It created a
7124 federal copyright and secured that copyright for fourteen years. If
7125 the author was alive at the end of that fourteen years, then he could
7126 opt to renew the copyright for another fourteen years. If he did not
7127 renew the copyright, his work passed into the public domain.
7129 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws5' class='endofrange'
/>
7131 While there were many works created in the United States in the first
7132 ten years of the Republic, only
5 percent of the works were actually
7133 registered under the federal copyright regime. Of all the work created
7134 in the United States both before
1790 and from
1790 through
1800,
95
7135 percent immediately passed into the public domain; the balance would
7136 pass into the pubic domain within twenty-eight years at most, and more
7137 likely within fourteen years.
<footnote><para>
7139 Although
13,
000 titles were published in the United States from
1790
7140 to
1799, only
556 copyright registrations were filed; John Tebbel,
<citetitle>A
7141 History of Book Publishing in the United States
</citetitle>, vol.
1,
<citetitle>The Creation
7142 of an Industry,
1630–1865</citetitle> (New York: Bowker,
1972),
141. Of the
21,
000
7143 imprints recorded before
1790, only twelve were copyrighted under the
7144 1790 act; William J. Maher,
<citetitle>Copyright Term, Retrospective Extension
7145 and the Copyright Law of
1790 in Historical Context
</citetitle>,
7–10 (
2002),
7146 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
7147 #
25</ulink>. Thus, the overwhelming majority of works fell
7148 immediately into the public domain. Even those works that were
7149 copyrighted fell into the public domain quickly, because the term of
7150 copyright was short. The initial term of copyright was fourteen years,
7151 with the option of renewal for an additional fourteen years. Copyright
7152 Act of May
31,
1790, §
1,
1 stat.
124.
</para></footnote>
7154 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightact' class='endofrange'
/>
7155 <indexterm startref='idxlawfederalvsstate' class='endofrange'
/>
7157 This system of renewal was a crucial part of the American system
7158 of copyright. It assured that the maximum terms of copyright would be
7159 <!-- PAGE BREAK 145 -->
7160 granted only for works where they were wanted. After the initial term
7161 of fourteen years, if it wasn't worth it to an author to renew his
7162 copyright, then it wasn't worth it to society to insist on the
7166 Fourteen years may not seem long to us, but for the vast majority of
7167 copyright owners at that time, it was long enough: Only a small
7168 minority of them renewed their copyright after fourteen years; the
7169 balance allowed their work to pass into the public
7170 domain.
<footnote><para>
7172 Few copyright holders ever chose to renew their copyrights. For
7173 instance, of the
25,
006 copyrights registered in
1883, only
894 were
7174 renewed in
1910. For a year-by-year analysis of copyright renewal
7175 rates, see Barbara A. Ringer,
<quote>Study No.
31: Renewal of Copyright,
</quote>
7176 <citetitle>Studies on Copyright
</citetitle>, vol.
1 (New York: Practicing Law Institute,
7177 1963),
618. For a more recent and comprehensive analysis, see William
7178 M. Landes and Richard A. Posner,
<quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,
</quote>
7179 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
471,
498–501, and
7180 accompanying figures.
</para></footnote>
7182 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainbalanceofuscontentin' class='endofrange'
/>
7183 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
7184 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
7186 Even today, this structure would make sense. Most creative work
7187 has an actual commercial life of just a couple of years. Most books fall
7188 out of print after one year.
<footnote><para>
7190 See Ringer, ch.
9, n.
2.
</para></footnote> When that happens, the
7191 used books are traded free of copyright regulation. Thus the books are
7192 no longer
<emphasis>effectively
</emphasis> controlled by
7193 copyright. The only practical commercial use of the books at that time
7194 is to sell the books as used books; that use
—because it does not
7195 involve publication
—is effectively free.
7197 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws6' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
7198 <indexterm id='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright terms extended by
</secondary></indexterm>
7199 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>term extensions in
</secondary></indexterm>
7201 In the first hundred years of the Republic, the term of copyright was
7202 changed once. In
1831, the term was increased from a maximum of
28
7203 years to a maximum of
42 by increasing the initial term of copyright
7204 from
14 years to
28 years. In the next fifty years of the Republic,
7205 the term increased once again. In
1909, Congress extended the renewal
7206 term of
14 years to
28 years, setting a maximum term of
56 years.
7208 <indexterm id='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
7209 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>future patents vs. future copyrights in
</secondary></indexterm>
7211 Then, beginning in
1962, Congress started a practice that has defined
7212 copyright law since. Eleven times in the last forty years, Congress
7213 has extended the terms of existing copyrights; twice in those forty
7214 years, Congress extended the term of future copyrights. Initially, the
7215 extensions of existing copyrights were short, a mere one to two years.
7216 In
1976, Congress extended all existing copyrights by nineteen years.
7217 And in
1998, in the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act, Congress
7218 extended the term of existing and future copyrights by twenty years.
7220 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>in public domain
</secondary></indexterm>
7222 The effect of these extensions is simply to toll, or delay, the passing
7223 of works into the public domain. This latest extension means that the
7224 public domain will have been tolled for thirty-nine out of fifty-five
7225 years, or
70 percent of the time since
1962. Thus, in the twenty years
7227 <!-- PAGE BREAK 146 -->
7228 after the Sonny Bono Act, while one million patents will pass into the
7229 public domain, zero copyrights will pass into the public domain by virtue
7230 of the expiration of a copyright term.
7232 <indexterm startref='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea' class='endofrange'
/>
7234 The effect of these extensions has been exacerbated by another,
7235 little-noticed change in the copyright law. Remember I said that the
7236 framers established a two-part copyright regime, requiring a copyright
7237 owner to renew his copyright after an initial term. The requirement of
7238 renewal meant that works that no longer needed copyright protection
7239 would pass more quickly into the public domain. The works remaining
7240 under protection would be those that had some continuing commercial
7243 <indexterm><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
7244 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>of natural authors vs. corporations
</secondary></indexterm>
7245 <indexterm><primary>corporations
</primary><secondary>copyright terms for
</secondary></indexterm>
7247 The United States abandoned this sensible system in
1976. For
7248 all works created after
1978, there was only one copyright term
—the
7249 maximum term. For
<quote>natural
</quote> authors, that term was life plus fifty
7250 years. For corporations, the term was seventy-five years. Then, in
1992,
7251 Congress abandoned the renewal requirement for all works created
7252 before
1978. All works still under copyright would be accorded the
7253 maximum term then available. After the Sonny Bono Act, that term
7254 was ninety-five years.
7257 This change meant that American law no longer had an automatic way to
7258 assure that works that were no longer exploited passed into the public
7259 domain. And indeed, after these changes, it is unclear whether it is
7260 even possible to put works into the public domain. The public domain
7261 is orphaned by these changes in copyright law. Despite the requirement
7262 that terms be
<quote>limited,
</quote> we have no evidence that anything will limit
7265 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawhistoryofamerican' class='endofrange'
/>
7266 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7268 The effect of these changes on the average duration of copyright is
7269 dramatic. In
1973, more than
85 percent of copyright owners failed to
7270 renew their copyright. That meant that the average term of copyright
7271 in
1973 was just
32.2 years. Because of the elimination of the renewal
7272 requirement, the average term of copyright is now the maximum term.
7273 In thirty years, then, the average term has tripled, from
32.2 years to
95
7274 years.
<footnote><para>
7276 These statistics are understated. Between the years
1910 and
1962 (the
7277 first year the renewal term was extended), the average term was never
7278 more than thirty-two years, and averaged thirty years. See Landes and
7279 Posner,
<quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,
</quote> loc. cit.
7282 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof4' class='endofrange'
/>
7283 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightrenewabilityof' class='endofrange'
/>
7284 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws6' class='endofrange'
/>
7285 <indexterm startref='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby' class='endofrange'
/>
7286 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7287 <!-- PAGE BREAK 147 -->
7289 <section id=
"lawscope">
7290 <title>Law: Scope
</title>
7291 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightscopeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>scope of
</secondary></indexterm>
7293 The
<quote>scope
</quote> of a copyright is the range of rights granted by the law.
7294 The scope of American copyright has changed dramatically. Those
7295 changes are not necessarily bad. But we should understand the extent
7296 of the changes if we're to keep this debate in context.
7298 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7299 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkshistoricalshiftincopyrightcoverageof' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>historical shift in copyright coverage of
</secondary></indexterm>
7301 In
1790, that scope was very narrow. Copyright covered only
<quote>maps,
7302 charts, and books.
</quote> That means it didn't cover, for example, music or
7303 architecture. More significantly, the right granted by a copyright gave
7304 the author the exclusive right to
<quote>publish
</quote> copyrighted works. That
7305 means someone else violated the copyright only if he republished the
7306 work without the copyright owner's permission. Finally, the right granted
7307 by a copyright was an exclusive right to that particular book. The right
7308 did not extend to what lawyers call
<quote>derivative works.
</quote> It would not,
7309 therefore, interfere with the right of someone other than the author to
7310 translate a copyrighted book, or to adapt the story to a different form
7311 (such as a drama based on a published book).
7314 This, too, has changed dramatically. While the contours of copyright
7315 today are extremely hard to describe simply, in general terms, the
7316 right covers practically any creative work that is reduced to a
7317 tangible form. It covers music as well as architecture, drama as well
7318 as computer programs. It gives the copyright owner of that creative
7319 work not only the exclusive right to
<quote>publish
</quote> the work, but also the
7320 exclusive right of control over any
<quote>copies
</quote> of that work. And most
7321 significant for our purposes here, the right gives the copyright owner
7322 control over not only his or her particular work, but also any
7323 <quote>derivative work
</quote> that might grow out of the original work. In this
7324 way, the right covers more creative work, protects the creative work
7325 more broadly, and protects works that are based in a significant way
7326 on the initial creative work.
7328 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightmarkingof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>marking of
</secondary></indexterm>
7329 <indexterm id='idxformalities' class='startofrange'
><primary>formalities
</primary></indexterm>
7330 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawregistrationrequirementof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>registration requirement of
</secondary></indexterm>
7332 At the same time that the scope of copyright has expanded, procedural
7333 limitations on the right have been relaxed. I've already described the
7334 complete removal of the renewal requirement in
1992. In addition
7335 <!-- PAGE BREAK 148 -->
7336 to the renewal requirement, for most of the history of American
7337 copyright law, there was a requirement that a work be registered
7338 before it could receive the protection of a copyright. There was also
7339 a requirement that any copyrighted work be marked either with that
7340 famous
© or the word
<emphasis>copyright
</emphasis>. And for most
7341 of the history of American copyright law, there was a requirement that
7342 works be deposited with the government before a copyright could be
7345 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkshistoricalshiftincopyrightcoverageof' class='endofrange'
/>
7347 The reason for the registration requirement was the sensible
7348 understanding that for most works, no copyright was required. Again,
7349 in the first ten years of the Republic,
95 percent of works eligible
7350 for copyright were never copyrighted. Thus, the rule reflected the
7351 norm: Most works apparently didn't need copyright, so registration
7352 narrowed the regulation of the law to the few that did. The same
7353 reasoning justified the requirement that a work be marked as
7354 copyrighted
—that way it was easy to know whether a copyright was
7355 being claimed. The requirement that works be deposited was to assure
7356 that after the copyright expired, there would be a copy of the work
7357 somewhere so that it could be copied by others without locating the
7360 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>European
</secondary></indexterm>
7362 All of these
<quote>formalities
</quote> were abolished in the American system when
7363 we decided to follow European copyright law. There is no requirement
7364 that you register a work to get a copyright; the copyright now is
7365 automatic; the copyright exists whether or not you mark your work with
7366 a
©; and the copyright exists whether or not you actually make a
7367 copy available for others to copy.
7369 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightmarkingof' class='endofrange'
/>
7370 <indexterm startref='idxformalities' class='endofrange'
/>
7371 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawregistrationrequirementof' class='endofrange'
/>
7373 Consider a practical example to understand the scope of these
7376 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightact2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Copyright Act (
1790)
</primary></indexterm>
7378 If, in
1790, you wrote a book and you were one of the
5 percent who
7379 actually copyrighted that book, then the copyright law protected you
7380 against another publisher's taking your book and republishing it
7381 without your permission. The aim of the act was to regulate publishers
7382 so as to prevent that kind of unfair competition. In
1790, there were
7383 174 publishers in the United States.
<footnote><para>
7385 See Thomas Bender and David Sampliner,
<quote>Poets, Pirates, and the
7386 Creation of American Literature,
</quote> 29 <citetitle>New York University Journal of
7387 International Law and Politics
</citetitle> 255 (
1997), and James Gilraeth, ed.,
7388 Federal Copyright Records,
1790–1800 (U.S. G.P.O.,
1987).
7391 The Copyright Act was thus a tiny
7392 regulation of a tiny proportion of a tiny part of the creative market in
7393 the United States
—publishers.
7395 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7396 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs3' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7397 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs3' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7399 <!-- PAGE BREAK 149 -->
7400 The act left other creators totally unregulated. If I copied your poem
7401 by hand, over and over again, as a way to learn it by heart, my act
7402 was totally unregulated by the
1790 act. If I took your novel and made
7403 a play based upon it, or if I translated it or abridged it, none of
7404 those activities were regulated by the original copyright act. These
7405 creative activities remained free, while the activities of publishers
7408 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightact2' class='endofrange'
/>
7410 Today the story is very different: If you write a book, your book is
7411 automatically protected. Indeed, not just your book. Every e-mail,
7412 every note to your spouse, every doodle,
<emphasis>every
</emphasis>
7413 creative act that's reduced to a tangible form
—all of this is
7414 automatically copyrighted. There is no need to register or mark your
7415 work. The protection follows the creation, not the steps you take to
7419 That protection gives you the right (subject to a narrow range of
7420 fair use exceptions) to control how others copy the work, whether they
7421 copy it to republish it or to share an excerpt.
7424 That much is the obvious part. Any system of copyright would
7426 competing publishing. But there's a second part to the copyright of
7427 today that is not at all obvious. This is the protection of
<quote>derivative
7428 rights.
</quote> If you write a book, no one can make a movie out of your
7429 book without permission. No one can translate it without permission.
7430 CliffsNotes can't make an abridgment unless permission is granted. All
7431 of these derivative uses of your original work are controlled by the
7432 copyright holder. The copyright, in other words, is now not just an
7434 right to your writings, but an exclusive right to your writings
7435 and a large proportion of the writings inspired by them.
7437 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs3' class='endofrange'
/>
7439 It is this derivative right that would seem most bizarre to our
7440 framers, though it has become second nature to us. Initially, this
7442 was created to deal with obvious evasions of a narrower
7444 If I write a book, can you change one word and then claim a
7445 copyright in a new and different book? Obviously that would make a
7446 joke of the copyright, so the law was properly expanded to include
7447 those slight modifications as well as the verbatim original work.
7450 <!-- PAGE BREAK 150 -->
7451 In preventing that joke, the law created an astonishing power
7452 within a free culture
—at least, it's astonishing when you
7453 understand that the law applies not just to the commercial publisher
7454 but to anyone with a computer. I understand the wrong in duplicating
7455 and selling someone else's work. But whatever
7456 <emphasis>that
</emphasis> wrong is, transforming someone else's work
7457 is a different wrong. Some view transformation as no wrong at
7458 all
—they believe that our law, as the framers penned it, should
7459 not protect derivative rights at all.
<footnote><para>
7461 Jonathan Zittrain,
<quote>The Copyright Cage,
</quote> <citetitle>Legal
7462 Affairs
</citetitle>, July/August
2003, available at
7463 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
26</ulink>.
7464 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
7466 Whether or not you go that far, it seems
7467 plain that whatever wrong is involved is fundamentally different from
7468 the wrong of direct piracy.
7471 Yet copyright law treats these two different wrongs in the same way. I
7472 can go to court and get an injunction against your pirating my book. I
7473 can go to court and get an injunction against your transformative use
7474 of my book.
<footnote><para>
7476 Professor Rubenfeld has presented a powerful constitutional argument
7477 about the difference that copyright law should draw (from the
7478 perspective of the First Amendment) between mere
<quote>copies
</quote> and
7479 derivative works. See Jed Rubenfeld,
<quote>The Freedom of Imagination:
7480 Copyright's Constitutionality,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
7481 Journal
</citetitle> 112 (
2002):
1–60 (see especially
7483 <indexterm><primary>Rubenfeld, Jeb
</primary></indexterm>
7485 These two different uses of my creative work are treated the same.
7487 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs3' class='endofrange'
/>
7488 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
7489 <indexterm><primary>Mickey Mouse
</primary></indexterm>
7491 This again may seem right to you. If I wrote a book, then why should
7492 you be able to write a movie that takes my story and makes money from
7493 it without paying me or crediting me? Or if Disney creates a creature
7494 called
<quote>Mickey Mouse,
</quote> why should you be able to make Mickey Mouse
7495 toys and be the one to trade on the value that Disney originally
7499 These are good arguments, and, in general, my point is not that the
7500 derivative right is unjustified. My aim just now is much narrower:
7501 simply to make clear that this expansion is a significant change from
7502 the rights originally granted.
7504 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightscopeof' class='endofrange'
/>
7505 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork2' class='endofrange'
/>
7507 <section id=
"lawreach">
7508 <title>Law and Architecture: Reach
</title>
7509 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7510 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawscopeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>scope of
</secondary></indexterm>
7512 Whereas originally the law regulated only publishers, the change in
7513 copyright's scope means that the law today regulates publishers, users,
7514 and authors. It regulates them because all three are capable of making
7515 copies, and the core of the regulation of copyright law is copies.
<footnote><para>
7517 This is a simplification of the law, but not much of one. The law
7518 certainly regulates more than
<quote>copies
</quote>—a public performance of a
7519 copyrighted song, for example, is regulated even though performance
7520 per se doesn't make a copy;
17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
7521 106(
4). And it certainly sometimes doesn't regulate a
<quote>copy
</quote>;
17
7522 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
112(a). But the presumption under the
7523 existing law (which regulates
<quote>copies;
</quote> 17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
7524 102) is that if there is a copy, there is a right.
7527 <indexterm><primary>Valenti, Jack
</primary><secondary>on creative property rights
</secondary></indexterm>
7528 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyotherpropertyrightsvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>other property rights vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7530 <!-- PAGE BREAK 151 -->
7531 <quote>Copies.
</quote> That certainly sounds like the obvious thing for
7532 <emphasis>copy
</emphasis>right law to regulate. But as with Jack
7533 Valenti's argument at the start of this chapter, that
<quote>creative
7534 property
</quote> deserves the
<quote>same rights
</quote> as all other property, it is the
7535 <emphasis>obvious
</emphasis> that we need to be most careful
7536 about. For while it may be obvious that in the world before the
7537 Internet, copies were the obvious trigger for copyright law, upon
7538 reflection, it should be obvious that in the world with the Internet,
7539 copies should
<emphasis>not
</emphasis> be the trigger for copyright
7540 law. More precisely, they should not
<emphasis>always
</emphasis> be
7541 the trigger for copyright law.
7543 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof' class='endofrange'
/>
7545 This is perhaps the central claim of this book, so let me take this
7546 very slowly so that the point is not easily missed. My claim is that the
7547 Internet should at least force us to rethink the conditions under which
7548 the law of copyright automatically applies,
<footnote><para>
7550 Thus, my argument is not that in each place that copyright law
7551 extends, we should repeal it. It is instead that we should have a good
7552 argument for its extending where it does, and should not determine its
7553 reach on the basis of arbitrary and automatic changes caused by
7556 because it is clear that the
7557 current reach of copyright was never contemplated, much less chosen,
7558 by the legislators who enacted copyright law.
7560 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawscopeof' class='endofrange'
/>
7561 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyotherpropertyrightsvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
7563 We can see this point abstractly by beginning with this largely
7566 <figure id=
"fig-1521">
7568 <graphic fileref=
"images/1521.svg" align=
"center" width=
"40%"></graphic>
7570 <indexterm id='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>three types of uses of
</secondary></indexterm>
7571 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7572 <indexterm id='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>copyright applicability altered by technology of
</secondary></indexterm>
7573 <indexterm id='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='startofrange'
><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>copyright intent altered by
</secondary></indexterm>
7574 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7575 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7577 <!-- PAGE BREAK 152 -->
7578 Think about a book in real space, and imagine this circle to represent
7579 all its potential
<emphasis>uses
</emphasis>. Most of these uses are
7580 unregulated by copyright law, because the uses don't create a copy. If
7581 you read a book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If you
7582 give someone the book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If
7583 you resell a book, that act is not regulated (copyright law expressly
7584 states that after the first sale of a book, the copyright owner can
7585 impose no further conditions on the disposition of the book). If you
7586 sleep on the book or use it to hold up a lamp or let your puppy chew
7587 it up, those acts are not regulated by copyright law, because those
7588 acts do not make a copy.
7590 <figure id=
"fig-1531">
7592 <graphic fileref=
"images/1531.png" align=
"center" width=
"40%"></graphic>
7595 Obviously, however, some uses of a copyrighted book are regulated
7596 by copyright law. Republishing the book, for example, makes a copy. It
7597 is therefore regulated by copyright law. Indeed, this particular use stands
7598 at the core of this circle of possible uses of a copyrighted work. It is the
7599 paradigmatic use properly regulated by copyright regulation (see
7600 diagram in figure
<xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n" linkend=
"fig-1541"/>).
7602 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='endofrange'
/>
7603 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='endofrange'
/>
7604 <figure id=
"fig-1541">
7606 <graphic fileref=
"images/1541.svg" align=
"center" width=
"40%"></graphic>
7608 <indexterm id='idxfairuse' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary></indexterm>
7609 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7611 Finally, there is a tiny sliver of otherwise regulated copying uses
7612 that remain unregulated because the law considers these
<quote>fair uses.
</quote>
7614 <!-- PAGE BREAK 153 -->
7615 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
7616 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
7618 These are uses that themselves involve copying, but which the law
7619 treats as unregulated because public policy demands that they remain
7620 unregulated. You are free to quote from this book, even in a review
7621 that is quite negative, without my permission, even though that
7622 quoting makes a copy. That copy would ordinarily give the copyright
7623 owner the exclusive right to say whether the copy is allowed or not,
7624 but the law denies the owner any exclusive right over such
<quote>fair uses
</quote>
7625 for public policy (and possibly First Amendment) reasons.
7627 <figure id=
"fig-1542">
7629 <graphic fileref=
"images/1542.svg" align=
"center" width=
"40%"></graphic>
7631 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
7633 <!-- PAGE BREAK 154 -->
7634 In real space, then, the possible uses of a book are divided into three
7635 sorts: (
1) unregulated uses, (
2) regulated uses, and (
3) regulated uses that
7636 are nonetheless deemed
<quote>fair
</quote> regardless of the copyright owner's views.
7638 <indexterm startref='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='endofrange'
/>
7639 <indexterm id='idxbooksoninternet' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
7640 <indexterm id='idxinternetbookson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>books on
</secondary></indexterm>
7641 <indexterm><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>Internet burdens on
</secondary></indexterm>
7643 Enter the Internet
—a distributed, digital network where every use
7644 of a copyrighted work produces a copy.
<footnote><para>
7646 I don't mean
<quote>nature
</quote> in the sense that it couldn't be different, but
7647 rather that its present instantiation entails a copy. Optical networks
7648 need not make copies of content they transmit, and a digital network
7649 could be designed to delete anything it copies so that the same number
7652 And because of this single, arbitrary feature of the design of a
7653 digital network, the scope of category
1 changes dramatically. Uses
7654 that before were presumptively unregulated are now presumptively
7655 regulated. No longer is there a set of presumptively unregulated uses
7656 that define a freedom associated with a copyrighted work. Instead,
7657 each use is now subject to the copyright, because each use also makes
7658 a copy
—category
1 gets sucked into category
2. And those who
7659 would defend the unregulated uses of copyrighted work must look
7660 exclusively to category
3, fair uses, to bear the burden of this
7663 <indexterm startref='idxfairuse' class='endofrange'
/>
7664 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand2' class='endofrange'
/>
7666 So let's be very specific to make this general point clear. Before the
7667 Internet, if you purchased a book and read it ten times, there would
7668 be no plausible
<emphasis>copyright
</emphasis>-related argument that
7669 the copyright owner could make to control that use of her
7670 book. Copyright law would have nothing to say about whether you read
7671 the book once, ten times, or every
7672 <!-- PAGE BREAK 155 -->
7673 night before you went to bed. None of those instances of
7674 use
—reading
— could be regulated by copyright law because
7675 none of those uses produced a copy.
7677 <indexterm id='idxebooks' class='startofrange'
><primary>e-books
</primary></indexterm>
7678 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>technological developments and
</secondary></indexterm>
7680 But the same book as an e-book is effectively governed by a different
7681 set of rules. Now if the copyright owner says you may read the book
7682 only once or only once a month, then
<emphasis>copyright
7683 law
</emphasis> would aid the copyright owner in exercising this degree
7684 of control, because of the accidental feature of copyright law that
7685 triggers its application upon there being a copy. Now if you read the
7686 book ten times and the license says you may read it only five times,
7687 then whenever you read the book (or any portion of it) beyond the
7688 fifth time, you are making a copy of the book contrary to the
7689 copyright owner's wish.
7691 <figure id=
"fig-1551">
7693 <graphic fileref=
"images/1551.svg" align=
"center" width=
"40%"></graphic>
7696 There are some people who think this makes perfect sense. My aim
7697 just now is not to argue about whether it makes sense or not. My aim
7698 is only to make clear the change. Once you see this point, a few other
7699 points also become clear:
7702 First, making category
1 disappear is not anything any policy maker
7703 ever intended. Congress did not think through the collapse of the
7704 presumptively unregulated uses of copyrighted works. There is no
7705 evidence at all that policy makers had this idea in mind when they
7706 allowed our policy here to shift. Unregulated uses were an important
7707 part of free culture before the Internet.
7709 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7711 Second, this shift is especially troubling in the context of
7712 transformative uses of creative content. Again, we can all understand
7713 the wrong in commercial piracy. But the law now purports to regulate
7714 <emphasis>any
</emphasis> transformation you make of creative work
7715 using a machine.
<quote>Copy and paste
</quote> and
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> become
7716 crimes. Tinkering with a story and releasing it to others exposes the
7717 tinkerer to at least a requirement of justification. However
7718 troubling the expansion with respect to copying a particular work, it
7719 is extraordinarily troubling with respect to transformative uses of
7722 <indexterm id='idxfairuseinternetburdenson' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>Internet burdens on
</secondary></indexterm>
7723 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7724 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworksfairusevs' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>fair use vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7726 Third, this shift from category
1 to category
2 puts an extraordinary
7728 <!-- PAGE BREAK 156 -->
7729 burden on category
3 (
<quote>fair use
</quote>) that fair use never before had to
7730 bear. If a copyright owner now tried to control how many times I
7731 could read a book on-line, the natural response would be to argue that
7732 this is a violation of my fair use rights. But there has never been
7733 any litigation about whether I have a fair use right to read, because
7734 before the Internet, reading did not trigger the application of
7735 copyright law and hence the need for a fair use defense. The right to
7736 read was effectively protected before because reading was not
7739 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='endofrange'
/>
7740 <indexterm startref='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='endofrange'
/>
7741 <indexterm startref='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='endofrange'
/>
7742 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='endofrange'
/>
7743 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='endofrange'
/>
7745 This point about fair use is totally ignored, even by advocates for
7746 free culture. We have been cornered into arguing that our rights
7747 depend upon fair use
—never even addressing the earlier question
7748 about the expansion in effective regulation. A thin protection
7749 grounded in fair use makes sense when the vast majority of uses are
7750 <emphasis>unregulated
</emphasis>. But when everything becomes
7751 presumptively regulated, then the protections of fair use are not
7754 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto' class='endofrange'
/>
7755 <indexterm startref='idxbooksoninternet' class='endofrange'
/>
7756 <indexterm startref='idxinternetbookson2' class='endofrange'
/>
7757 <indexterm startref='idxebooks' class='endofrange'
/>
7758 <indexterm startref='idxfairuseinternetburdenson' class='endofrange'
/>
7759 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand3' class='endofrange'
/>
7760 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworksfairusevs' class='endofrange'
/>
7761 <indexterm id='idxvideopipeline' class='startofrange'
><primary>Video Pipeline
</primary></indexterm>
7762 <indexterm id='idxadvertising' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
7763 <indexterm id='idxfilmindustrytraileradvertisementsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>film industry
</primary><secondary>trailer advertisements of
</secondary></indexterm>
7765 The case of Video Pipeline is a good example. Video Pipeline was
7766 in the business of making
<quote>trailer
</quote> advertisements for movies available
7767 to video stores. The video stores displayed the trailers as a way to sell
7768 videos. Video Pipeline got the trailers from the film distributors, put
7769 the trailers on tape, and sold the tapes to the retail stores.
7771 <indexterm><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
7773 The company did this for about fifteen years. Then, in
1997, it began
7774 to think about the Internet as another way to distribute these
7775 previews. The idea was to expand their
<quote>selling by sampling
</quote>
7776 technique by giving on-line stores the same ability to enable
7777 <quote>browsing.
</quote> Just as in a bookstore you can read a few pages of a book
7778 before you buy the book, so, too, you would be able to sample a bit
7779 from the movie on-line before you bought it.
7781 <indexterm id='idxdisneyinc2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
7782 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7783 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7784 <indexterm id='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst2' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>legal intimidation tactics against
</secondary></indexterm>
7786 In
1998, Video Pipeline informed Disney and other film distributors
7787 that it intended to distribute the trailers through the Internet
7788 (rather than sending the tapes) to distributors of their videos. Two
7789 years later, Disney told Video Pipeline to stop. The owner of Video
7790 <!-- PAGE BREAK 157 -->
7791 Pipeline asked Disney to talk about the matter
—he had built a
7792 business on distributing this content as a way to help sell Disney
7793 films; he had customers who depended upon his delivering this
7794 content. Disney would agree to talk only if Video Pipeline stopped the
7795 distribution immediately. Video Pipeline thought it was within their
7796 <quote>fair use
</quote> rights to distribute the clips as they had. So they filed a
7797 lawsuit to ask the court to declare that these rights were in fact
7800 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising' class='endofrange'
/>
7801 <indexterm startref='idxfilmindustrytraileradvertisementsof' class='endofrange'
/>
7802 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
7803 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitswillfulinfringementfindingsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>willful infringement findings in
</secondary></indexterm>
7804 <indexterm><primary>willful infringement
</primary></indexterm>
7806 Disney countersued
—for $
100 million in damages. Those damages
7807 were predicated upon a claim that Video Pipeline had
<quote>willfully
7808 infringed
</quote> on Disney's copyright. When a court makes a finding of
7809 willful infringement, it can award damages not on the basis of the
7810 actual harm to the copyright owner, but on the basis of an amount set
7811 in the statute. Because Video Pipeline had distributed seven hundred
7812 clips of Disney movies to enable video stores to sell copies of those
7813 movies, Disney was now suing Video Pipeline for $
100 million.
7816 Disney has the right to control its property, of course. But the video
7817 stores that were selling Disney's films also had some sort of right to be
7818 able to sell the films that they had bought from Disney. Disney's claim
7819 in court was that the stores were allowed to sell the films and they were
7820 permitted to list the titles of the films they were selling, but they were
7821 not allowed to show clips of the films as a way of selling them without
7822 Disney's permission.
7824 <indexterm><primary>first-sale doctrine
</primary></indexterm>
7826 Now, you might think this is a close case, and I think the courts
7827 would consider it a close case. My point here is to map the change
7828 that gives Disney this power. Before the Internet, Disney couldn't
7829 really control how people got access to their content. Once a video
7830 was in the marketplace, the
<quote>first-sale doctrine
</quote> would free the
7831 seller to use the video as he wished, including showing portions of it
7832 in order to engender sales of the entire movie video. But with the
7833 Internet, it becomes possible for Disney to centralize control over
7834 access to this content. Because each use of the Internet produces a
7835 copy, use on the Internet becomes subject to the copyright owner's
7836 control. The technology expands the scope of effective control,
7837 because the technology builds a copy into every transaction.
7839 <indexterm startref='idxvideopipeline' class='endofrange'
/>
7840 <indexterm startref='idxdisneyinc2' class='endofrange'
/>
7841 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof3' class='endofrange'
/>
7842 <indexterm startref='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst2' class='endofrange'
/>
7843 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto2' class='endofrange'
/>
7844 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitswillfulinfringementfindingsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7845 <indexterm><primary>Barnes
& Noble
</primary></indexterm>
7846 <indexterm><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
7847 <indexterm><primary>market competition
</primary></indexterm>
7849 <!-- PAGE BREAK 158 -->
7850 No doubt, a potential is not yet an abuse, and so the potential for
7851 control is not yet the abuse of control. Barnes
& Noble has the
7852 right to say you can't touch a book in their store; property law gives
7853 them that right. But the market effectively protects against that
7854 abuse. If Barnes
& Noble banned browsing, then consumers would
7855 choose other bookstores. Competition protects against the
7856 extremes. And it may well be (my argument so far does not even
7857 question this) that competition would prevent any similar danger when
7858 it comes to copyright. Sure, publishers exercising the rights that
7859 authors have assigned to them might try to regulate how many times you
7860 read a book, or try to stop you from sharing the book with anyone. But
7861 in a competitive market such as the book market, the dangers of this
7862 happening are quite slight.
7865 Again, my aim so far is simply to map the changes that this changed
7866 architecture enables. Enabling technology to enforce the control of
7867 copyright means that the control of copyright is no longer defined by
7868 balanced policy. The control of copyright is simply what private
7869 owners choose. In some contexts, at least, that fact is harmless. But
7870 in some contexts it is a recipe for disaster.
7873 <section id=
"lawforce">
7874 <title>Architecture and Law: Force
</title>
7876 The disappearance of unregulated uses would be change enough, but a
7877 second important change brought about by the Internet magnifies its
7878 significance. This second change does not affect the reach of copyright
7879 regulation; it affects how such regulation is enforced.
7881 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>technology as automatic enforcer of
</secondary></indexterm>
7882 <indexterm><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>copyright enforcement controlled by
</secondary></indexterm>
7884 In the world before digital technology, it was generally the law that
7885 controlled whether and how someone was regulated by copyright law.
7886 The law, meaning a court, meaning a judge: In the end, it was a human,
7887 trained in the tradition of the law and cognizant of the balances that
7888 tradition embraced, who said whether and how the law would restrict
7891 <indexterm><primary>Casablanca
</primary></indexterm>
7892 <indexterm id='idxmarxbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Marx Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
7893 <indexterm id='idxwarnerbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
7895 There's a famous story about a battle between the Marx Brothers
7896 and Warner Brothers. The Marxes intended to make a parody of
7897 <!-- PAGE BREAK 159 -->
7898 <citetitle>Casablanca
</citetitle>. Warner Brothers objected. They
7899 wrote a nasty letter to the Marxes, warning them that there would be
7900 serious legal consequences if they went forward with their
7901 plan.
<footnote><para>
7903 See David Lange,
<quote>Recognizing the Public Domain,
</quote> <citetitle>Law and
7904 Contemporary Problems
</citetitle> 44 (
1981):
172–73.
7908 This led the Marx Brothers to respond in kind. They warned
7909 Warner Brothers that the Marx Brothers
<quote>were brothers long before
7910 you were.
</quote><footnote><para>
7912 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
7913 Ibid. See also Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and
7914 Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
1–3.
7916 The Marx Brothers therefore owned the word
7917 <citetitle>brothers
</citetitle>, and if Warner Brothers insisted on
7918 trying to control
<citetitle>Casablanca
</citetitle>, then the Marx
7919 Brothers would insist on control over
<citetitle>brothers
</citetitle>.
7922 An absurd and hollow threat, of course, because Warner Brothers,
7923 like the Marx Brothers, knew that no court would ever enforce such a
7924 silly claim. This extremism was irrelevant to the real freedoms anyone
7925 (including Warner Brothers) enjoyed.
7927 <indexterm id='idxbooksoninternet2' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
7929 On the Internet, however, there is no check on silly rules, because on
7930 the Internet, increasingly, rules are enforced not by a human but by a
7931 machine: Increasingly, the rules of copyright law, as interpreted by
7932 the copyright owner, get built into the technology that delivers
7933 copyrighted content. It is code, rather than law, that rules. And the
7934 problem with code regulations is that, unlike law, code has no
7935 shame. Code would not get the humor of the Marx Brothers. The
7936 consequence of that is not at all funny.
7938 <indexterm startref='idxwarnerbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
7939 <indexterm startref='idxmarxbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
7941 <indexterm id='idxadobeebookreader' class='startofrange'
><primary>Adobe eBook Reader
</primary></indexterm>
7943 Consider the life of my Adobe eBook Reader.
7946 An e-book is a book delivered in electronic form. An Adobe eBook is
7947 not a book that Adobe has published; Adobe simply produces the
7948 software that publishers use to deliver e-books. It provides the
7949 technology, and the publisher delivers the content by using the
7952 <figure id=
"fig-example-adobe-ebook-reader" float=
"1">
7954 <graphic fileref=
"images/example-adobe-ebook-reader.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7958 <xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n" linkend=
"fig-example-adobe-ebook-reader"/>
7959 is a picture of an old version of my Adobe eBook Reader.
7962 As you can see, I have a small collection of e-books within this
7963 e-book library. Some of these books reproduce content that is in the
7964 public domain:
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>, for example, is in
7965 the public domain. Some of them reproduce content that is not in the
7966 public domain: My own book
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>
7967 is not yet within the public domain. Consider
7968 <citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle> first. If you click on my e-book
7970 <!-- PAGE BREAK 160 -->
7971 <citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>, you'll see a fancy cover, and then
7972 a button at the bottom called Permissions.
7975 If you click on the Permissions button, you'll see a list of the
7976 permissions that the publisher purports to grant with this book.
7978 <figure id=
"fig-1612">
7980 <graphic fileref=
"images/1612.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7983 <!-- PAGE BREAK 161 -->
7984 According to my eBook Reader, I have the permission to copy to the
7985 clipboard of the computer ten text selections every ten days. (So far,
7986 I've copied no text to the clipboard.) I also have the permission to
7987 print ten pages from the book every ten days. Lastly, I have the
7988 permission to use the Read Aloud button to hear
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>
7989 read aloud through the computer.
7991 <indexterm><primary>Aristotle
</primary></indexterm>
7992 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Politics
</citetitle>, (Aristotle)
</primary></indexterm>
7994 Here's the e-book for another work in the public domain (including the
7995 translation): Aristotle's
<citetitle>Politics
</citetitle>.
7997 <figure id=
"fig-1621">
7999 <graphic fileref=
"images/aristotele-ebook.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
8002 According to its permissions, no printing or copying is permitted
8003 at all. But fortunately, you can use the Read Aloud button to hear
8006 <figure id=
"fig-1622">
8008 <graphic fileref=
"images/1622.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
8010 <indexterm><primary>Future of Ideas, The (Lessig)
</primary></indexterm>
8011 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
8013 Finally (and most embarrassingly), here are the permissions for the
8014 original e-book version of my last book,
<citetitle>The Future of
8017 <!-- PAGE BREAK 162 -->
8018 <figure id=
"fig-1631">
8020 <graphic fileref=
"images/1631.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
8023 No copying, no printing, and don't you dare try to listen to this book!
8026 Now, the Adobe eBook Reader calls these controls
8027 <quote>permissions
</quote>— as if the publisher has the power to control how
8028 you use these works. For works under copyright, the copyright owner
8029 certainly does have the power
—up to the limits of the copyright
8030 law. But for work not under copyright, there is no such copyright
8031 power.
<footnote><para>
8033 In principle, a contract might impose a requirement on me. I might,
8034 for example, buy a book from you that includes a contract that says I
8035 will read it only three times, or that I promise to read it three
8036 times. But that obligation (and the limits for creating that
8037 obligation) would come from the contract, not from copyright law, and
8038 the obligations of contract would not necessarily pass to anyone who
8039 subsequently acquired the book.
8041 When my e-book of
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle> says I have the
8042 permission to copy only ten text selections into the memory every ten
8043 days, what that really means is that the eBook Reader has enabled the
8044 publisher to control how I use the book on my computer, far beyond the
8045 control that the law would enable.
8048 The control comes instead from the code
—from the technology
8049 within which the e-book
<quote>lives.
</quote> Though the e-book says that these are
8050 permissions, they are not the sort of
<quote>permissions
</quote> that most of us
8051 deal with. When a teenager gets
<quote>permission
</quote> to stay out till
8052 midnight, she knows (unless she's Cinderella) that she can stay out
8053 till
2 A.M., but will suffer a punishment if she's caught. But when
8054 the Adobe eBook Reader says I have the permission to make ten copies
8055 of the text into the computer's memory, that means that after I've
8056 made ten copies, the computer will not make any more. The same with
8057 the printing restrictions: After ten pages, the eBook Reader will not
8058 print any more pages. It's the same with the silly restriction that
8059 says that you can't use the Read Aloud button to read my book
8060 aloud
—it's not that the company will sue you if you do; instead,
8061 if you push the Read Aloud button with my book, the machine simply
8064 <indexterm><primary>Marx Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
8065 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
8067 <!-- PAGE BREAK 163 -->
8068 These are
<emphasis>controls
</emphasis>, not permissions. Imagine a
8069 world where the Marx Brothers sold word processing software that, when
8070 you tried to type
<quote>Warner Brothers,
</quote> erased
<quote>Brothers
</quote> from the
8074 This is the future of copyright law: not so much copyright
8075 <emphasis>law
</emphasis> as copyright
<emphasis>code
</emphasis>. The
8076 controls over access to content will not be controls that are ratified
8077 by courts; the controls over access to content will be controls that
8078 are coded by programmers. And whereas the controls that are built into
8079 the law are always to be checked by a judge, the controls that are
8080 built into the technology have no similar built-in check.
8083 How significant is this? Isn't it always possible to get around the
8084 controls built into the technology? Software used to be sold with
8085 technologies that limited the ability of users to copy the software,
8086 but those were trivial protections to defeat. Why won't it be trivial
8087 to defeat these protections as well?
8090 We've only scratched the surface of this story. Return to the Adobe
8093 <indexterm id='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alice's Adventures in Wonderland (Carroll)
</primary></indexterm>
8094 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>e-book restrictions on
</secondary></indexterm>
8096 Early in the life of the Adobe eBook Reader, Adobe suffered a public
8097 relations nightmare. Among the books that you could download for free
8098 on the Adobe site was a copy of
<citetitle>Alice's Adventures in
8099 Wonderland
</citetitle>. This wonderful book is in the public
8100 domain. Yet when you clicked on Permissions for that book, you got the
8103 <figure id=
"fig-1641">
8105 <graphic fileref=
"images/1641.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
8107 <!-- PAGE BREAK 164-->
8109 Here was a public domain children's book that you were not allowed to
8110 copy, not allowed to lend, not allowed to give, and, as the
8111 <quote>permissions
</quote> indicated, not allowed to
<quote>read aloud
</quote>!
8114 The public relations nightmare attached to that final permission.
8115 For the text did not say that you were not permitted to use the Read
8116 Aloud button; it said you did not have the permission to read the book
8117 aloud. That led some people to think that Adobe was restricting the
8118 right of parents, for example, to read the book to their children, which
8119 seemed, to say the least, absurd.
8122 Adobe responded quickly that it was absurd to think that it was trying
8123 to restrict the right to read a book aloud. Obviously it was only
8124 restricting the ability to use the Read Aloud button to have the book
8125 read aloud. But the question Adobe never did answer is this: Would
8126 Adobe thus agree that a consumer was free to use software to hack
8127 around the restrictions built into the eBook Reader? If some company
8128 (call it Elcomsoft) developed a program to disable the technological
8129 protection built into an Adobe eBook so that a blind person, say,
8130 could use a computer to read the book aloud, would Adobe agree that
8131 such a use of an eBook Reader was fair? Adobe didn't answer because
8132 the answer, however absurd it might seem, is no.
8134 <indexterm startref='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='endofrange'
/>
8135 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='endofrange'
/>
8137 The point is not to blame Adobe. Indeed, Adobe is among the most
8138 innovative companies developing strategies to balance open access to
8139 content with incentives for companies to innovate. But Adobe's
8140 technology enables control, and Adobe has an incentive to defend this
8141 control. That incentive is understandable, yet what it creates is
8144 <indexterm startref='idxadobeebookreader' class='endofrange'
/>
8145 <indexterm startref='idxbooksoninternet2' class='endofrange'
/>
8147 To see the point in a particularly absurd context, consider a favorite
8148 story of mine that makes the same point.
8150 <indexterm id='idxaibo1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8151 <indexterm id='idxroboticdog1' class='startofrange'
><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8152 <indexterm id='idxsonyaibo1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8154 Consider the robotic dog made by Sony named
<quote>Aibo.
</quote> The Aibo
8155 learns tricks, cuddles, and follows you around. It eats only electricity
8156 and that doesn't leave that much of a mess (at least in your house).
8159 The Aibo is expensive and popular. Fans from around the world
8160 have set up clubs to trade stories. One fan in particular set up a Web
8161 site to enable information about the Aibo dog to be shared. This fan set
8162 <!-- PAGE BREAK 165-->
8163 up aibopet.com (and aibohack.com, but that resolves to the same site),
8164 and on that site he provided information about how to teach an Aibo
8165 to do tricks in addition to the ones Sony had taught it.
8168 <quote>Teach
</quote> here has a special meaning. Aibos are just cute computers.
8169 You teach a computer how to do something by programming it
8170 differently. So to say that aibopet.com was giving information about
8171 how to teach the dog to do new tricks is just to say that aibopet.com
8172 was giving information to users of the Aibo pet about how to hack
8173 their computer
<quote>dog
</quote> to make it do new tricks (thus, aibohack.com).
8175 <indexterm><primary>hacks
</primary></indexterm>
8177 If you're not a programmer or don't know many programmers, the word
8178 <citetitle>hack
</citetitle> has a particularly unfriendly
8179 connotation. Nonprogrammers hack bushes or weeds. Nonprogrammers in
8180 horror movies do even worse. But to programmers, or coders, as I call
8181 them,
<citetitle>hack
</citetitle> is a much more positive
8182 term.
<citetitle>Hack
</citetitle> just means code that enables the
8183 program to do something it wasn't originally intended or enabled to
8184 do. If you buy a new printer for an old computer, you might find the
8185 old computer doesn't run, or
<quote>drive,
</quote> the printer. If you discovered
8186 that, you'd later be happy to discover a hack on the Net by someone
8187 who has written a driver to enable the computer to drive the printer
8191 Some hacks are easy. Some are unbelievably hard. Hackers as a
8192 community like to challenge themselves and others with increasingly
8193 difficult tasks. There's a certain respect that goes with the talent to hack
8194 well. There's a well-deserved respect that goes with the talent to hack
8198 The Aibo fan was displaying a bit of both when he hacked the program
8199 and offered to the world a bit of code that would enable the Aibo to
8200 dance jazz. The dog wasn't programmed to dance jazz. It was a clever
8201 bit of tinkering that turned the dog into a more talented creature
8202 than Sony had built.
8204 <indexterm startref='idxsonyaibo1' class='endofrange'
/>
8205 <indexterm startref='idxroboticdog1' class='endofrange'
/>
8206 <indexterm startref='idxaibo1' class='endofrange'
/>
8208 I've told this story in many contexts, both inside and outside the
8209 United States. Once I was asked by a puzzled member of the audience,
8210 is it permissible for a dog to dance jazz in the United States? We
8211 forget that stories about the backcountry still flow across much of
8214 <!-- PAGE BREAK 166 -->
8215 world. So let's just be clear before we continue: It's not a crime
8216 anywhere (anymore) to dance jazz. Nor is it a crime to teach your dog
8217 to dance jazz. Nor should it be a crime (though we don't have a lot to
8218 go on here) to teach your robot dog to dance jazz. Dancing jazz is a
8219 completely legal activity. One imagines that the owner of aibopet.com
8220 thought,
<emphasis>What possible problem could there be with teaching
8221 a robot dog to dance?
</emphasis>
8223 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>government case against
</secondary></indexterm>
8225 Let's put the dog to sleep for a minute, and turn to a pony show
—
8226 not literally a pony show, but rather a paper that a Princeton academic
8227 named Ed Felten prepared for a conference. This Princeton academic
8228 is well known and respected. He was hired by the government in the
8229 Microsoft case to test Microsoft's claims about what could and could
8230 not be done with its own code. In that trial, he demonstrated both his
8231 brilliance and his coolness. Under heavy badgering by Microsoft
8232 lawyers, Ed Felten stood his ground. He was not about to be bullied
8233 into being silent about something he knew very well.
8236 But Felten's bravery was really tested in April
2001.
<footnote><para>
8238 See Pamela Samuelson,
<quote>Anticircumvention Rules: Threat to Science,
</quote>
8239 <citetitle>Science
</citetitle> 293 (
2001):
2028; Brendan I. Koerner,
<quote>Play Dead: Sony Muzzles
8240 the Techies Who Teach a Robot Dog New Tricks,
</quote> <citetitle>American Prospect
</citetitle>,
8241 January
2002;
<quote>Court Dismisses Computer Scientists' Challenge to
8242 DMCA,
</quote> <citetitle>Intellectual Property Litigation Reporter
</citetitle>,
11 December
2001; Bill
8243 Holland,
<quote>Copyright Act Raising Free-Speech Concerns,
</quote> <citetitle>Billboard
</citetitle>,
8244 May
2001; Janelle Brown,
<quote>Is the RIAA Running Scared?
</quote> Salon.com,
8245 April
2001; Electronic Frontier Foundation,
<quote>Frequently Asked
8246 Questions about
<citetitle>Felten and USENIX
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>RIAA
</citetitle> Legal Case,
</quote> available at
8247 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
27</ulink>.
8248 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation
</primary></indexterm>
8250 He and a group of colleagues were working on a paper to be submitted
8251 at conference. The paper was intended to describe the weakness in an
8252 encryption system being developed by the Secure Digital Music
8253 Initiative as a technique to control the distribution of music.
8256 The SDMI coalition had as its goal a technology to enable content
8257 owners to exercise much better control over their content than the
8258 Internet, as it originally stood, granted them. Using encryption, SDMI
8259 hoped to develop a standard that would allow the content owner to say
8260 <quote>this music cannot be copied,
</quote> and have a computer respect that
8261 command. The technology was to be part of a
<quote>trusted system
</quote> of
8262 control that would get content owners to trust the system of the
8266 When SDMI thought it was close to a standard, it set up a competition.
8267 In exchange for providing contestants with the code to an
8268 SDMI-encrypted bit of content, contestants were to try to crack it
8269 and, if they did, report the problems to the consortium.
8272 <!-- PAGE BREAK 167 -->
8273 Felten and his team figured out the encryption system quickly. He and
8274 the team saw the weakness of this system as a type: Many encryption
8275 systems would suffer the same weakness, and Felten and his team
8276 thought it worthwhile to point this out to those who study encryption.
8279 Let's review just what Felten was doing. Again, this is the United
8280 States. We have a principle of free speech. We have this principle not
8281 just because it is the law, but also because it is a really great
8282 idea. A strongly protected tradition of free speech is likely to
8283 encourage a wide range of criticism. That criticism is likely, in
8284 turn, to improve the systems or people or ideas criticized.
8287 What Felten and his colleagues were doing was publishing a paper
8288 describing the weakness in a technology. They were not spreading free
8289 music, or building and deploying this technology. The paper was an
8290 academic essay, unintelligible to most people. But it clearly showed the
8291 weakness in the SDMI system, and why SDMI would not, as presently
8292 constituted, succeed.
8294 <indexterm id='idxaibo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8295 <indexterm id='idxroboticdog2' class='startofrange'
><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8296 <indexterm id='idxsonyaibo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8298 What links these two, aibopet.com and Felten, is the letters they
8299 then received. Aibopet.com received a letter from Sony about the
8300 aibopet.com hack. Though a jazz-dancing dog is perfectly legal, Sony
8305 Your site contains information providing the means to circumvent
8306 AIBO-ware's copy protection protocol constituting a violation of the
8307 anti-circumvention provisions of the Digital Millennium Copyright Act.
8310 <indexterm startref='idxsonyaibo2' class='endofrange'
/>
8311 <indexterm startref='idxroboticdog2' class='endofrange'
/>
8312 <indexterm startref='idxaibo2' class='endofrange'
/>
8314 And though an academic paper describing the weakness in a system
8315 of encryption should also be perfectly legal, Felten received a letter
8316 from an RIAA lawyer that read:
8320 Any disclosure of information gained from participating in the
8321 <!-- PAGE BREAK 168 -->
8322 Public Challenge would be outside the scope of activities permitted by
8323 the Agreement and could subject you and your research team to actions
8324 under the Digital Millennium Copyright Act (
<quote>DMCA
</quote>).
8328 In both cases, this weirdly Orwellian law was invoked to control the
8329 spread of information. The Digital Millennium Copyright Act made
8330 spreading such information an offense.
8333 The DMCA was enacted as a response to copyright owners' first fear
8334 about cyberspace. The fear was that copyright control was effectively
8335 dead; the response was to find technologies that might compensate.
8336 These new technologies would be copyright protection
8337 technologies
— technologies to control the replication and
8338 distribution of copyrighted material. They were designed as
8339 <emphasis>code
</emphasis> to modify the original
8340 <emphasis>code
</emphasis> of the Internet, to reestablish some
8341 protection for copyright owners.
8344 The DMCA was a bit of law intended to back up the protection of this
8345 code designed to protect copyrighted material. It was, we could say,
8346 <emphasis>legal code
</emphasis> intended to buttress
8347 <emphasis>software code
</emphasis> which itself was intended to
8348 support the
<emphasis>legal code of copyright
</emphasis>.
8351 But the DMCA was not designed merely to protect copyrighted works to
8352 the extent copyright law protected them. Its protection, that is, did
8353 not end at the line that copyright law drew. The DMCA regulated
8354 devices that were designed to circumvent copyright protection
8355 measures. It was designed to ban those devices, whether or not the use
8356 of the copyrighted material made possible by that circumvention would
8357 have been a copyright violation.
8359 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8360 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8361 <indexterm><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8363 Aibopet.com and Felten make the point. The Aibo hack circumvented a
8364 copyright protection system for the purpose of enabling the dog to
8365 dance jazz. That enablement no doubt involved the use of copyrighted
8366 material. But as aibopet.com's site was noncommercial, and the use did
8367 not enable subsequent copyright infringements, there's no doubt that
8368 aibopet.com's hack was fair use of Sony's copyrighted material. Yet
8369 fair use is not a defense to the DMCA. The question is not whether the
8370 <!-- PAGE BREAK 169 -->
8371 use of the copyrighted material was a copyright violation. The question
8372 is whether a copyright protection system was circumvented.
8375 The threat against Felten was more attenuated, but it followed the
8376 same line of reasoning. By publishing a paper describing how a
8377 copyright protection system could be circumvented, the RIAA lawyer
8378 suggested, Felten himself was distributing a circumvention technology.
8379 Thus, even though he was not himself infringing anyone's copyright,
8380 his academic paper was enabling others to infringe others' copyright.
8382 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
8383 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
8385 The bizarreness of these arguments is captured in a cartoon drawn in
8386 1981 by Paul Conrad. At that time, a court in California had held that
8387 the VCR could be banned because it was a copyright-infringing
8388 technology: It enabled consumers to copy films without the permission
8389 of the copyright owner. No doubt there were uses of the technology
8390 that were legal: Fred Rogers, aka
<quote><citetitle>Mr. Rogers
</citetitle>,
</quote>
8391 for example, had testified in that case that he wanted people to feel
8392 free to tape Mr. Rogers' Neighborhood.
8393 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8397 Some public stations, as well as commercial stations, program the
8398 <quote>Neighborhood
</quote> at hours when some children cannot use it. I think that
8399 it's a real service to families to be able to record such programs and
8400 show them at appropriate times. I have always felt that with the
8401 advent of all of this new technology that allows people to tape the
8402 <quote>Neighborhood
</quote> off-the-air, and I'm speaking for the
<quote>Neighborhood
</quote>
8403 because that's what I produce, that they then become much more active
8404 in the programming of their family's television life. Very frankly, I
8405 am opposed to people being programmed by others. My whole approach in
8406 broadcasting has always been
<quote>You are an important person just the way
8407 you are. You can make healthy decisions.
</quote> Maybe I'm going on too long,
8408 but I just feel that anything that allows a person to be more active
8409 in the control of his or her life, in a healthy way, is
8410 important.
<footnote><para>
8412 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
8413 <citetitle>Sony Corporation of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
8414 455 fn.
27 (
1984). Rogers never changed his view about the VCR. See
8415 James Lardner,
<citetitle>Fast Forward: Hollywood, the Japanese, and the Onslaught of
8416 the VCR
</citetitle> (New York: W. W. Norton,
1987),
270–71.
8417 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
8422 <!-- PAGE BREAK 170 -->
8423 Even though there were uses that were legal, because there were
8424 some uses that were illegal, the court held the companies producing
8425 the VCR responsible.
8428 This led Conrad to draw the cartoon in figure
8429 <xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n"
8430 linkend=
"fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig"/>, which we can adopt to the
8432 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8435 No argument I have can top this picture, but let me try to get close.
8437 <figure id=
"fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig" float=
"1">
8438 <title>— On which item have the courts ruled that manufacturers and
8439 retailers be held responsible for having supplied the
8441 <graphic fileref=
"images/vcr-comic.png" align=
"center" width=
"65%"></graphic>
8444 The anticircumvention provisions of the DMCA target copyright
8445 circumvention technologies. Circumvention technologies can be used for
8446 different ends. They can be used, for example, to enable massive
8447 pirating of copyrighted material
—a bad end. Or they can be used
8448 to enable the use of particular copyrighted materials in ways that
8449 would be considered fair use
—a good end.
8451 <indexterm id='idxhandguns' class='startofrange'
><primary>handguns
</primary></indexterm>
8453 A handgun can be used to shoot a police officer or a child. Most
8454 <!-- PAGE BREAK 171 -->
8455 would agree such a use is bad. Or a handgun can be used for target
8456 practice or to protect against an intruder. At least some would say that
8457 such a use would be good. It, too, is a technology that has both good
8460 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8462 The obvious point of Conrad's cartoon is the weirdness of a world
8463 where guns are legal, despite the harm they can do, while VCRs (and
8464 circumvention technologies) are illegal. Flash:
<emphasis>No one ever
8465 died from copyright circumvention
</emphasis>. Yet the law bans circumvention
8466 technologies absolutely, despite the potential that they might do some
8467 good, but permits guns, despite the obvious and tragic harm they do.
8469 <indexterm startref='idxhandguns' class='endofrange'
/>
8470 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs2' class='endofrange'
/>
8471 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8472 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8473 <indexterm><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8475 The Aibo and RIAA examples demonstrate how copyright owners are
8476 changing the balance that copyright law grants. Using code, copyright
8477 owners restrict fair use; using the DMCA, they punish those who would
8478 attempt to evade the restrictions on fair use that they impose through
8479 code. Technology becomes a means by which fair use can be erased; the
8480 law of the DMCA backs up that erasing.
8483 This is how
<emphasis>code
</emphasis> becomes
8484 <emphasis>law
</emphasis>. The controls built into the technology of
8485 copy and access protection become rules the violation of which is also
8486 a violation of the law. In this way, the code extends the
8487 law
—increasing its regulation, even if the subject it regulates
8488 (activities that would otherwise plainly constitute fair use) is
8489 beyond the reach of the law. Code becomes law; code extends the law;
8490 code thus extends the control that copyright owners effect
—at
8491 least for those copyright holders with the lawyers who can write the
8492 nasty letters that Felten and aibopet.com received.
8495 There is one final aspect of the interaction between architecture and
8496 law that contributes to the force of copyright's regulation. This is
8497 the ease with which infringements of the law can be detected. For
8498 contrary to the rhetoric common at the birth of cyberspace that on the
8499 Internet, no one knows you're a dog, increasingly, given changing
8500 technologies deployed on the Internet, it is easy to find the dog who
8501 committed a legal wrong. The technologies of the Internet are open to
8502 snoops as well as sharers, and the snoops are increasingly good at
8503 tracking down the identity of those who violate the rules.
8507 <!-- PAGE BREAK 172 -->
8508 For example, imagine you were part of a
<citetitle>Star Trek
</citetitle> fan club. You
8509 gathered every month to share trivia, and maybe to enact a kind of fan
8510 fiction about the show. One person would play Spock, another, Captain
8511 Kirk. The characters would begin with a plot from a real story, then
8512 simply continue it.
<footnote><para>
8514 For an early and prescient analysis, see Rebecca Tushnet,
<quote>Legal Fictions,
8515 Copyright, Fan Fiction, and a New Common Law,
</quote> <citetitle>Loyola of Los Angeles
8516 Entertainment Law Journal
</citetitle> 17 (
1997):
651.
8520 Before the Internet, this was, in effect, a totally unregulated
8521 activity. No matter what happened inside your club room, you would
8522 never be interfered with by the copyright police. You were free in
8523 that space to do as you wished with this part of our culture. You were
8524 allowed to build on it as you wished without fear of legal control.
8526 <indexterm><primary>bots
</primary></indexterm>
8528 But if you moved your club onto the Internet, and made it generally
8529 available for others to join, the story would be very different. Bots
8530 scouring the Net for trademark and copyright infringement would
8531 quickly find your site. Your posting of fan fiction, depending upon
8532 the ownership of the series that you're depicting, could well inspire
8533 a lawyer's threat. And ignoring the lawyer's threat would be extremely
8534 costly indeed. The law of copyright is extremely efficient. The
8535 penalties are severe, and the process is quick.
8538 This change in the effective force of the law is caused by a change
8539 in the ease with which the law can be enforced. That change too shifts
8540 the law's balance radically. It is as if your car transmitted the speed at
8541 which you traveled at every moment that you drove; that would be just
8542 one step before the state started issuing tickets based upon the data you
8543 transmitted. That is, in effect, what is happening here.
8546 <section id=
"marketconcentration">
8547 <title>Market: Concentration
</title>
8549 So copyright's duration has increased dramatically
—tripled in
8550 the past thirty years. And copyright's scope has increased as
8551 well
—from regulating only publishers to now regulating just
8552 about everyone. And copyright's reach has changed, as every action
8553 becomes a copy and hence presumptively regulated. And as technologists
8555 <!-- PAGE BREAK 173 -->
8556 to control the use of content, and as copyright is increasingly
8557 enforced through technology, copyright's force changes, too. Misuse is
8558 easier to find and easier to control. This regulation of the creative
8559 process, which began as a tiny regulation governing a tiny part of the
8560 market for creative work, has become the single most important
8561 regulator of creativity there is. It is a massive expansion in the
8562 scope of the government's control over innovation and creativity; it
8563 would be totally unrecognizable to those who gave birth to copyright's
8567 Still, in my view, all of these changes would not matter much if it
8568 weren't for one more change that we must also consider. This is a
8569 change that is in some sense the most familiar, though its significance
8570 and scope are not well understood. It is the one that creates precisely the
8571 reason to be concerned about all the other changes I have described.
8574 This is the change in the concentration and integration of the media.
8575 In the past twenty years, the nature of media ownership has undergone
8576 a radical alteration, caused by changes in legal rules governing the
8577 media. Before this change happened, the different forms of media were
8578 owned by separate media companies. Now, the media is increasingly
8579 owned by only a few companies. Indeed, after the changes that the FCC
8580 announced in June
2003, most expect that within a few years, we will
8581 live in a world where just three companies control more than
85 percent
8585 These changes are of two sorts: the scope of concentration, and its
8588 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
8589 <indexterm><primary>BMG
</primary></indexterm>
8590 <indexterm><primary>EMI
</primary></indexterm>
8591 <indexterm><primary>McCain, John
</primary></indexterm>
8592 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
8593 <indexterm><primary>Warner Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
8595 Changes in scope are the easier ones to describe. As Senator John
8596 McCain summarized the data produced in the FCC's review of media
8597 ownership,
<quote>five companies control
85 percent of our media sources.
</quote><footnote><para>
8599 FCC Oversight: Hearing Before the Senate Commerce, Science and
8600 Transportation Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st sess. (
22 May
2003)
8601 (statement of Senator John McCain).
</para></footnote>
8602 The five recording labels of Universal Music Group, BMG, Sony Music
8603 Entertainment, Warner Music Group, and EMI control
84.8 percent of the
8604 U.S. music market.
<footnote><para>
8606 Lynette Holloway,
<quote>Despite a Marketing Blitz, CD Sales Continue to
8607 Slide,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
23 December
2002.
8609 The
<quote>five largest cable companies pipe
8610 programming to
74 percent of the cable subscribers nationwide.
</quote><footnote><para>
8612 Molly Ivins,
<quote>Media Consolidation Must Be Stopped,
</quote> <citetitle>Charleston Gazette
</citetitle>,
8617 The story with radio is even more dramatic. Before deregulation,
8618 the nation's largest radio broadcasting conglomerate owned fewer than
8619 <!-- PAGE BREAK 174 -->
8620 seventy-five stations. Today
<emphasis>one
</emphasis> company owns
8621 more than
1,
200 stations. During that period of consolidation, the
8622 total number of radio owners dropped by
34 percent. Today, in most
8623 markets, the two largest broadcasters control
74 percent of that
8624 market's revenues. Overall, just four companies control
90 percent of
8625 the nation's radio advertising revenues.
8627 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
8629 Newspaper ownership is becoming more concentrated as well. Today,
8630 there are six hundred fewer daily newspapers in the United States than
8631 there were eighty years ago, and ten companies control half of the
8632 nation's circulation. There are twenty major newspaper publishers in
8633 the United States. The top ten film studios receive
99 percent of all
8634 film revenue. The ten largest cable companies account for
85 percent
8635 of all cable revenue. This is a market far from the free press the
8636 framers sought to protect. Indeed, it is a market that is quite well
8637 protected
— by the market.
8639 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James
</primary></indexterm>
8641 Concentration in size alone is one thing. The more invidious
8642 change is in the nature of that concentration. As author James Fallows
8643 put it in a recent article about Rupert Murdoch,
8647 Murdoch's companies now constitute a production system
8648 unmatched in its integration. They supply content
—Fox movies
8649 … Fox TV shows
… Fox-controlled sports broadcasts, plus
8650 newspapers and books. They sell the content to the public and to
8651 advertisers
—in newspapers, on the broadcast network, on the
8652 cable channels. And they operate the physical distribution system
8653 through which the content reaches the customers. Murdoch's satellite
8654 systems now distribute News Corp. content in Europe and Asia; if
8655 Murdoch becomes DirecTV's largest single owner, that system will serve
8656 the same function in the United States.
<footnote><para>
8658 James Fallows,
<quote>The Age of Murdoch,
</quote> <citetitle>Atlantic Monthly
</citetitle> (September
8660 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James
</primary></indexterm>
8665 The pattern with Murdoch is the pattern of modern media. Not
8666 just large companies owning many radio stations, but a few companies
8667 owning as many outlets of media as possible. A picture describes this
8668 pattern better than a thousand words could do:
8670 <figure id=
"fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership">
8672 <graphic fileref=
"images/pattern-modern-media-ownership.png" align=
"center" width=
"100%"></graphic>
8675 <!-- PAGE BREAK 175 -->
8676 Does this concentration matter? Will it affect what is made, or
8677 what is distributed? Or is it merely a more efficient way to produce and
8681 My view was that concentration wouldn't matter. I thought it was
8682 nothing more than a more efficient financial structure. But now, after
8683 reading and listening to a barrage of creators try to convince me to the
8684 contrary, I am beginning to change my mind.
8687 Here's a representative story that begins to suggest how this
8688 integration may matter.
8690 <indexterm><primary>Lear, Norman
</primary></indexterm>
8691 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
8692 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family
</primary></indexterm>
8694 In
1969, Norman Lear created a pilot for
<citetitle>All in the Family
</citetitle>. He took
8695 the pilot to ABC. The network didn't like it. It was too edgy, they told
8696 Lear. Make it again. Lear made a second pilot, more edgy than the
8697 first. ABC was exasperated. You're missing the point, they told Lear.
8698 We wanted less edgy, not more.
8701 Rather than comply, Lear simply took the show elsewhere. CBS
8702 was happy to have the series; ABC could not stop Lear from walking.
8703 The copyrights that Lear held assured an independence from network
8704 control.
<footnote><para>
8706 Leonard Hill,
<quote>The Axis of Access,
</quote> remarks before Weidenbaum Center
8707 Forum,
<quote>Entertainment Economics: The Movie Industry,
</quote> St. Louis,
8708 Missouri,
3 April
2003 (transcript of prepared remarks available at
8709 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
28</ulink>;
8710 for the Lear story, not included in the prepared remarks, see
8711 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
29</ulink>).
8716 <!-- PAGE BREAK 176 -->
8717 The network did not control those copyrights because the law forbade
8718 the networks from controlling the content they syndicated. The law
8719 required a separation between the networks and the content producers;
8720 that separation would guarantee Lear freedom. And as late as
1992,
8721 because of these rules, the vast majority of prime time
8722 television
—75 percent of it
—was
<quote>independent
</quote> of the
8726 In
1994, the FCC abandoned the rules that required this independence.
8727 After that change, the networks quickly changed the balance. In
1985,
8728 there were twenty-five independent television production studios; in
8729 2002, only five independent television studios remained.
<quote>In
1992,
8730 only
15 percent of new series were produced for a network by a company
8731 it controlled. Last year, the percentage of shows produced by
8732 controlled companies more than quintupled to
77 percent.
</quote> <quote>In
1992,
16
8733 new series were produced independently of conglomerate control, last
8734 year there was one.
</quote><footnote><para>
8736 NewsCorp./DirecTV Merger and Media Consolidation: Hearings on Media
8737 Ownership Before the Senate Commerce Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st
8738 sess. (
2003) (testimony of Gene Kimmelman on behalf of Consumers Union
8739 and the Consumer Federation of America), available at
8740 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
30</ulink>. Kimmelman
8741 quotes Victoria Riskin, president of Writers Guild of America, West,
8742 in her Remarks at FCC En Banc Hearing, Richmond, Virginia,
27 February
8745 In
2002,
75 percent of prime time television was owned by the networks
8746 that ran it.
<quote>In the ten-year period between
1992 and
2002, the number
8747 of prime time television hours per week produced by network studios
8748 increased over
200%, whereas the number of prime time television hours
8749 per week produced by independent studios decreased
8750 63%.
</quote><footnote><para>
8755 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family
</primary></indexterm>
8757 Today, another Norman Lear with another
<citetitle>All in the Family
</citetitle> would
8758 find that he had the choice either to make the show less edgy or to be
8759 fired: The content of any show developed for a network is increasingly
8760 owned by the network.
8762 <indexterm><primary>Diller, Barry
</primary></indexterm>
8763 <indexterm><primary>Moyers, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
8765 While the number of channels has increased dramatically, the ownership
8766 of those channels has narrowed to an ever smaller and smaller few. As
8767 Barry Diller said to Bill Moyers,
8771 Well, if you have companies that produce, that finance, that air on
8772 their channel and then distribute worldwide everything that goes
8773 through their controlled distribution system, then what you get is
8774 fewer and fewer actual voices participating in the process. [We
8775 <!-- PAGE BREAK 177 -->
8776 u]sed to have dozens and dozens of thriving independent production
8777 companies producing television programs. Now you have less than a
8778 handful.
<footnote><para>
8780 <quote>Barry Diller Takes on Media Deregulation,
</quote> <citetitle>Now with Bill Moyers
</citetitle>, Bill
8781 Moyers,
25 April
2003, edited transcript available at
8782 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
31</ulink>.
8787 This narrowing has an effect on what is produced. The product of such
8788 large and concentrated networks is increasingly homogenous.
8789 Increasingly safe. Increasingly sterile. The product of news shows
8790 from networks like this is increasingly tailored to the message the
8791 network wants to convey. This is not the communist party, though from
8792 the inside, it must feel a bit like the communist party. No one can
8793 question without risk of consequence
—not necessarily banishment
8794 to Siberia, but punishment nonetheless. Independent, critical,
8795 different views are quashed. This is not the environment for a
8798 <indexterm><primary>Clark, Kim B.
</primary></indexterm>
8800 Economics itself offers a parallel that explains why this integration
8801 affects creativity. Clay Christensen has written about the
<quote>Innovator's
8802 Dilemma
</quote>: the fact that large traditional firms find it rational to ignore
8803 new, breakthrough technologies that compete with their core business.
8804 The same analysis could help explain why large, traditional media
8805 companies would find it rational to ignore new cultural trends.
<footnote><para>
8807 Clayton M. Christensen,
<citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The
8808 Revolutionary National Bestseller that Changed the Way We Do Business
</citetitle>
8809 (Cambridge: Harvard Business School Press,
1997). Christensen
8810 acknowledges that the idea was first suggested by Dean Kim Clark. See
8811 Kim B. Clark,
<quote>The Interaction of Design Hierarchies and Market
8812 Concepts in Technological Evolution,
</quote> <citetitle>Research Policy
</citetitle> 14 (
1985):
8813 235–51. For a more recent study, see Richard Foster and Sarah
8814 Kaplan,
<citetitle>Creative Destruction: Why Companies That Are Built to Last
8815 Underperform the Market
—and How to Successfully Transform Them
</citetitle>
8816 (New York: Currency/Doubleday,
2001).
</para></footnote>
8818 Lumbering giants not only don't, but should not, sprint. Yet if the
8819 field is only open to the giants, there will be far too little
8821 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.
</primary></indexterm>
8824 I don't think we know enough about the economics of the media
8825 market to say with certainty what concentration and integration will
8826 do. The efficiencies are important, and the effect on culture is hard to
8830 But there is a quintessentially obvious example that does strongly
8831 suggest the concern.
8834 In addition to the copyright wars, we're in the middle of the drug
8835 wars. Government policy is strongly directed against the drug cartels;
8836 criminal and civil courts are filled with the consequences of this battle.
8839 Let me hereby disqualify myself from any possible appointment to
8840 any position in government by saying I believe this war is a profound
8841 mistake. I am not pro drugs. Indeed, I come from a family once
8843 <!-- PAGE BREAK 178 -->
8844 wrecked by drugs
—though the drugs that wrecked my family were
8845 all quite legal. I believe this war is a profound mistake because the
8846 collateral damage from it is so great as to make waging the war
8847 insane. When you add together the burdens on the criminal justice
8848 system, the desperation of generations of kids whose only real
8849 economic opportunities are as drug warriors, the queering of
8850 constitutional protections because of the constant surveillance this
8851 war requires, and, most profoundly, the total destruction of the legal
8852 systems of many South American nations because of the power of the
8853 local drug cartels, I find it impossible to believe that the marginal
8854 benefit in reduced drug consumption by Americans could possibly
8855 outweigh these costs.
8858 You may not be convinced. That's fine. We live in a democracy, and it
8859 is through votes that we are to choose policy. But to do that, we
8860 depend fundamentally upon the press to help inform Americans about
8863 <indexterm id='idxadvertising3' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
8864 <indexterm id='idxcommercials' class='startofrange'
><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
8865 <indexterm id='idxtelevisionadvertisingon' class='startofrange'
><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
8866 <indexterm><primary>Nick and Norm anti-drug campaign
</primary></indexterm>
8868 Beginning in
1998, the Office of National Drug Control Policy launched
8869 a media campaign as part of the
<quote>war on drugs.
</quote> The campaign produced
8870 scores of short film clips about issues related to illegal drugs. In
8871 one series (the Nick and Norm series) two men are in a bar, discussing
8872 the idea of legalizing drugs as a way to avoid some of the collateral
8873 damage from the war. One advances an argument in favor of drug
8874 legalization. The other responds in a powerful and effective way
8875 against the argument of the first. In the end, the first guy changes
8876 his mind (hey, it's television). The plug at the end is a damning
8877 attack on the pro-legalization campaign.
8880 Fair enough. It's a good ad. Not terribly misleading. It delivers its
8881 message well. It's a fair and reasonable message.
8884 But let's say you think it is a wrong message, and you'd like to run a
8885 countercommercial. Say you want to run a series of ads that try to
8886 demonstrate the extraordinary collateral harm that comes from the drug
8890 Well, obviously, these ads cost lots of money. Assume you raise the
8891 <!-- PAGE BREAK 179 -->
8892 money. Assume a group of concerned citizens donates all the money in
8893 the world to help you get your message out. Can you be sure your
8894 message will be heard then?
8896 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
8897 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
8898 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on television advertising bans
</secondary></indexterm>
8899 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>controversy avoided by
</secondary></indexterm>
8901 No. You cannot. Television stations have a general policy of avoiding
8902 <quote>controversial
</quote> ads. Ads sponsored by the government are deemed
8903 uncontroversial; ads disagreeing with the government are
8904 controversial. This selectivity might be thought inconsistent with
8905 the First Amendment, but the Supreme Court has held that stations have
8906 the right to choose what they run. Thus, the major channels of
8907 commercial media will refuse one side of a crucial debate the
8908 opportunity to present its case. And the courts will defend the
8909 rights of the stations to be this biased.
<footnote><para>
8911 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
8912 <indexterm><primary>Comcast
</primary></indexterm>
8913 <indexterm><primary>Marijuana Policy Project
</primary></indexterm>
8914 <indexterm><primary>NBC
</primary></indexterm>
8915 <indexterm><primary>WJOA
</primary></indexterm>
8916 <indexterm><primary>WRC
</primary></indexterm>
8917 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
8918 The Marijuana Policy Project, in February
2003, sought to place ads
8919 that directly responded to the Nick and Norm series on stations within
8920 the Washington, D.C., area. Comcast rejected the ads as
<quote>against
8921 [their] policy.
</quote> The local NBC affiliate, WRC, rejected the ads
8922 without reviewing them. The local ABC affiliate, WJOA, originally
8923 agreed to run the ads and accepted payment to do so, but later decided
8924 not to run the ads and returned the collected fees. Interview with
8925 Neal Levine,
15 October
2003. These restrictions are, of course, not
8926 limited to drug policy. See, for example, Nat Ives,
<quote>On the
8927 Issue of an Iraq War, Advocacy Ads Meet with Rejection from TV
8928 Networks,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
13 March
8929 2003, C4. Outside of election-related air time there is very little
8930 that the FCC or the courts are willing to do to even the playing
8931 field. For a general overview, see Rhonda Brown,
<quote>Ad Hoc Access:
8932 The Regulation of Editorial Advertising on Television and
8933 Radio,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law and Policy Review
</citetitle> 6
8934 (
1988):
449–79, and for a more recent summary of the stance of
8935 the FCC and the courts, see
<citetitle>Radio-Television News Directors
8936 Association
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>FCC
</citetitle>,
184 F.
3d
872
8937 (D.C. Cir.
1999). Municipal authorities exercise the same authority as
8938 the networks. In a recent example from San Francisco, the San
8939 Francisco transit authority rejected an ad that criticized its Muni
8940 diesel buses. Phillip Matier and Andrew Ross,
<quote>Antidiesel Group
8941 Fuming After Muni Rejects Ad,
</quote> SFGate.com,
16 June
2003,
8942 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
8943 #
32</ulink>. The ground was that the criticism was
<quote>too
8944 controversial.
</quote>
8947 <indexterm startref='idxcommercials' class='endofrange'
/>
8948 <indexterm startref='idxtelevisionadvertisingon' class='endofrange'
/>
8950 I'd be happy to defend the networks' rights, as well
—if we lived
8951 in a media market that was truly diverse. But concentration in the
8952 media throws that condition into doubt. If a handful of companies
8953 control access to the media, and that handful of companies gets to
8954 decide which political positions it will allow to be promoted on its
8955 channels, then in an obvious and important way, concentration
8956 matters. You might like the positions the handful of companies
8957 selects. But you should not like a world in which a mere few get to
8958 decide which issues the rest of us get to know about.
8960 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising3' class='endofrange'
/>
8962 <section id=
"together">
8963 <title>Together
</title>
8965 There is something innocent and obvious about the claim of the
8966 copyright warriors that the government should
<quote>protect my property.
</quote>
8967 In the abstract, it is obviously true and, ordinarily, totally
8968 harmless. No sane sort who is not an anarchist could disagree.
8971 But when we see how dramatically this
<quote>property
</quote> has changed
—
8972 when we recognize how it might now interact with both technology and
8973 markets to mean that the effective constraint on the liberty to
8974 cultivate our culture is dramatically different
—the claim begins
8977 <!-- PAGE BREAK 180 -->
8978 less innocent and obvious. Given (
1) the power of technology to
8979 supplement the law's control, and (
2) the power of concentrated
8980 markets to weaken the opportunity for dissent, if strictly enforcing
8981 the massively expanded
<quote>property
</quote> rights granted by copyright
8982 fundamentally changes the freedom within this culture to cultivate and
8983 build upon our past, then we have to ask whether this property should
8987 Not starkly. Or absolutely. My point is not that we should abolish
8988 copyright or go back to the eighteenth century. That would be a total
8989 mistake, disastrous for the most important creative enterprises within
8993 But there is a space between zero and one, Internet culture
8994 notwithstanding. And these massive shifts in the effective power of
8995 copyright regulation, tied to increased concentration of the content
8996 industry and resting in the hands of technology that will increasingly
8997 enable control over the use of culture, should drive us to consider
8998 whether another adjustment is called for. Not an adjustment that
8999 increases copyright's power. Not an adjustment that increases its
9000 term. Rather, an adjustment to restore the balance that has
9001 traditionally defined copyright's regulation
—a weakening of that
9002 regulation, to strengthen creativity.
9005 Copyright law has not been a rock of Gibraltar. It's not a set of
9006 constant commitments that, for some mysterious reason, teenagers and
9007 geeks now flout. Instead, copyright power has grown dramatically in a
9008 short period of time, as the technologies of distribution and creation
9009 have changed and as lobbyists have pushed for more control by
9010 copyright holders. Changes in the past in response to changes in
9011 technology suggest that we may well need similar changes in the
9012 future. And these changes have to be
<emphasis>reductions
</emphasis>
9013 in the scope of copyright, in response to the extraordinary increase
9014 in control that technology and the market enable.
9017 For the single point that is lost in this war on pirates is a point that
9018 we see only after surveying the range of these changes. When you add
9019 <!-- PAGE BREAK 181 -->
9020 together the effect of changing law, concentrated markets, and
9021 changing technology, together they produce an astonishing conclusion:
9022 <emphasis>Never in our history have fewer had a legal right to control
9023 more of the development of our culture than now
</emphasis>.
9026 Not when copyrights were perpetual, for when copyrights were
9027 perpetual, they affected only that precise creative work. Not when
9028 only publishers had the tools to publish, for the market then was much
9029 more diverse. Not when there were only three television networks, for
9030 even then, newspapers, film studios, radio stations, and publishers
9031 were independent of the networks.
<emphasis>Never
</emphasis> has
9032 copyright protected such a wide range of rights, against as broad a
9033 range of actors, for a term that was remotely as long. This form of
9034 regulation
—a tiny regulation of a tiny part of the creative
9035 energy of a nation at the founding
—is now a massive regulation
9036 of the overall creative process. Law plus technology plus the market
9037 now interact to turn this historically benign regulation into the most
9038 significant regulation of culture that our free society has
9039 known.
<footnote><para>
9041 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
9042 Siva Vaidhyanathan captures a similar point in his
<quote>four surrenders
</quote> of
9043 copyright law in the digital age. See Vaidhyanathan,
159–60.
9047 <emphasis role='strong'
>This has been
</emphasis> a long chapter. Its
9048 point can now be briefly stated.
9051 At the start of this book, I distinguished between commercial and
9052 noncommercial culture. In the course of this chapter, I have
9053 distinguished between copying a work and transforming it. We can now
9054 combine these two distinctions and draw a clear map of the changes
9055 that copyright law has undergone. In
1790, the law looked like this:
9058 <informaltable id=
"t2">
9059 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9063 <entry>PUBLISH
</entry>
9064 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9069 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9070 <entry>©</entry>
9074 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9083 The act of publishing a map, chart, and book was regulated by
9084 copyright law. Nothing else was. Transformations were free. And as
9085 copyright attached only with registration, and only those who intended
9087 <!-- PAGE BREAK 182 -->
9088 to benefit commercially would register, copying through publishing of
9089 noncommercial work was also free.
9092 By the end of the nineteenth century, the law had changed to this:
9095 <informaltable id=
"t3">
9096 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9100 <entry>PUBLISH
</entry>
9101 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9106 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9107 <entry>©</entry>
9108 <entry>©</entry>
9111 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9120 Derivative works were now regulated by copyright law
—if
9121 published, which again, given the economics of publishing at the time,
9122 means if offered commercially. But noncommercial publishing and
9123 transformation were still essentially free.
9126 In
1909 the law changed to regulate copies, not publishing, and after
9127 this change, the scope of the law was tied to technology. As the
9128 technology of copying became more prevalent, the reach of the law
9129 expanded. Thus by
1975, as photocopying machines became more common,
9130 we could say the law began to look like this:
9133 <informaltable id=
"t4">
9134 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9139 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9144 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9145 <entry>©</entry>
9146 <entry>©</entry>
9149 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9150 <entry>© / Free
</entry>
9158 The law was interpreted to reach noncommercial copying through, say,
9159 copy machines, but still much of copying outside of the commercial
9160 market remained free. But the consequence of the emergence of digital
9161 technologies, especially in the context of a digital network, means
9162 that the law now looks like this:
9165 <informaltable id=
"t5">
9166 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9171 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9176 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9177 <entry>©</entry>
9178 <entry>©</entry>
9181 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9182 <entry>©</entry>
9183 <entry>©</entry>
9190 Every realm is governed by copyright law, whereas before most
9191 creativity was not. The law now regulates the full range of
9193 <!-- PAGE BREAK 183 -->
9194 commercial or not, transformative or not
—with the same rules
9195 designed to regulate commercial publishers.
9198 Obviously, copyright law is not the enemy. The enemy is regulation
9199 that does no good. So the question that we should be asking just now
9200 is whether extending the regulations of copyright law into each of
9201 these domains actually does any good.
9204 I have no doubt that it does good in regulating commercial copying.
9205 But I also have no doubt that it does more harm than good when
9206 regulating (as it regulates just now) noncommercial copying and,
9207 especially, noncommercial transformation. And increasingly, for the
9208 reasons sketched especially in chapters
9209 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"recorders"/> and
9210 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"transformers"/>, one
9211 might well wonder whether it does more harm than good for commercial
9212 transformation. More commercial transformative work would be created
9213 if derivative rights were more sharply restricted.
9216 The issue is therefore not simply whether copyright is property. Of
9217 course copyright is a kind of
<quote>property,
</quote> and of course, as with any
9218 property, the state ought to protect it. But first impressions
9219 notwithstanding, historically, this property right (as with all
9220 property rights
<footnote><para>
9222 <indexterm><primary>legal realist movement
</primary></indexterm>
9223 It was the single most important contribution of the legal realist
9224 movement to demonstrate that all property rights are always crafted to
9225 balance public and private interests. See Thomas C. Grey,
<quote>The
9226 Disintegration of Property,
</quote> in
<citetitle>Nomos XXII: Property
</citetitle>, J. Roland
9227 Pennock and John W. Chapman, eds. (New York: New York University
9230 has been crafted to balance the important need to give authors and
9231 artists incentives with the equally important need to assure access to
9232 creative work. This balance has always been struck in light of new
9233 technologies. And for almost half of our tradition, the
<quote>copyright
</quote>
9234 did not control
<emphasis>at all
</emphasis> the freedom of others to
9235 build upon or transform a creative work. American culture was born
9236 free, and for almost
180 years our country consistently protected a
9237 vibrant and rich free culture.
9239 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
9241 We achieved that free culture because our law respected important
9242 limits on the scope of the interests protected by
<quote>property.
</quote> The very
9243 birth of
<quote>copyright
</quote> as a statutory right recognized those limits, by
9244 granting copyright owners protection for a limited time only (the
9245 story of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9246 linkend=
"founders"/>). The tradition of
<quote>fair use
</quote> is
9247 animated by a similar concern that is increasingly under strain as the
9248 costs of exercising any fair use right become unavoidably high (the
9249 story of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9250 linkend=
"recorders"/>). Adding
9251 <!-- PAGE BREAK 184 -->
9252 statutory rights where markets might stifle innovation is another
9253 familiar limit on the property right that copyright is (chapter
<xref
9254 xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"transformers"/>). And
9255 granting archives and libraries a broad freedom to collect, claims of
9256 property notwithstanding, is a crucial part of guaranteeing the soul
9257 of a culture (chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9258 linkend=
"collectors"/>). Free cultures, like free markets, are built
9259 with property. But the nature of the property that builds a free
9260 culture is very different from the extremist vision that dominates the
9264 Free culture is increasingly the casualty in this war on piracy. In
9265 response to a real, if not yet quantified, threat that the
9266 technologies of the Internet present to twentieth-century business
9267 models for producing and distributing culture, the law and technology
9268 are being transformed in a way that will undermine our tradition of
9269 free culture. The property right that is copyright is no longer the
9270 balanced right that it was, or was intended to be. The property right
9271 that is copyright has become unbalanced, tilted toward an extreme. The
9272 opportunity to create and transform becomes weakened in a world in
9273 which creation requires permission and creativity must check with a
9276 <!-- PAGE BREAK 185 -->
9280 <part id=
"c-puzzles">
9281 <title>Puzzles
</title>
9283 <!-- PAGE BREAK 186 -->
9284 <chapter label=
"11" id=
"chimera">
9285 <title>Chapter Eleven: Chimera
</title>
9286 <indexterm id='idxchimera' class='startofrange'
><primary>chimeras
</primary></indexterm>
9287 <indexterm id='idxwells' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wells, H. G.
</primary></indexterm>
9288 <indexterm id='idxtcotb' class='startofrange'
><primary><quote>Country of the Blind, The
</quote> (Wells)
</primary></indexterm>
9291 <emphasis role='strong'
>In a well-known
</emphasis> short story by
9292 H. G. Wells, a mountain climber named Nunez trips (literally, down an
9293 ice slope) into an unknown and isolated valley in the Peruvian
9294 Andes.
<footnote><para>
9296 H. G. Wells,
<quote>The Country of the Blind
</quote> (
1904,
1911). See H. G. Wells,
9297 <citetitle>The Country of the Blind and Other Stories
</citetitle>, Michael Sherborne, ed. (New
9298 York: Oxford University Press,
1996).
9300 The valley is extraordinarily beautiful, with
<quote>sweet water, pasture,
9301 an even climate, slopes of rich brown soil with tangles of a shrub
9302 that bore an excellent fruit.
</quote> But the villagers are all blind. Nunez
9303 takes this as an opportunity.
<quote>In the Country of the Blind,
</quote> he tells
9304 himself,
<quote>the One-Eyed Man is King.
</quote> So he resolves to live with the
9305 villagers to explore life as a king.
9308 Things don't go quite as he planned. He tries to explain the idea of
9309 sight to the villagers. They don't understand. He tells them they are
9310 <quote>blind.
</quote> They don't have the word
<citetitle>blind
</citetitle>. They think he's just thick.
9311 Indeed, as they increasingly notice the things he can't do (hear the
9312 sound of grass being stepped on, for example), they increasingly try
9313 to control him. He, in turn, becomes increasingly frustrated.
<quote>`You
9314 don't understand,' he cried, in a voice that was meant to be great and
9315 resolute, and which broke. `You are blind and I can see. Leave me
9319 <!-- PAGE BREAK 187 -->
9320 The villagers don't leave him alone. Nor do they see (so to speak) the
9321 virtue of his special power. Not even the ultimate target of his
9322 affection, a young woman who to him seems
<quote>the most beautiful thing in
9323 the whole of creation,
</quote> understands the beauty of sight. Nunez's
9324 description of what he sees
<quote>seemed to her the most poetical of
9325 fancies, and she listened to his description of the stars and the
9326 mountains and her own sweet white-lit beauty as though it was a guilty
9327 indulgence.
</quote> <quote>She did not believe,
</quote> Wells tells us, and
<quote>she could
9328 only half understand, but she was mysteriously delighted.
</quote>
9331 When Nunez announces his desire to marry his
<quote>mysteriously delighted
</quote>
9332 love, the father and the village object.
<quote>You see, my dear,
</quote> her
9333 father instructs,
<quote>he's an idiot. He has delusions. He can't do
9334 anything right.
</quote> They take Nunez to the village doctor.
9337 After a careful examination, the doctor gives his opinion.
<quote>His brain
9338 is affected,
</quote> he reports.
9341 <quote>What affects it?
</quote> the father asks.
<quote>Those queer things that are
9342 called the eyes
… are diseased
… in such a way as to affect
9346 The doctor continues:
<quote>I think I may say with reasonable certainty
9347 that in order to cure him completely, all that we need to do is a
9348 simple and easy surgical operation
—namely, to remove these
9349 irritant bodies [the eyes].
</quote>
9352 <quote>Thank Heaven for science!
</quote> says the father to the doctor. They inform
9353 Nunez of this condition necessary for him to be allowed his bride.
9354 (You'll have to read the original to learn what happens in the end. I
9355 believe in free culture, but never in giving away the end of a story.)
9358 <emphasis role='strong'
>It sometimes
</emphasis> happens that the eggs
9359 of twins fuse in the mother's womb. That fusion produces a
9360 <quote>chimera.
</quote> A chimera is a single creature with two sets
9361 of DNA. The DNA in the blood, for example, might be different from the
9362 DNA of the skin. This possibility is an underused
9364 <!-- PAGE BREAK 188 -->
9365 plot for murder mysteries.
<quote>But the DNA shows with
100 percent
9366 certainty that she was not the person whose blood was at the
9367 scene.
…</quote>
9369 <indexterm startref='idxtcotb' class='endofrange'
/>
9370 <indexterm startref='idxwells'
class=
"endofrange"/>
9372 Before I had read about chimeras, I would have said they were
9373 impossible. A single person can't have two sets of DNA. The very idea
9374 of DNA is that it is the code of an individual. Yet in fact, not only
9375 can two individuals have the same set of DNA (identical twins), but
9376 one person can have two different sets of DNA (a chimera). Our
9377 understanding of a
<quote>person
</quote> should reflect this reality.
9380 The more I work to understand the current struggle over copyright and
9381 culture, which I've sometimes called unfairly, and sometimes not
9382 unfairly enough,
<quote>the copyright wars,
</quote> the more I think we're dealing
9383 with a chimera. For example, in the battle over the question
<quote>What is
9384 p2p file sharing?
</quote> both sides have it right, and both sides have it
9385 wrong. One side says,
<quote>File sharing is just like two kids taping each
9386 others' records
—the sort of thing we've been doing for the last
9387 thirty years without any question at all.
</quote> That's true, at least in
9388 part. When I tell my best friend to try out a new CD that I've bought,
9389 but rather than just send the CD, I point him to my p2p server, that
9390 is, in all relevant respects, just like what every executive in every
9391 recording company no doubt did as a kid: sharing music.
9394 But the description is also false in part. For when my p2p server is
9395 on a p2p network through which anyone can get access to my music, then
9396 sure, my friends can get access, but it stretches the meaning of
9397 <quote>friends
</quote> beyond recognition to say
<quote>my ten thousand best friends
</quote> can
9398 get access. Whether or not sharing my music with my best friend is
9399 what
<quote>we have always been allowed to do,
</quote> we have not always been
9400 allowed to share music with
<quote>our ten thousand best friends.
</quote>
9403 Likewise, when the other side says,
<quote>File sharing is just like walking
9404 into a Tower Records and taking a CD off the shelf and walking out
9405 with it,
</quote> that's true, at least in part. If, after Lyle Lovett
9406 (finally) releases a new album, rather than buying it, I go to Kazaa
9407 and find a free copy to take, that is very much like stealing a copy
9409 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
9413 <!-- PAGE BREAK 189 -->
9414 But it is not quite stealing from Tower. After all, when I take a CD
9415 from Tower Records, Tower has one less CD to sell. And when I take a
9416 CD from Tower Records, I get a bit of plastic and a cover, and
9417 something to show on my shelves. (And, while we're at it, we could
9418 also note that when I take a CD from Tower Records, the maximum fine
9419 that might be imposed on me, under California law, at least, is
9420 $
1,
000. According to the RIAA, by contrast, if I download a ten-song
9421 CD, I'm liable for $
1,
500,
000 in damages.)
9424 The point is not that it is as neither side describes. The point is
9425 that it is both
—both as the RIAA describes it and as Kazaa
9426 describes it. It is a chimera. And rather than simply denying what the
9427 other side asserts, we need to begin to think about how we should
9428 respond to this chimera. What rules should govern it?
9431 We could respond by simply pretending that it is not a chimera. We
9432 could, with the RIAA, decide that every act of file sharing should be
9433 a felony. We could prosecute families for millions of dollars in
9434 damages just because file sharing occurred on a family computer. And
9435 we can get universities to monitor all computer traffic to make sure
9436 that no computer is used to commit this crime. These responses might
9437 be extreme, but each of them has either been proposed or actually
9438 implemented.
<footnote><para>
9440 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
9441 For an excellent summary, see the report prepared by GartnerG2 and the
9442 Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School,
9443 <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> 27 June
2003,
9445 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
9446 #
33</ulink>. Reps. John Conyers Jr. (D-Mich.) and Howard L. Berman
9447 (D-Calif.) have introduced a bill that would treat unauthorized
9448 on-line copying as a felony offense with punishments ranging as high
9449 as five years imprisonment; see Jon Healey,
<quote>House Bill Aims to Up
9450 Stakes on Piracy,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
17 July
2003, available at
9451 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
34</ulink>. Civil
9452 penalties are currently set at $
150,
000 per copied song. For a recent
9453 (and unsuccessful) legal challenge to the RIAA's demand that an ISP
9454 reveal the identity of a user accused of sharing more than
600 songs
9455 through a family computer, see
<citetitle>RIAA
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Verizon Internet Services (In
9456 re. Verizon Internet Services)
</citetitle>,
240 F. Supp.
2d
24
9457 (D.D.C.
2003). Such a user could face liability ranging as high as $
90
9458 million. Such astronomical figures furnish the RIAA with a powerful
9459 arsenal in its prosecution of file sharers. Settlements ranging from
9460 $
12,
000 to $
17,
500 for four students accused of heavy file sharing on
9461 university networks must have seemed a mere pittance next to the $
98
9462 billion the RIAA could seek should the matter proceed to court. See
9463 Elizabeth Young,
<quote>Downloading Could Lead to Fines,
</quote> redandblack.com,
9464 August
2003, available at
9465 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
35</ulink>. For an
9466 example of the RIAA's targeting of student file sharing, and of the
9467 subpoenas issued to universities to reveal student file-sharer
9468 identities, see James Collins,
<quote>RIAA Steps Up Bid to Force BC, MIT to
9469 Name Students,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
8 August
2003, D3, available at
9470 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
36</ulink>.
9471 <indexterm><primary>Conyers, John, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
9472 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.
</primary></indexterm>
9476 <indexterm startref='idxchimera' class='endofrange'
/>
9478 Alternatively, we could respond to file sharing the way many kids act
9479 as though we've responded. We could totally legalize it. Let there be
9480 no copyright liability, either civil or criminal, for making
9481 copyrighted content available on the Net. Make file sharing like
9482 gossip: regulated, if at all, by social norms but not by law.
9485 Either response is possible. I think either would be a mistake.
9486 Rather than embrace one of these two extremes, we should embrace
9487 something that recognizes the truth in both. And while I end this book
9488 with a sketch of a system that does just that, my aim in the next
9489 chapter is to show just how awful it would be for us to adopt the
9490 zero-tolerance extreme. I believe
<emphasis>either
</emphasis> extreme
9491 would be worse than a reasonable alternative. But I believe the
9492 zero-tolerance solution would be the worse of the two extremes.
9496 <!-- PAGE BREAK 190 -->
9497 Yet zero tolerance is increasingly our government's policy. In the
9498 middle of the chaos that the Internet has created, an extraordinary
9499 land grab is occurring. The law and technology are being shifted to
9500 give content holders a kind of control over our culture that they have
9501 never had before. And in this extremism, many an opportunity for new
9502 innovation and new creativity will be lost.
9505 I'm not talking about the opportunities for kids to
<quote>steal
</quote> music. My
9506 focus instead is the commercial and cultural innovation that this war
9507 will also kill. We have never seen the power to innovate spread so
9508 broadly among our citizens, and we have just begun to see the
9509 innovation that this power will unleash. Yet the Internet has already
9510 seen the passing of one cycle of innovation around technologies to
9511 distribute content. The law is responsible for this passing. As the
9512 vice president for global public policy at one of these new
9513 innovators, eMusic.com, put it when criticizing the DMCA's added
9514 protection for copyrighted material,
9518 eMusic opposes music piracy. We are a distributor of copyrighted
9519 material, and we want to protect those rights.
9522 But building a technology fortress that locks in the clout of the
9523 major labels is by no means the only way to protect copyright
9524 interests, nor is it necessarily the best. It is simply too early to
9525 answer that question. Market forces operating naturally may very well
9526 produce a totally different industry model.
9529 This is a critical point. The choices that industry sectors make
9530 with respect to these systems will in many ways directly shape the
9531 market for digital media and the manner in which digital media
9532 are distributed. This in turn will directly influence the options
9533 that are available to consumers, both in terms of the ease with
9534 which they will be able to access digital media and the equipment
9535 that they will require to do so. Poor choices made this early in the
9536 game will retard the growth of this market, hurting everyone's
9537 interests.
<footnote><para>
9539 WIPO and the DMCA One Year Later: Assessing Consumer Access to Digital
9540 Entertainment on the Internet and Other Media: Hearing Before the
9541 Subcommittee on Telecommunications, Trade, and Consumer Protection,
9542 House Committee on Commerce,
106th Cong.
29 (
1999) (statement of Peter
9543 Harter, vice president, Global Public Policy and Standards,
9544 EMusic.com), available in LEXIS, Federal Document Clearing House
9545 Congressional Testimony File.
</para></footnote>
9548 <!-- PAGE BREAK 191 -->
9550 In April
2001, eMusic.com was purchased by Vivendi Universal,
9551 one of
<quote>the major labels.
</quote> Its position on these matters has now
9553 <indexterm><primary>Vivendi Universal
</primary></indexterm>
9556 Reversing our tradition of tolerance now will not merely quash
9557 piracy. It will sacrifice values that are important to this culture,
9558 and will kill opportunities that could be extraordinarily valuable.
9561 <!-- PAGE BREAK 192 -->
9563 <chapter label=
"12" id=
"harms">
9564 <title>Chapter Twelve: Harms
</title>
9566 <emphasis role='strong'
>To fight
</emphasis> <quote>piracy,
</quote> to
9567 protect
<quote>property,
</quote> the content industry has launched a
9568 war. Lobbying and lots of campaign contributions have now brought the
9569 government into this war. As with any war, this one will have both
9570 direct and collateral damage. As with any war of prohibition, these
9571 damages will be suffered most by our own people.
9574 My aim so far has been to describe the consequences of this war, in
9575 particular, the consequences for
<quote>free culture.
</quote> But my aim now is to
9576 extend this description of consequences into an argument. Is this war
9580 In my view, it is not. There is no good reason why this time, for the
9581 first time, the law should defend the old against the new, just when the
9582 power of the property called
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> is at its greatest in
9585 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
9586 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
9588 Yet
<quote>common sense
</quote> does not see it this way. Common sense is still on
9589 the side of the Causbys and the content industry. The extreme claims
9590 of control in the name of property still resonate; the uncritical
9591 rejection of
<quote>piracy
</quote> still has play.
9593 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
9595 <!-- PAGE BREAK 193 -->
9596 There will be many consequences of continuing this war. I want to
9597 describe just three. All three might be said to be unintended. I am quite
9598 confident the third is unintended. I'm less sure about the first two. The
9599 first two protect modern RCAs, but there is no Howard Armstrong in
9600 the wings to fight today's monopolists of culture.
9602 <section id=
"constrain">
9603 <title>Constraining Creators
</title>
9605 In the next ten years we will see an explosion of digital
9606 technologies. These technologies will enable almost anyone to capture
9607 and share content. Capturing and sharing content, of course, is what
9608 humans have done since the dawn of man. It is how we learn and
9609 communicate. But capturing and sharing through digital technology is
9610 different. The fidelity and power are different. You could send an
9611 e-mail telling someone about a joke you saw on Comedy Central, or you
9612 could send the clip. You could write an essay about the
9613 inconsistencies in the arguments of the politician you most love to
9614 hate, or you could make a short film that puts statement against
9615 statement. You could write a poem to express your love, or you could
9616 weave together a string
—a mash-up
— of songs from your
9617 favorite artists in a collage and make it available on the Net.
9620 This digital
<quote>capturing and sharing
</quote> is in part an extension of the
9621 capturing and sharing that has always been integral to our culture,
9622 and in part it is something new. It is continuous with the Kodak, but
9623 it explodes the boundaries of Kodak-like technologies. The technology
9624 of digital
<quote>capturing and sharing
</quote> promises a world of extraordinarily
9625 diverse creativity that can be easily and broadly shared. And as that
9626 creativity is applied to democracy, it will enable a broad range of
9627 citizens to use technology to express and criticize and contribute to
9628 the culture all around.
9631 Technology has thus given us an opportunity to do something with
9632 culture that has only ever been possible for individuals in small groups,
9634 <!-- PAGE BREAK 194 -->
9636 isolated from others. Think about an old man telling a story to a
9637 collection of neighbors in a small town. Now imagine that same
9638 storytelling extended across the globe.
9641 Yet all this is possible only if the activity is presumptively legal. In
9642 the current regime of legal regulation, it is not. Forget file sharing for
9643 a moment. Think about your favorite amazing sites on the Net. Web
9644 sites that offer plot summaries from forgotten television shows; sites
9645 that catalog cartoons from the
1960s; sites that mix images and sound
9646 to criticize politicians or businesses; sites that gather newspaper articles
9647 on remote topics of science or culture. There is a vast amount of creative
9648 work spread across the Internet. But as the law is currently crafted, this
9649 work is presumptively illegal.
9651 <indexterm><primary>WorldCom
</primary></indexterm>
9652 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
9653 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
9654 <indexterm><primary>doctors malpractice claims against
</primary></indexterm>
9655 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
9657 That presumption will increasingly chill creativity, as the
9658 examples of extreme penalties for vague infringements continue to
9659 proliferate. It is impossible to get a clear sense of what's allowed
9660 and what's not, and at the same time, the penalties for crossing the
9661 line are astonishingly harsh. The four students who were threatened
9662 by the RIAA (Jesse Jordan of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select:
9663 labelnumber" linkend=
"catalogs"/> was just one) were threatened with a
9664 $
98 billion lawsuit for building search engines that permitted songs
9665 to be copied. Yet World-Com
—which defrauded investors of $
11
9666 billion, resulting in a loss to investors in market capitalization of
9667 over $
200 billion
—received a fine of a mere $
750
9668 million.
<footnote><para>
9670 See Lynne W. Jeter,
<citetitle>Disconnected: Deceit and Betrayal at WorldCom
</citetitle>
9671 (Hoboken, N.J.: John Wiley
& Sons,
2003),
176,
204; for details of
9672 the settlement, see MCI press release,
<quote>MCI Wins U.S. District Court
9673 Approval for SEC Settlement
</quote> (
7 July
2003), available at
9674 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
37</ulink>.
9675 <indexterm><primary>WorldCom
</primary></indexterm>
9677 And under legislation being pushed in Congress right now, a doctor who
9678 negligently removes the wrong leg in an operation would be liable for
9679 no more than $
250,
000 in damages for pain and
9680 suffering.
<footnote>
9682 <!-- f2. --> The bill, modeled after California's tort reform model, was passed in the
9683 House of Representatives but defeated in a Senate vote in July
2003. For
9684 an overview, see Tanya Albert,
<quote>Measure Stalls in Senate: `We'll Be Back,'
9685 Say Tort Reformers,
</quote> amednews.com,
28 July
2003, available at
9686 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
38</ulink>,
9687 and
<quote>Senate Turns Back Malpractice Caps,
</quote> CBSNews.com,
9 July
2003,
9689 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
39</ulink>. President Bush has continued to urge tort reform in
9691 <indexterm><primary>Bush, George W.
</primary></indexterm>
9693 Can common sense recognize the absurdity in a world where
9694 the maximum fine for downloading two songs off the Internet is more
9695 than the fine for a doctor's negligently butchering a patient?
9697 <indexterm><primary>art, underground
</primary></indexterm>
9699 The consequence of this legal uncertainty, tied to these extremely
9700 high penalties, is that an extraordinary amount of creativity will
9701 either never be exercised, or never be exercised in the open. We drive
9702 this creative process underground by branding the modern-day Walt
9703 Disneys
<quote>pirates.
</quote> We make it impossible for businesses to rely upon a
9704 public domain, because the boundaries of the public domain are
9707 <!-- PAGE BREAK 195 -->
9708 be unclear. It never pays to do anything except pay for the right
9709 to create, and hence only those who can pay are allowed to create. As
9710 was the case in the Soviet Union, though for very different reasons,
9711 we will begin to see a world of underground art
—not because the
9712 message is necessarily political, or because the subject is
9713 controversial, but because the very act of creating the art is legally
9714 fraught. Already, exhibits of
<quote>illegal art
</quote> tour the United
9715 States.
<footnote><para>
9718 See Danit Lidor,
<quote>Artists Just Wanna Be Free,
</quote> <citetitle>Wired
</citetitle>,
7 July
9720 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
40</ulink>. For an overview of the exhibition, see
9721 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
41</ulink>.
9723 In what does their
<quote>illegality
</quote> consist?
9724 In the act of mixing the culture around us with an expression that is
9725 critical or reflective.
9727 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
9729 Part of the reason for this fear of illegality has to do with the
9730 changing law. I described that change in detail in chapter
9731 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>. But an
9732 even bigger part has to do with the increasing ease with which
9733 infractions can be tracked. As users of file-sharing systems
9734 discovered in
2002, it is a trivial matter for copyright owners to get
9735 courts to order Internet service providers to reveal who has what
9736 content. It is as if your cassette tape player transmitted a list of
9737 the songs that you played in the privacy of your own home that anyone
9738 could tune into for whatever reason they chose.
9740 <indexterm><primary>images, ownership of
</primary></indexterm>
9742 Never in our history has a painter had to worry about whether
9743 his painting infringed on someone else's work; but the modern-day
9744 painter, using the tools of Photoshop, sharing content on the Web,
9745 must worry all the time. Images are all around, but the only safe images
9746 to use in the act of creation are those purchased from Corbis or another
9747 image farm. And in purchasing, censoring happens. There is a free
9748 market in pencils; we needn't worry about its effect on creativity. But
9749 there is a highly regulated, monopolized market in cultural icons; the
9750 right to cultivate and transform them is not similarly free.
9753 Lawyers rarely see this because lawyers are rarely empirical. As I
9754 described in chapter
9755 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"recorders"/>, in
9756 response to the story about documentary filmmaker Jon Else, I have
9757 been lectured again and again by lawyers who insist Else's use was
9758 fair use, and hence I am wrong to say that the law regulates such a
9763 <!-- PAGE BREAK 196 -->
9764 But fair use in America simply means the right to hire a lawyer to
9765 defend your right to create. And as lawyers love to forget, our system
9766 for defending rights such as fair use is astonishingly bad
—in
9767 practically every context, but especially here. It costs too much, it
9768 delivers too slowly, and what it delivers often has little connection
9769 to the justice underlying the claim. The legal system may be tolerable
9770 for the very rich. For everyone else, it is an embarrassment to a
9771 tradition that prides itself on the rule of law.
9774 Judges and lawyers can tell themselves that fair use provides adequate
9775 <quote>breathing room
</quote> between regulation by the law and the access the law
9776 should allow. But it is a measure of how out of touch our legal system
9777 has become that anyone actually believes this. The rules that
9778 publishers impose upon writers, the rules that film distributors
9779 impose upon filmmakers, the rules that newspapers impose upon
9780 journalists
— these are the real laws governing creativity. And
9781 these rules have little relationship to the
<quote>law
</quote> with which judges
9785 For in a world that threatens $
150,
000 for a single willful
9786 infringement of a copyright, and which demands tens of thousands of
9787 dollars to even defend against a copyright infringement claim, and
9788 which would never return to the wrongfully accused defendant anything
9789 of the costs she suffered to defend her right to speak
—in that
9790 world, the astonishingly broad regulations that pass under the name
9791 <quote>copyright
</quote> silence speech and creativity. And in that world, it takes
9792 a studied blindness for people to continue to believe they live in a
9793 culture that is free.
9796 As Jed Horovitz, the businessman behind Video Pipeline, said to me,
9800 We're losing [creative] opportunities right and left. Creative people
9801 are being forced not to express themselves. Thoughts are not being
9802 expressed. And while a lot of stuff may [still] be created, it still
9803 won't get distributed. Even if the stuff gets made
… you're not
9804 going to get it distributed in the mainstream media unless
9805 <!-- PAGE BREAK 197 -->
9806 you've got a little note from a lawyer saying,
<quote>This has been
9807 cleared.
</quote> You're not even going to get it on PBS without that kind of
9808 permission. That's the point at which they control it.
9812 <section id=
"innovators">
9813 <title>Constraining Innovators
</title>
9814 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawinnovationhamperedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>innovation hampered by
</secondary></indexterm>
9815 <indexterm id='idxinnovationindustryestablishmentopposedto2' class='startofrange'
><primary>innovation
</primary><secondary>industry establishment opposed to
</secondary></indexterm>
9816 <indexterm id='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism2' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>as establishment protectionism
</secondary></indexterm>
9818 The story of the last section was a crunchy-lefty
9819 story
—creativity quashed, artists who can't speak, yada yada
9820 yada. Maybe that doesn't get you going. Maybe you think there's enough
9821 weird art out there, and enough expression that is critical of what
9822 seems to be just about everything. And if you think that, you might
9823 think there's little in this story to worry you.
9825 <indexterm id='idxmarketconstraints2' class='startofrange'
><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
9827 But there's an aspect of this story that is not lefty in any sense.
9828 Indeed, it is an aspect that could be written by the most extreme
9829 promarket ideologue. And if you're one of these sorts (and a special
9830 one at that,
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: pagenumber"
9831 linkend=
"innovators"/> pages into a book like this), then you
9832 can see this other aspect by substituting
<quote>free market
</quote>
9833 every place I've spoken of
<quote>free culture.
</quote> The point is
9834 the same, even if the interests affecting culture are more
9838 The charge I've been making about the regulation of culture is the
9839 same charge free marketers make about regulating markets. Everyone, of
9840 course, concedes that some regulation of markets is necessary
—at
9841 a minimum, we need rules of property and contract, and courts to
9842 enforce both. Likewise, in this culture debate, everyone concedes that
9843 at least some framework of copyright is also required. But both
9844 perspectives vehemently insist that just because some regulation is
9845 good, it doesn't follow that more regulation is better. And both
9846 perspectives are constantly attuned to the ways in which regulation
9847 simply enables the powerful industries of today to protect themselves
9848 against the competitors of tomorrow.
9850 <indexterm startref='idxmarketconstraints2' class='endofrange'
/>
9851 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9852 <indexterm><primary>venture capitalists
</primary></indexterm>
9854 This is the single most dramatic effect of the shift in regulatory
9855 <!-- PAGE BREAK 198 -->
9856 strategy that I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select:
9857 labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>. The consequence of this massive
9858 threat of liability tied to the murky boundaries of copyright law is
9859 that innovators who want to innovate in this space can safely innovate
9860 only if they have the sign-off from last generation's dominant
9861 industries. That lesson has been taught through a series of cases
9862 that were designed and executed to teach venture capitalists a
9863 lesson. That lesson
—what former Napster CEO Hank Barry calls a
9864 <quote>nuclear pall
</quote> that has fallen over the Valley
—has been learned.
9866 <indexterm><primary>Future of Ideas, The (Lessig)
</primary></indexterm>
9867 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
9869 Consider one example to make the point, a story whose beginning
9870 I told in
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle> and which has progressed in a way that
9871 even I (pessimist extraordinaire) would never have predicted.
9873 <indexterm id='idxmpcom' class='startofrange'
><primary>MP3.com
</primary></indexterm>
9874 <indexterm id='idxmympcom' class='startofrange'
><primary>my.mp3.com
</primary></indexterm>
9875 <indexterm><primary>Roberts, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
9877 In
1997, Michael Roberts launched a company called MP3.com. MP3.com
9878 was keen to remake the music business. Their goal was not just to
9879 facilitate new ways to get access to content. Their goal was also to
9880 facilitate new ways to create content. Unlike the major labels,
9881 MP3.com offered creators a venue to distribute their creativity,
9882 without demanding an exclusive engagement from the creators.
9884 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
9885 <indexterm id='idxcdsprefdata' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>preference data on
</secondary></indexterm>
9887 To make this system work, however, MP3.com needed a reliable way to
9888 recommend music to its users. The idea behind this alternative was to
9889 leverage the revealed preferences of music listeners to recommend new
9890 artists. If you like Lyle Lovett, you're likely to enjoy Bonnie
9894 This idea required a simple way to gather data about user preferences.
9895 MP3.com came up with an extraordinarily clever way to gather this
9896 preference data. In January
2000, the company launched a service
9897 called my.mp3.com. Using software provided by MP3.com, a user would
9898 sign into an account and then insert into her computer a CD. The
9899 software would identify the CD, and then give the user access to that
9900 content. So, for example, if you inserted a CD by Jill Sobule, then
9901 wherever you were
—at work or at home
—you could get access
9902 to that music once you signed into your account. The system was
9903 therefore a kind of music-lockbox.
9906 No doubt some could use this system to illegally copy content. But
9907 that opportunity existed with or without MP3.com. The aim of the
9909 <!-- PAGE BREAK 199 -->
9910 my.mp3.com service was to give users access to their own content, and
9911 as a by-product, by seeing the content they already owned, to discover
9912 the kind of content the users liked.
9914 <indexterm startref='idxcdsprefdata' class='endofrange'
/>
9916 To make this system function, however, MP3.com needed to copy
50,
000
9917 CDs to a server. (In principle, it could have been the user who
9918 uploaded the music, but that would have taken a great deal of time,
9919 and would have produced a product of questionable quality.) It
9920 therefore purchased
50,
000 CDs from a store, and started the process
9921 of making copies of those CDs. Again, it would not serve the content
9922 from those copies to anyone except those who authenticated that they
9923 had a copy of the CD they wanted to access. So while this was
50,
000
9924 copies, it was
50,
000 copies directed at giving customers something
9925 they had already bought.
9927 <indexterm id='idxvivendiuniversal' class='startofrange'
><primary>Vivendi Universal
</primary></indexterm>
9928 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>distribution technology targeted in
</secondary></indexterm>
9929 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
9930 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
9931 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits of
</secondary></indexterm>
9932 <indexterm><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits filed by
</secondary></indexterm>
9933 <indexterm><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>outsize penalties of
</secondary></indexterm>
9935 Nine days after MP3.com launched its service, the five major labels,
9936 headed by the RIAA, brought a lawsuit against MP3.com. MP3.com settled
9937 with four of the five. Nine months later, a federal judge found
9938 MP3.com to have been guilty of willful infringement with respect to
9939 the fifth. Applying the law as it is, the judge imposed a fine against
9940 MP3.com of $
118 million. MP3.com then settled with the remaining
9941 plaintiff, Vivendi Universal, paying over $
54 million. Vivendi
9942 purchased MP3.com just about a year later.
9945 That part of the story I have told before. Now consider its conclusion.
9948 After Vivendi purchased MP3.com, Vivendi turned around and filed a
9949 malpractice lawsuit against the lawyers who had advised it that they
9950 had a good faith claim that the service they wanted to offer would be
9951 considered legal under copyright law. This lawsuit alleged that it
9952 should have been obvious that the courts would find this behavior
9953 illegal; therefore, this lawsuit sought to punish any lawyer who had
9954 dared to suggest that the law was less restrictive than the labels
9957 <indexterm startref='idxvivendiuniversal' class='endofrange'
/>
9959 The clear purpose of this lawsuit (which was settled for an
9960 unspecified amount shortly after the story was no longer covered in
9961 the press) was to send an unequivocal message to lawyers advising
9963 <!-- PAGE BREAK 200 -->
9964 space: It is not just your clients who might suffer if the content
9965 industry directs its guns against them. It is also you. So those of
9966 you who believe the law should be less restrictive should realize that
9967 such a view of the law will cost you and your firm dearly.
9969 <indexterm startref='idxmpcom' class='endofrange'
/>
9970 <indexterm startref='idxmympcom' class='endofrange'
/>
9971 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry3' class='endofrange'
/>
9972 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9973 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>distribution technology targeted in
</secondary></indexterm>
9974 <indexterm id='idxbmw' class='startofrange'
><primary>BMW
</primary></indexterm>
9975 <indexterm id='idxcarsmpsoundsystemsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>cars, MP3 sound systems in
</primary></indexterm>
9976 <indexterm><primary>EMI
</primary></indexterm>
9977 <indexterm><primary>Hummer, John
</primary></indexterm>
9978 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9979 <indexterm><primary>Hummer Winblad
</primary></indexterm>
9980 <indexterm><primary>MP3 players
</primary></indexterm>
9981 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary><secondary>venture capital for
</secondary></indexterm>
9982 <indexterm id='idxneedlemanrafe' class='startofrange'
><primary>Needleman, Rafe
</primary></indexterm>
9983 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
9984 <indexterm><primary>venture capitalists
</primary></indexterm>
9986 This strategy is not just limited to the lawyers. In April
2003,
9987 Universal and EMI brought a lawsuit against Hummer Winblad, the
9988 venture capital firm (VC) that had funded Napster at a certain stage of
9989 its development, its cofounder (John Hummer), and general partner
9990 (Hank Barry).
<footnote><para>
9992 See Joseph Menn,
<quote>Universal, EMI Sue Napster Investor,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9993 Times
</citetitle>,
23 April
2003. For a parallel argument about the effects on
9994 innovation in the distribution of music, see Janelle Brown,
<quote>The Music
9995 Revolution Will Not Be Digitized,
</quote> Salon.com,
1 June
2001, available
9996 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
42</ulink>.
9997 See also Jon Healey,
<quote>Online Music Services Besieged,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9998 Times
</citetitle>,
28 May
2001.
10000 The claim here, as well, was that the VC should have recognized the
10001 right of the content industry to control how the industry should
10002 develop. They should be held personally liable for funding a company
10003 whose business turned out to be beyond the law. Here again, the aim of
10004 the lawsuit is transparent: Any VC now recognizes that if you fund a
10005 company whose business is not approved of by the dinosaurs, you are at
10006 risk not just in the marketplace, but in the courtroom as well. Your
10007 investment buys you not only a company, it also buys you a lawsuit.
10008 So extreme has the environment become that even car manufacturers are
10009 afraid of technologies that touch content. In an article in
10010 <citetitle>Business
2.0</citetitle>, Rafe Needleman describes a
10011 discussion with BMW:
10015 I asked why, with all the storage capacity and computer power in
10016 the car, there was no way to play MP3 files. I was told that BMW
10017 engineers in Germany had rigged a new vehicle to play MP3s via
10018 the car's built-in sound system, but that the company's marketing
10019 and legal departments weren't comfortable with pushing this
10020 forward for release stateside. Even today, no new cars are sold in the
10021 United States with bona fide MP3 players.
… <footnote>
10024 Rafe Needleman,
<quote>Driving in Cars with MP3s,
</quote> <citetitle>Business
2.0</citetitle>,
16 June
10026 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
43</ulink>. I am grateful
10027 to Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli for this example.
10028 <indexterm><primary>Needleman, Rafe
</primary></indexterm>
10032 <indexterm startref='idxbmw' class='endofrange'
/>
10033 <indexterm startref='idxcarsmpsoundsystemsin' class='endofrange'
/>
10034 <indexterm startref='idxneedlemanrafe' class='endofrange'
/>
10036 This is the world of the mafia
—filled with
<quote>your money or your
10037 life
</quote> offers, governed in the end not by courts but by the threats
10038 that the law empowers copyright holders to exercise. It is a system
10039 that will obviously and necessarily stifle new innovation. It is hard
10040 enough to start a company. It is impossibly hard if that company is
10041 constantly threatened by litigation.
10045 <!-- PAGE BREAK 201 -->
10046 The point is not that businesses should have a right to start illegal
10047 enterprises. The point is the definition of
<quote>illegal.
</quote> The law is a
10048 mess of uncertainty. We have no good way to know how it should apply
10049 to new technologies. Yet by reversing our tradition of judicial
10050 deference, and by embracing the astonishingly high penalties that
10051 copyright law imposes, that uncertainty now yields a reality which is
10052 far more conservative than is right. If the law imposed the death
10053 penalty for parking tickets, we'd not only have fewer parking tickets,
10054 we'd also have much less driving. The same principle applies to
10055 innovation. If innovation is constantly checked by this uncertain and
10056 unlimited liability, we will have much less vibrant innovation and
10057 much less creativity.
10059 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
10061 The point is directly parallel to the crunchy-lefty point about fair
10062 use. Whatever the
<quote>real
</quote> law is, realism about the effect of law in
10063 both contexts is the same. This wildly punitive system of regulation
10064 will systematically stifle creativity and innovation. It will protect
10065 some industries and some creators, but it will harm industry and
10066 creativity generally. Free market and free culture depend upon vibrant
10067 competition. Yet the effect of the law today is to stifle just this
10068 kind of competition. The effect is to produce an overregulated
10069 culture, just as the effect of too much control in the market is to
10070 produce an overregulated-regulated market.
10073 The building of a permission culture, rather than a free culture, is
10074 the first important way in which the changes I have described will
10075 burden innovation. A permission culture means a lawyer's
10076 culture
—a culture in which the ability to create requires a call
10077 to your lawyer. Again, I am not antilawyer, at least when they're kept
10078 in their proper place. I am certainly not antilaw. But our profession
10079 has lost the sense of its limits. And leaders in our profession have
10080 lost an appreciation of the high costs that our profession imposes
10081 upon others. The inefficiency of the law is an embarrassment to our
10082 tradition. And while I believe our profession should therefore do
10083 everything it can to make the law more efficient, it should at least
10084 do everything it can to limit the reach of the
10085 <!-- PAGE BREAK 202 -->
10086 law where the law is not doing any good. The transaction costs buried
10087 within a permission culture are enough to bury a wide range of
10088 creativity. Someone needs to do a lot of justifying to justify that
10092 <emphasis role='strong'
>The uncertainty
</emphasis> of the law is one
10093 burden on innovation. There is a second burden that operates more
10094 directly. This is the effort by many in the content industry to use
10095 the law to directly regulate the technology of the Internet so that it
10096 better protects their content.
10099 The motivation for this response is obvious. The Internet enables the
10100 efficient spread of content. That efficiency is a feature of the
10101 Internet's design. But from the perspective of the content industry,
10102 this feature is a
<quote>bug.
</quote> The efficient spread of content means that
10103 content distributors have a harder time controlling the distribution
10104 of content. One obvious response to this efficiency is thus to make
10105 the Internet less efficient. If the Internet enables
<quote>piracy,
</quote> then,
10106 this response says, we should break the kneecaps of the Internet.
10108 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
10110 The examples of this form of legislation are many. At the urging of
10111 the content industry, some in Congress have threatened legislation that
10112 would require computers to determine whether the content they access
10113 is protected or not, and to disable the spread of protected content.
<footnote><para>
10114 <!-- f6. --> <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> GartnerG2 and
10115 the Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School
10116 (
2003),
33–35, available at
10117 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
44</ulink>.
10119 Congress has already launched proceedings to explore a mandatory
10120 <quote>broadcast flag
</quote> that would be required on any device capable of
10121 transmitting digital video (i.e., a computer), and that would disable
10122 the copying of any content that is marked with a broadcast flag. Other
10123 members of Congress have proposed immunizing content providers from
10124 liability for technology they might deploy that would hunt down
10125 copyright violators and disable their machines.
<footnote><para>
10127 GartnerG2,
26–27.
10131 In one sense, these solutions seem sensible. If the problem is the
10132 code, why not regulate the code to remove the problem. But any
10133 regulation of technical infrastructure will always be tuned to the
10134 particular technology of the day. It will impose significant burdens
10136 <!-- PAGE BREAK 203 -->
10137 the technology, but will likely be eclipsed by advances around exactly
10138 those requirements.
10140 <indexterm><primary>Intel
</primary></indexterm>
10142 In March
2002, a broad coalition of technology companies, led by
10143 Intel, tried to get Congress to see the harm that such legislation
10144 would impose.
<footnote><para>
10146 See David McGuire,
<quote>Tech Execs Square Off Over Piracy,
</quote> Newsbytes,
10147 February
2002 (Entertainment).
10149 Their argument was obviously not that copyright should not be
10150 protected. Instead, they argued, any protection should not do more
10154 <emphasis role='strong'
>There is one
</emphasis> more obvious way in
10155 which this war has harmed innovation
—again, a story that will be
10156 quite familiar to the free market crowd.
10159 Copyright may be property, but like all property, it is also a form
10160 of regulation. It is a regulation that benefits some and harms others.
10161 When done right, it benefits creators and harms leeches. When done
10162 wrong, it is regulation the powerful use to defeat competitors.
10164 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
10165 <indexterm><primary>VCRs
</primary></indexterm>
10166 <indexterm><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
10167 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
10169 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
10170 linkend=
"property-i"/>, despite this feature of copyright as
10171 regulation, and subject to important qualifications outlined by
10172 Jessica Litman in her book
<citetitle>Digital
10173 Copyright
</citetitle>,
<footnote><para>
10175 Jessica Litman,
<citetitle>Digital Copyright
</citetitle> (Amherst,
10176 N.Y.: Prometheus Books,
2001).
10177 <indexterm><primary>Digital Copyright (Litman)
</primary></indexterm>
10178 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica
</primary></indexterm>
10180 overall this history of copyright is not bad. As chapter
10181 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/> details,
10182 when new technologies have come along, Congress has struck a balance
10183 to assure that the new is protected from the old. Compulsory, or
10184 statutory, licenses have been one part of that strategy. Free use (as
10185 in the case of the VCR) has been another.
10188 But that pattern of deference to new technologies has now changed
10189 with the rise of the Internet. Rather than striking a balance between
10190 the claims of a new technology and the legitimate rights of content
10191 creators, both the courts and Congress have imposed legal restrictions
10192 that will have the effect of smothering the new to benefit the old.
10194 <indexterm id='idxinternetradioon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>radio on
</secondary></indexterm>
10195 <indexterm id='idxradiooninternet' class='startofrange'
><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
10197 The response by the courts has been fairly universal.
<footnote><para>
10199 <indexterm><primary>Grokster, Ltd.
</primary></indexterm>
10200 The only circuit court exception is found in
<citetitle>Recording Industry
10201 Association of America (RIAA)
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Diamond Multimedia Systems
</citetitle>,
180 F.
3d
10202 1072 (
9th Cir.
1999). There the court of appeals for the Ninth Circuit
10203 reasoned that makers of a portable MP3 player were not liable for
10204 contributory copyright infringement for a device that is unable to
10205 record or redistribute music (a device whose only copying function is
10206 to render portable a music file already stored on a user's hard
10207 drive). At the district court level, the only exception is found in
10208 <citetitle>Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Grokster, Ltd
</citetitle>.,
259 F. Supp.
2d
10209 1029 (C.D. Cal.,
2003), where the court found the link between the
10210 distributor and any given user's conduct too attenuated to make the
10211 distributor liable for contributory or vicarious infringement
10214 It has been mirrored in the responses threatened and actually
10215 implemented by Congress. I won't catalog all of those responses
10216 here.
<footnote><para>
10218 <indexterm><primary>Tauzin, Billy
</primary></indexterm>
10219 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.
</primary></indexterm>
10220 <indexterm><primary>Hollings, Fritz
</primary></indexterm>
10221 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
10222 For example, in July
2002, Representative Howard Berman introduced the
10223 Peer-to-Peer Piracy Prevention Act (H.R.
5211), which would immunize
10224 copyright holders from liability for damage done to computers when the
10225 copyright holders use technology to stop copyright infringement. In
10226 August
2002, Representative Billy Tauzin introduced a bill to mandate
10227 that technologies capable of rebroadcasting digital copies of films
10228 broadcast on TV (i.e., computers) respect a
<quote>broadcast flag
</quote> that
10229 would disable copying of that content. And in March of the same year,
10230 Senator Fritz Hollings introduced the Consumer Broadband and Digital
10231 Television Promotion Act, which mandated copyright protection
10232 technology in all digital media devices. See GartnerG2,
<quote>Copyright and
10233 Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> 27 June
2003,
33–34,
10235 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
44</ulink>.
10237 But there is one example that captures the flavor of them all. This is
10238 the story of the demise of Internet radio.
10240 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10241 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.
</primary></indexterm>
10244 <!-- PAGE BREAK 204 -->
10245 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
10246 linkend=
"pirates"/>, when a radio station plays a song, the recording
10247 artist doesn't get paid for that
<quote>radio performance
</quote> unless he or she
10248 is also the composer. So, for example if Marilyn Monroe had recorded a
10249 version of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote>—to memorialize her famous
10250 performance before President Kennedy at Madison Square Garden
—
10251 then whenever that recording was played on the radio, the current
10252 copyright owners of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> would get some money, whereas
10253 Marilyn Monroe would not.
10256 The reasoning behind this balance struck by Congress makes some
10257 sense. The justification was that radio was a kind of advertising. The
10258 recording artist thus benefited because by playing her music, the
10259 radio station was making it more likely that her records would be
10260 purchased. Thus, the recording artist got something, even if only
10261 indirectly. Probably this reasoning had less to do with the result
10262 than with the power of radio stations: Their lobbyists were quite good
10263 at stopping any efforts to get Congress to require compensation to the
10267 Enter Internet radio. Like regular radio, Internet radio is a
10268 technology to stream content from a broadcaster to a listener. The
10269 broadcast travels across the Internet, not across the ether of radio
10270 spectrum. Thus, I can
<quote>tune in
</quote> to an Internet radio station in
10271 Berlin while sitting in San Francisco, even though there's no way for
10272 me to tune in to a regular radio station much beyond the San Francisco
10276 This feature of the architecture of Internet radio means that there
10277 are potentially an unlimited number of radio stations that a user
10278 could tune in to using her computer, whereas under the existing
10279 architecture for broadcast radio, there is an obvious limit to the
10280 number of broadcasters and clear broadcast frequencies. Internet radio
10281 could therefore be more competitive than regular radio; it could
10282 provide a wider range of selections. And because the potential
10283 audience for Internet radio is the whole world, niche stations could
10284 easily develop and market their content to a relatively large number
10285 of users worldwide. According to some estimates, more than eighty
10286 million users worldwide have tuned in to this new form of radio.
10288 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
10291 <!-- PAGE BREAK 205 -->
10292 Internet radio is thus to radio what FM was to AM. It is an
10293 improvement potentially vastly more significant than the FM
10294 improvement over AM, since not only is the technology better, so, too,
10295 is the competition. Indeed, there is a direct parallel between the
10296 fight to establish FM radio and the fight to protect Internet
10297 radio. As one author describes Howard Armstrong's struggle to enable
10302 An almost unlimited number of FM stations was possible in the
10303 shortwaves, thus ending the unnatural restrictions imposed on radio in
10304 the crowded longwaves. If FM were freely developed, the number of
10305 stations would be limited only by economics and competition rather
10306 than by technical restrictions.
… Armstrong likened the situation
10307 that had grown up in radio to that following the invention of the
10308 printing press, when governments and ruling interests attempted to
10309 control this new instrument of mass communications by imposing
10310 restrictive licenses on it. This tyranny was broken only when it
10311 became possible for men freely to acquire printing presses and freely
10312 to run them. FM in this sense was as great an invention as the
10313 printing presses, for it gave radio the opportunity to strike off its
10314 shackles.
<footnote><para>
10321 This potential for FM radio was never realized
—not
10322 because Armstrong was wrong about the technology, but because he
10323 underestimated the power of
<quote>vested interests, habits, customs and
10324 legislation
</quote><footnote><para>
10328 to retard the growth of this competing technology.
10331 Now the very same claim could be made about Internet radio. For
10332 again, there is no technical limitation that could restrict the number of
10333 Internet radio stations. The only restrictions on Internet radio are
10334 those imposed by the law. Copyright law is one such law. So the first
10335 question we should ask is, what copyright rules would govern Internet
10338 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto3' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10339 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
10340 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on radio
</secondary></indexterm>
10341 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
10342 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin3' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
10343 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand2' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
10344 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryinternetradiohamperedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>Internet radio hampered by
</secondary></indexterm>
10345 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>on Internet radio fees
</secondary></indexterm>
10346 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaalobbyingpowerof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>lobbying power of
</secondary></indexterm>
10348 But here the power of the lobbyists is reversed. Internet radio is a
10349 new industry. The recording artists, on the other hand, have a very
10351 <!-- PAGE BREAK 206 -->
10352 powerful lobby, the RIAA. Thus when Congress considered the phenomenon
10353 of Internet radio in
1995, the lobbyists had primed Congress to adopt
10354 a different rule for Internet radio than the rule that applies to
10355 terrestrial radio. While terrestrial radio does not have to pay our
10356 hypothetical Marilyn Monroe when it plays her hypothetical recording
10357 of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> on the air,
<emphasis>Internet radio
10358 does
</emphasis>. Not only is the law not neutral toward Internet
10359 radio
—the law actually burdens Internet radio more than it
10360 burdens terrestrial radio.
10363 This financial burden is not slight. As Harvard law professor
10364 William Fisher estimates, if an Internet radio station distributed adfree
10365 popular music to (on average) ten thousand listeners, twenty-four
10366 hours a day, the total artist fees that radio station would owe would be
10367 over $
1 million a year.
<footnote>
10370 This example was derived from fees set by the original Copyright
10371 Arbitration Royalty Panel (CARP) proceedings, and is drawn from an
10372 example offered by Professor William Fisher. Conference Proceedings,
10373 iLaw (Stanford),
3 July
2003, on file with author. Professors Fisher
10374 and Zittrain submitted testimony in the CARP proceeding that was
10375 ultimately rejected. See Jonathan Zittrain, Digital Performance Right
10376 in Sound Recordings and Ephemeral Recordings, Docket No.
2000-
9, CARP
10377 DTRA
1 and
2, available at
10378 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
45</ulink>.
10379 For an excellent analysis making a similar point, see Randal
10380 C. Picker,
<quote>Copyright as Entry Policy: The Case of Digital
10381 Distribution,
</quote> <citetitle>Antitrust Bulletin
</citetitle> (Summer/Fall
2002):
461:
<quote>This was
10382 not confusion, these are just old-fashioned entry barriers. Analog
10383 radio stations are protected from digital entrants, reducing entry in
10384 radio and diversity. Yes, this is done in the name of getting
10385 royalties to copyright holders, but, absent the play of powerful
10386 interests, that could have been done in a media-neutral way.
</quote>
10387 <indexterm><primary>CARP (Copyright Arbitration Royalty Panel)
</primary></indexterm>
10388 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
10390 A regular radio station broadcasting the same content would pay no
10393 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto3' class='endofrange'
/>
10394 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin3' class='endofrange'
/>
10395 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand2' class='endofrange'
/>
10396 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees' class='endofrange'
/>
10397 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaalobbyingpowerof' class='endofrange'
/>
10399 The burden is not financial only. Under the original rules that were
10400 proposed, an Internet radio station (but not a terrestrial radio
10401 station) would have to collect the following data from
<emphasis>every
10402 listening transaction
</emphasis>:
10404 <!-- PAGE BREAK 207 -->
10405 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
10407 name of the service;
10410 channel of the program (AM/FM stations use station ID);
10413 type of program (archived/looped/live);
10416 date of transmission;
10419 time of transmission;
10422 time zone of origination of transmission;
10425 numeric designation of the place of the sound recording within the program;
10428 duration of transmission (to nearest second);
10431 sound recording title;
10434 ISRC code of the recording;
10437 release year of the album per copyright notice and in the case of compilation albums, the release year of the album and copy- right date of the track;
10440 featured recording artist;
10443 retail album title;
10449 UPC code of the retail album;
10455 copyright owner information;
10458 musical genre of the channel or program (station format);
10461 name of the service or entity;
10464 channel or program;
10467 date and time that the user logged in (in the user's time zone);
10470 date and time that the user logged out (in the user's time zone);
10473 time zone where the signal was received (user);
10476 unique user identifier;
10479 the country in which the user received the transmissions.
10482 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
10484 The Librarian of Congress eventually suspended these reporting
10485 requirements, pending further study. And he also changed the original
10486 rates set by the arbitration panel charged with setting rates. But the
10487 basic difference between Internet radio and terrestrial radio remains:
10488 Internet radio has to pay a
<emphasis>type of copyright fee
</emphasis>
10489 that terrestrial radio does not.
10492 Why? What justifies this difference? Was there any study of the
10493 economic consequences from Internet radio that would justify these
10494 differences? Was the motive to protect artists against piracy?
10496 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks
</primary></indexterm>
10497 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
10498 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>on Internet radio fees
</secondary></indexterm>
10499 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto4' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10500 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin4' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
10502 In a rare bit of candor, one RIAA expert admitted what seemed obvious
10503 to everyone at the time. As Alex Alben, vice president for Public
10504 Policy at Real Networks, told me,
10508 The RIAA, which was representing the record labels, presented
10509 some testimony about what they thought a willing buyer would
10510 pay to a willing seller, and it was much higher. It was ten times
10511 higher than what radio stations pay to perform the same songs for
10512 the same period of time. And so the attorneys representing the
10513 webcasters asked the RIAA,
… <quote>How do you come up with a
10515 <!-- PAGE BREAK 208 -->
10516 rate that's so much higher? Why is it worth more than radio? Because
10517 here we have hundreds of thousands of webcasters who want to pay, and
10518 that should establish the market rate, and if you set the rate so
10519 high, you're going to drive the small webcasters out of
10520 business.
…</quote>
10522 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10524 And the RIAA experts said,
<quote>Well, we don't really model this as an
10525 industry with thousands of webcasters,
<emphasis>we think it should be
10526 an industry with, you know, five or seven big players who can pay a
10527 high rate and it's a stable, predictable market
</emphasis>.
</quote> (Emphasis
10531 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex2' class='endofrange'
/>
10532 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees2' class='endofrange'
/>
10533 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto4' class='endofrange'
/>
10534 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin4' class='endofrange'
/>
10536 Translation: The aim is to use the law to eliminate competition, so
10537 that this platform of potentially immense competition, which would
10538 cause the diversity and range of content available to explode, would not
10539 cause pain to the dinosaurs of old. There is no one, on either the right
10540 or the left, who should endorse this use of the law. And yet there is
10541 practically no one, on either the right or the left, who is doing anything
10542 effective to prevent it.
10544 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawinnovationhamperedby' class='endofrange'
/>
10545 <indexterm startref='idxinnovationindustryestablishmentopposedto2' class='endofrange'
/>
10546 <indexterm startref='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism2' class='endofrange'
/>
10547 <indexterm startref='idxinternetradioon' class='endofrange'
/>
10548 <indexterm startref='idxradiooninternet' class='endofrange'
/>
10549 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryinternetradiohamperedby' class='endofrange'
/>
10551 <section id=
"corruptingcitizens">
10552 <title>Corrupting Citizens
</title>
10554 Overregulation stifles creativity. It smothers innovation. It gives
10556 a veto over the future. It wastes the extraordinary opportunity
10557 for a democratic creativity that digital technology enables.
10560 In addition to these important harms, there is one more that was
10561 important to our forebears, but seems forgotten today. Overregulation
10562 corrupts citizens and weakens the rule of law.
10565 The war that is being waged today is a war of prohibition. As with
10566 every war of prohibition, it is targeted against the behavior of a very
10567 large number of citizens. According to
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>,
43 million
10568 Americans downloaded music in May
2002.
<footnote><para>
10569 <!-- f15. --> Mike Graziano and Lee Rainie,
<quote>The Music Downloading Deluge,
</quote> Pew
10570 Internet and American Life Project (
24 April
2001), available at
10571 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
46</ulink>.
10572 The Pew Internet and American Life Project reported that
37 million
10573 Americans had downloaded music files from the Internet by early
2001.
10575 According to the RIAA,
10576 the behavior of those
43 million Americans is a felony. We thus have a
10577 set of rules that transform
20 percent of America into criminals. As the
10579 <!-- PAGE BREAK 209 -->
10580 RIAA launches lawsuits against not only the Napsters and Kazaas of
10581 the world, but against students building search engines, and
10583 against ordinary users downloading content, the technologies for
10584 sharing will advance to further protect and hide illegal use. It is an arms
10585 race or a civil war, with the extremes of one side inviting a more
10587 response by the other.
10590 The content industry's tactics exploit the failings of the American
10591 legal system. When the RIAA brought suit against Jesse Jordan, it
10592 knew that in Jordan it had found a scapegoat, not a defendant. The
10593 threat of having to pay either all the money in the world in damages
10594 ($
15,
000,
000) or almost all the money in the world to defend against
10595 paying all the money in the world in damages ($
250,
000 in legal fees)
10596 led Jordan to choose to pay all the money he had in the world
10597 ($
12,
000) to make the suit go away. The same strategy animates the
10598 RIAA's suits against individual users. In September
2003, the RIAA
10599 sued
261 individuals
—including a twelve-year-old girl living in public
10600 housing and a seventy-year-old man who had no idea what file sharing
10601 was.
<footnote><para>
10603 Alex Pham,
<quote>The Labels Strike Back: N.Y. Girl Settles RIAA Case,
</quote> <citetitle>Los
10604 Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, Business.
10606 As these scapegoats discovered, it will always cost more to defend
10607 against these suits than it would cost to simply settle. (The twelve
10608 year old, for example, like Jesse Jordan, paid her life savings of $
2,
000
10609 to settle the case.) Our law is an awful system for defending rights. It
10610 is an embarrassment to our tradition. And the consequence of our law
10611 as it is, is that those with the power can use the law to quash any rights
10614 <indexterm><primary>alcohol prohibition
</primary></indexterm>
10616 Wars of prohibition are nothing new in America. This one is just
10617 something more extreme than anything we've seen before. We
10618 experimented with alcohol prohibition, at a time when the per capita
10619 consumption of alcohol was
1.5 gallons per capita per year. The war
10620 against drinking initially reduced that consumption to just
30 percent
10621 of its preprohibition levels, but by the end of prohibition,
10622 consumption was up to
70 percent of the preprohibition
10623 level. Americans were drinking just about as much, but now, a vast
10624 number were criminals.
<footnote><para>
10626 Jeffrey A. Miron and Jeffrey Zwiebel,
<quote>Alcohol Consumption During
10627 Prohibition,
</quote> <citetitle>American Economic Review
</citetitle> 81, no.
2 (
1991):
242.
10630 <!-- PAGE BREAK 210 -->
10631 launched a war on drugs aimed at reducing the consumption of regulated
10632 narcotics that
7 percent (or
16 million) Americans now use.
<footnote><para>
10634 National Drug Control Policy: Hearing Before the House Government
10635 Reform Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st sess. (
5 March
2003) (statement of
10636 John P. Walters, director of National Drug Control Policy).
10638 That is a drop from the high (so to speak) in
1979 of
14 percent of
10639 the population. We regulate automobiles to the point where the vast
10640 majority of Americans violate the law every day. We run such a complex
10641 tax system that a majority of cash businesses regularly
10642 cheat.
<footnote><para>
10644 See James Andreoni, Brian Erard, and Jonathon Feinstein,
<quote>Tax
10645 Compliance,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Economic Literature
</citetitle> 36 (
1998):
818 (survey of
10646 compliance literature).
10648 We pride ourselves on our
<quote>free society,
</quote> but an endless array of
10649 ordinary behavior is regulated within our society. And as a result, a
10650 huge proportion of Americans regularly violate at least some law.
10652 <indexterm><primary>law schools
</primary></indexterm>
10654 This state of affairs is not without consequence. It is a particularly
10655 salient issue for teachers like me, whose job it is to teach law
10656 students about the importance of
<quote>ethics.
</quote> As my colleague Charlie
10657 Nesson told a class at Stanford, each year law schools admit thousands
10658 of students who have illegally downloaded music, illegally consumed
10659 alcohol and sometimes drugs, illegally worked without paying taxes,
10660 illegally driven cars. These are kids for whom behaving illegally is
10661 increasingly the norm. And then we, as law professors, are supposed to
10662 teach them how to behave ethically
—how to say no to bribes, or
10663 keep client funds separate, or honor a demand to disclose a document
10664 that will mean that your case is over. Generations of
10665 Americans
—more significantly in some parts of America than in
10666 others, but still, everywhere in America today
—can't live their
10667 lives both normally and legally, since
<quote>normally
</quote> entails a certain
10668 degree of illegality.
10671 The response to this general illegality is either to enforce the law
10672 more severely or to change the law. We, as a society, have to learn
10673 how to make that choice more rationally. Whether a law makes sense
10674 depends, in part, at least, upon whether the costs of the law, both
10675 intended and collateral, outweigh the benefits. If the costs, intended
10676 and collateral, do outweigh the benefits, then the law ought to be
10677 changed. Alternatively, if the costs of the existing system are much
10678 greater than the costs of an alternative, then we have a good reason
10679 to consider the alternative.
10683 <!-- PAGE BREAK 211 -->
10684 My point is not the idiotic one: Just because people violate a law, we
10685 should therefore repeal it. Obviously, we could reduce murder statistics
10686 dramatically by legalizing murder on Wednesdays and Fridays. But
10687 that wouldn't make any sense, since murder is wrong every day of the
10688 week. A society is right to ban murder always and everywhere.
10691 My point is instead one that democracies understood for generations,
10692 but that we recently have learned to forget. The rule of law depends
10693 upon people obeying the law. The more often, and more repeatedly, we
10694 as citizens experience violating the law, the less we respect the
10695 law. Obviously, in most cases, the important issue is the law, not
10696 respect for the law. I don't care whether the rapist respects the law
10697 or not; I want to catch and incarcerate the rapist. But I do care
10698 whether my students respect the law. And I do care if the rules of law
10699 sow increasing disrespect because of the extreme of regulation they
10700 impose. Twenty million Americans have come of age since the Internet
10701 introduced this different idea of
<quote>sharing.
</quote> We need to be able to
10702 call these twenty million Americans
<quote>citizens,
</quote> not
<quote>felons.
</quote>
10705 When at least forty-three million citizens download content from the
10706 Internet, and when they use tools to combine that content in ways
10707 unauthorized by copyright holders, the first question we should be
10708 asking is not how best to involve the FBI. The first question should
10709 be whether this particular prohibition is really necessary in order to
10710 achieve the proper ends that copyright law serves. Is there another
10711 way to assure that artists get paid without transforming forty-three
10712 million Americans into felons? Does it make sense if there are other
10713 ways to assure that artists get paid without transforming America into
10714 a nation of felons?
10717 This abstract point can be made more clear with a particular example.
10720 We all own CDs. Many of us still own phonograph records. These pieces
10721 of plastic encode music that in a certain sense we have bought. The
10722 law protects our right to buy and sell that plastic: It is not a
10723 copyright infringement for me to sell all my classical records at a
10726 <!-- PAGE BREAK 212 -->
10727 record store and buy jazz records to replace them. That
<quote>use
</quote> of the
10728 recordings is free.
10731 But as the MP3 craze has demonstrated, there is another use of
10732 phonograph records that is effectively free. Because these recordings
10733 were made without copy-protection technologies, I am
<quote>free
</quote> to copy,
10734 or
<quote>rip,
</quote> music from my records onto a computer hard disk. Indeed,
10735 Apple Corporation went so far as to suggest that
<quote>freedom
</quote> was a
10736 right: In a series of commercials, Apple endorsed the
<quote>Rip, Mix, Burn
</quote>
10737 capacities of digital technologies.
10739 <indexterm><primary>Andromeda
</primary></indexterm>
10740 <indexterm id='idxcdsmix' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>mix technology and
</secondary></indexterm>
10742 This
<quote>use
</quote> of my records is certainly valuable. I have begun a large
10743 process at home of ripping all of my and my wife's CDs, and storing
10744 them in one archive. Then, using Apple's iTunes, or a wonderful
10745 program called Andromeda, we can build different play lists of our
10746 music: Bach, Baroque, Love Songs, Love Songs of Significant
10747 Others
—the potential is endless. And by reducing the costs of
10748 mixing play lists, these technologies help build a creativity with
10749 play lists that is itself independently valuable. Compilations of
10750 songs are creative and meaningful in their own right.
10753 This use is enabled by unprotected media
—either CDs or records.
10754 But unprotected media also enable file sharing. File sharing threatens
10755 (or so the content industry believes) the ability of creators to earn
10756 a fair return from their creativity. And thus, many are beginning to
10757 experiment with technologies to eliminate unprotected media. These
10758 technologies, for example, would enable CDs that could not be
10759 ripped. Or they might enable spy programs to identify ripped content
10760 on people's machines.
10763 If these technologies took off, then the building of large archives of
10764 your own music would become quite difficult. You might hang in hacker
10765 circles, and get technology to disable the technologies that protect
10766 the content. Trading in those technologies is illegal, but maybe that
10767 doesn't bother you much. In any case, for the vast majority of people,
10768 these protection technologies would effectively destroy the archiving
10770 <!-- PAGE BREAK 213 -->
10771 use of CDs. The technology, in other words, would force us all back to
10772 the world where we either listened to music by manipulating pieces of
10773 plastic or were part of a massively complex
<quote>digital rights
10774 management
</quote> system.
10776 <indexterm startref='idxcdsmix' class='endofrange'
/>
10778 If the only way to assure that artists get paid were the elimination
10779 of the ability to freely move content, then these technologies to
10780 interfere with the freedom to move content would be justifiable. But
10781 what if there were another way to assure that artists are paid,
10782 without locking down any content? What if, in other words, a different
10783 system could assure compensation to artists while also preserving the
10784 freedom to move content easily?
10787 My point just now is not to prove that there is such a system. I offer
10788 a version of such a system in the last chapter of this book. For now,
10789 the only point is the relatively uncontroversial one: If a different
10790 system achieved the same legitimate objectives that the existing
10791 copyright system achieved, but left consumers and creators much more
10792 free, then we'd have a very good reason to pursue this
10793 alternative
—namely, freedom. The choice, in other words, would
10794 not be between property and piracy; the choice would be between
10795 different property systems and the freedoms each allowed.
10798 I believe there is a way to assure that artists are paid without
10799 turning forty-three million Americans into felons. But the salient
10800 feature of this alternative is that it would lead to a very different
10801 market for producing and distributing creativity. The dominant few,
10802 who today control the vast majority of the distribution of content in
10803 the world, would no longer exercise this extreme of control. Rather,
10804 they would go the way of the horse-drawn buggy.
10807 Except that this generation's buggy manufacturers have already saddled
10808 Congress, and are riding the law to protect themselves against this
10809 new form of competition. For them the choice is between fortythree
10810 million Americans as criminals and their own survival.
10813 It is understandable why they choose as they do. It is not
10814 understandable why we as a democracy continue to choose as we do. Jack
10816 <!-- PAGE BREAK 214 -->
10818 Valenti is charming; but not so charming as to justify giving up a
10819 tradition as deep and important as our tradition of free culture.
10821 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation
</primary></indexterm>
10822 <indexterm id='idxisps' class='startofrange'
><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
10824 <emphasis role='strong'
>There's one more
</emphasis> aspect to this
10825 corruption that is particularly important to civil liberties, and
10826 follows directly from any war of prohibition. As Electronic Frontier
10827 Foundation attorney Fred von Lohmann describes, this is the
10828 <quote>collateral damage
</quote> that
<quote>arises whenever you turn
10829 a very large percentage of the population into criminals.
</quote> This
10830 is the collateral damage to civil liberties generally.
10832 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
10834 <quote>If you can treat someone as a putative lawbreaker,
</quote> von Lohmann
10839 then all of a sudden a lot of basic civil liberty protections
10840 evaporate to one degree or another.
… If you're a copyright
10841 infringer, how can you hope to have any privacy rights? If you're a
10842 copyright infringer, how can you hope to be secure against seizures of
10843 your computer? How can you hope to continue to receive Internet
10844 access?
… Our sensibilities change as soon as we think,
<quote>Oh, well,
10845 but that person's a criminal, a lawbreaker.
</quote> Well, what this campaign
10846 against file sharing has done is turn a remarkable percentage of the
10847 American Internet-using population into
<quote>lawbreakers.
</quote>
10851 And the consequence of this transformation of the American public
10852 into criminals is that it becomes trivial, as a matter of due process, to
10853 effectively erase much of the privacy most would presume.
10856 Users of the Internet began to see this generally in
2003 as the RIAA
10857 launched its campaign to force Internet service providers to turn over
10858 the names of customers who the RIAA believed were violating copyright
10859 law. Verizon fought that demand and lost. With a simple request to a
10860 judge, and without any notice to the customer at all, the identity of
10861 an Internet user is revealed.
10864 <!-- PAGE BREAK 215 -->
10865 The RIAA then expanded this campaign, by announcing a general strategy
10866 to sue individual users of the Internet who are alleged to have
10867 downloaded copyrighted music from file-sharing systems. But as we've
10868 seen, the potential damages from these suits are astronomical: If a
10869 family's computer is used to download a single CD's worth of music,
10870 the family could be liable for $
2 million in damages. That didn't stop
10871 the RIAA from suing a number of these families, just as they had sued
10872 Jesse Jordan.
<footnote><para>
10874 See Frank Ahrens,
<quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised Targets; Single
10875 Mother in Calif.,
12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among Defendants,
</quote>
10876 <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, E1; Chris Cobbs,
<quote>Worried Parents
10877 Pull Plug on File `Stealing'; With the Music Industry Cracking Down on
10878 File Swapping, Parents are Yanking Software from Home PCs to Avoid
10879 Being Sued,
</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune
</citetitle>,
30 August
2003, C1; Jefferson
10880 Graham,
<quote>Recording Industry Sues Parents,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
15 September
10881 2003,
4D; John Schwartz,
<quote>She Says She's No Music Pirate. No Snoop
10882 Fan, Either,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
25 September
2003, C1; Margo Varadi,
<quote>Is
10883 Brianna a Criminal?
</quote> <citetitle>Toronto Star
</citetitle>,
18 September
2003, P7.
10888 Even this understates the espionage that is being waged by the
10889 RIAA. A report from CNN late last summer described a strategy the
10890 RIAA had adopted to track Napster users.
<footnote><para>
10892 See
<quote>Revealed: How RIAA Tracks Downloaders: Music Industry Discloses
10893 Some Methods Used,
</quote> CNN.com, available at
10894 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
47</ulink>.
10896 Using a sophisticated hashing algorithm, the RIAA took what is in
10897 effect a fingerprint of every song in the Napster catalog. Any copy of
10898 one of those MP3s will have the same
<quote>fingerprint.
</quote>
10901 So imagine the following not-implausible scenario: Imagine a
10902 friend gives a CD to your daughter
—a collection of songs just
10903 like the cassettes you used to make as a kid. You don't know, and
10904 neither does your daughter, where these songs came from. But she
10905 copies these songs onto her computer. She then takes her computer to
10906 college and connects it to a college network, and if the college
10907 network is
<quote>cooperating
</quote> with the RIAA's espionage, and she hasn't
10908 properly protected her content from the network (do you know how to do
10909 that yourself ?), then the RIAA will be able to identify your daughter
10910 as a
<quote>criminal.
</quote> And under the rules that universities are beginning
10911 to deploy,
<footnote><para>
10913 See Jeff Adler,
<quote>Cambridge: On Campus, Pirates Are Not Penitent,
</quote>
10914 <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
18 May
2003, City Weekly,
1; Frank Ahrens,
<quote>Four
10915 Students Sued over Music Sites; Industry Group Targets File Sharing at
10916 Colleges,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
4 April
2003, E1; Elizabeth Armstrong,
10917 <quote>Students `Rip, Mix, Burn' at Their Own Risk,
</quote> <citetitle>Christian Science
10918 Monitor
</citetitle>,
2 September
2003,
20; Robert Becker and Angela Rozas,
<quote>Music
10919 Pirate Hunt Turns to Loyola; Two Students Names Are Handed Over;
10920 Lawsuit Possible,
</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
16 July
2003,
1C; Beth Cox,
<quote>RIAA
10921 Trains Antipiracy Guns on Universities,
</quote> <citetitle>Internet News
</citetitle>,
30 January
10922 2003, available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
10923 #
48</ulink>; Benny Evangelista,
<quote>Download Warning
101: Freshman
10924 Orientation This Fall to Include Record Industry Warnings Against File
10925 Sharing,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
11 August
2003, E11;
<quote>Raid, Letters
10926 Are Weapons at Universities,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
26 September
2000,
3D.
10928 your daughter can lose the right to use the university's computer
10929 network. She can, in some cases, be expelled.
10931 <indexterm startref='idxisps' class='endofrange'
/>
10932 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
10934 Now, of course, she'll have the right to defend herself. You can hire
10935 a lawyer for her (at $
300 per hour, if you're lucky), and she can
10936 plead that she didn't know anything about the source of the songs or
10937 that they came from Napster. And it may well be that the university
10938 believes her. But the university might not believe her. It might treat
10939 this
<quote>contraband
</quote> as presumptive of guilt. And as any number of
10942 <!-- PAGE BREAK 216 -->
10943 have already learned, our presumptions about innocence disappear in
10944 the middle of wars of prohibition. This war is no different.
10949 So when we're talking about numbers like forty to sixty million
10950 Americans that are essentially copyright infringers, you create a
10951 situation where the civil liberties of those people are very much in
10952 peril in a general matter. [I don't] think [there is any] analog where
10953 you could randomly choose any person off the street and be confident
10954 that they were committing an unlawful act that could put them on the
10955 hook for potential felony liability or hundreds of millions of dollars
10956 of civil liability. Certainly we all speed, but speeding isn't the
10957 kind of an act for which we routinely forfeit civil liberties. Some
10958 people use drugs, and I think that's the closest analog, [but] many
10959 have noted that the war against drugs has eroded all of our civil
10960 liberties because it's treated so many Americans as criminals. Well, I
10961 think it's fair to say that file sharing is an order of magnitude
10962 larger number of Americans than drug use.
… If forty to sixty
10963 million Americans have become lawbreakers, then we're really on a
10964 slippery slope to lose a lot of civil liberties for all forty to sixty
10969 When forty to sixty million Americans are considered
<quote>criminals
</quote> under
10970 the law, and when the law could achieve the same objective
—
10971 securing rights to authors
—without these millions being
10972 considered
<quote>criminals,
</quote> who is the villain? Americans or the law?
10973 Which is American, a constant war on our own people or a concerted
10974 effort through our democracy to change our law?
10977 <!-- PAGE BREAK 217 -->
10981 <part id=
"c-balances">
10982 <title>Balances
</title>
10985 <!-- PAGE BREAK 218 -->
10987 <emphasis role='strong'
>So here's
</emphasis> the picture: You're
10988 standing at the side of the road. Your car is on fire. You are angry
10989 and upset because in part you helped start the fire. Now you don't
10990 know how to put it out. Next to you is a bucket, filled with
10991 gasoline. Obviously, gasoline won't put the fire out.
10994 As you ponder the mess, someone else comes along. In a panic, she
10995 grabs the bucket. Before you have a chance to tell her to
10996 stop
—or before she understands just why she should
10997 stop
—the bucket is in the air. The gasoline is about to hit the
10998 blazing car. And the fire that gasoline will ignite is about to ignite
11002 <emphasis role='strong'
>A war
</emphasis> about copyright rages all
11003 around
—and we're all focusing on the wrong thing. No doubt,
11004 current technologies threaten existing businesses. No doubt they may
11005 threaten artists. But technologies change. The industry and
11006 technologists have plenty of ways to use technology to protect
11007 themselves against the current threats of the Internet. This is a fire
11008 that if let alone would burn itself out.
11011 <!-- PAGE BREAK 219 -->
11012 Yet policy makers are not willing to leave this fire to itself. Primed
11013 with plenty of lobbyists' money, they are keen to intervene to
11014 eliminate the problem they perceive. But the problem they perceive is
11015 not the real threat this culture faces. For while we watch this small
11016 fire in the corner, there is a massive change in the way culture is
11017 made that is happening all around.
11020 Somehow we have to find a way to turn attention to this more important
11021 and fundamental issue. Somehow we have to find a way to avoid pouring
11022 gasoline onto this fire.
11025 We have not found that way yet. Instead, we seem trapped in a simpler,
11026 binary view. However much many people push to frame this debate more
11027 broadly, it is the simple, binary view that remains. We rubberneck to
11028 look at the fire when we should be keeping our eyes on the road.
11031 This challenge has been my life these last few years. It has also been
11032 my failure. In the two chapters that follow, I describe one small
11033 brace of efforts, so far failed, to find a way to refocus this
11034 debate. We must understand these failures if we're to understand what
11035 success will require.
11039 <!-- PAGE BREAK 220 -->
11040 <chapter label=
"13" id=
"eldred">
11041 <title>Chapter Thirteen: Eldred
</title>
11042 <indexterm id='idxeldrederic' class='startofrange'
><primary>Eldred, Eric
</primary></indexterm>
11043 <indexterm id='idxhawthornenathaniel' class='startofrange'
><primary>Hawthorne, Nathaniel
</primary></indexterm>
11045 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1995</emphasis>, a father was frustrated
11046 that his daughters didn't seem to like Hawthorne. No doubt there was
11047 more than one such father, but at least one did something about
11048 it. Eric Eldred, a retired computer programmer living in New
11049 Hampshire, decided to put Hawthorne on the Web. An electronic version,
11050 Eldred thought, with links to pictures and explanatory text, would
11051 make this nineteenth-century author's work come alive.
11053 <indexterm id='idxlibrariesofpublicdomainliterature' class='startofrange'
><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>of public-domain literature
</secondary></indexterm>
11054 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainlibraryofworksderivedfrom' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>library of works derived from
</secondary></indexterm>
11056 It didn't work
—at least for his daughters. They didn't find
11057 Hawthorne any more interesting than before. But Eldred's experiment
11058 gave birth to a hobby, and his hobby begat a cause: Eldred would build
11059 a library of public domain works by scanning these works and making
11060 them available for free.
11062 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt5' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
11063 <indexterm><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
11065 Eldred's library was not simply a copy of certain public domain
11066 works, though even a copy would have been of great value to people
11067 across the world who can't get access to printed versions of these
11068 works. Instead, Eldred was producing derivative works from these
11069 public domain works. Just as Disney turned Grimm into stories more
11070 <!-- PAGE BREAK 221 -->
11071 accessible to the twentieth century, Eldred transformed Hawthorne, and
11072 many others, into a form more accessible
—technically
11073 accessible
—today.
11075 <indexterm><primary>Scarlet Letter, The (Hawthorne)
</primary></indexterm>
11077 Eldred's freedom to do this with Hawthorne's work grew from the same
11078 source as Disney's. Hawthorne's
<citetitle>Scarlet Letter
</citetitle> had passed into the
11079 public domain in
1907. It was free for anyone to take without the
11080 permission of the Hawthorne estate or anyone else. Some, such as Dover
11081 Press and Penguin Classics, take works from the public domain and
11082 produce printed editions, which they sell in bookstores across the
11083 country. Others, such as Disney, take these stories and turn them into
11084 animated cartoons, sometimes successfully (
<citetitle>Cinderella
</citetitle>), sometimes not
11085 (
<citetitle>The Hunchback of Notre Dame
</citetitle>,
<citetitle>Treasure Planet
</citetitle>). These are all
11086 commercial publications of public domain works.
11088 <indexterm startref='idxhawthornenathaniel' class='endofrange'
/>
11089 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt5' class='endofrange'
/>
11091 The Internet created the possibility of noncommercial publications of
11092 public domain works. Eldred's is just one example. There are literally
11093 thousands of others. Hundreds of thousands from across the world have
11094 discovered this platform of expression and now use it to share works
11095 that are, by law, free for the taking. This has produced what we might
11096 call the
<quote>noncommercial publishing industry,
</quote> which before the
11097 Internet was limited to people with large egos or with political or
11098 social causes. But with the Internet, it includes a wide range of
11099 individuals and groups dedicated to spreading culture
11100 generally.
<footnote><para>
11102 <indexterm><primary>pornography
</primary></indexterm>
11103 There's a parallel here with pornography that is a bit hard to
11104 describe, but it's a strong one. One phenomenon that the Internet
11105 created was a world of noncommercial pornographers
—people who
11106 were distributing porn but were not making money directly or
11107 indirectly from that distribution. Such a class didn't exist before
11108 the Internet came into being because the costs of distributing porn
11109 were so high. Yet this new class of distributors got special attention
11110 in the Supreme Court, when the Court struck down the Communications
11111 Decency Act of
1996. It was partly because of the burden on
11112 noncommercial speakers that the statute was found to exceed Congress's
11113 power. The same point could have been made about noncommercial
11114 publishers after the advent of the Internet. The Eric Eldreds of the
11115 world before the Internet were extremely few. Yet one would think it
11116 at least as important to protect the Eldreds of the world as to
11117 protect noncommercial pornographers.
</para></footnote>
11119 <indexterm id='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright terms extended by
</secondary></indexterm>
11120 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof6' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
11121 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>term extensions in
</secondary></indexterm>
11122 <indexterm><primary>Frost, Robert
</primary></indexterm>
11123 <indexterm><primary>New Hampshire (Frost)
</primary></indexterm>
11124 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>in public domain
</secondary></indexterm>
11125 <indexterm id='idxpatentsfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>future patents vs. future copyrights in
</secondary></indexterm>
11127 As I said, Eldred lives in New Hampshire. In
1998, Robert Frost's
11128 collection of poems
<citetitle>New Hampshire
</citetitle> was slated to
11129 pass into the public domain. Eldred wanted to post that collection in
11130 his free public library. But Congress got in the way. As I described
11131 in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
11132 linkend=
"property-i"/>, in
1998, for the eleventh time in forty years,
11133 Congress extended the terms of existing copyrights
—this time by
11134 twenty years. Eldred would not be free to add any works more recent
11135 than
1923 to his collection until
2019. Indeed, no copyrighted work
11136 would pass into the public domain until that year (and not even then,
11137 if Congress extends the term again). By contrast, in the same period,
11138 more than
1 million patents will pass into the public domain.
11140 <indexterm startref='idxlibrariesofpublicdomainliterature' class='endofrange'
/>
11141 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainlibraryofworksderivedfrom' class='endofrange'
/>
11142 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary
</primary></indexterm>
11143 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny
</primary></indexterm>
11144 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity4' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
11145 <indexterm id='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11148 <!-- PAGE BREAK 222 -->
11149 This was the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act
11150 (CTEA), enacted in memory of the congressman and former musician
11151 Sonny Bono, who, his widow, Mary Bono, says, believed that
11152 <quote>copyrights should be forever.
</quote><footnote><para>
11154 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary
</primary></indexterm>
11155 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny
</primary></indexterm>
11156 The full text is:
<quote>Sonny [Bono] wanted the term of copyright
11157 protection to last forever. I am informed by staff that such a change
11158 would violate the Constitution. I invite all of you to work with me to
11159 strengthen our copyright laws in all of the ways available to us. As
11160 you know, there is also Jack Valenti's proposal for a term to last
11161 forever less one day. Perhaps the Committee may look at that next
11162 Congress,
</quote> 144 Cong. Rec. H9946,
9951-
2 (October
7,
1998).
11165 <indexterm startref='idxpatentsfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='endofrange'
/>
11166 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>felony punishment for infringement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11167 <indexterm><primary>NET (No Electronic Theft) Act (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11168 <indexterm><primary>No Electronic Theft (NET) Act (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11169 <indexterm><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>felony punishments for
</secondary></indexterm>
11171 Eldred decided to fight this law. He first resolved to fight it through
11172 civil disobedience. In a series of interviews, Eldred announced that he
11173 would publish as planned, CTEA notwithstanding. But because of a
11174 second law passed in
1998, the NET (No Electronic Theft) Act, his act
11175 of publishing would make Eldred a felon
—whether or not anyone
11176 complained. This was a dangerous strategy for a disabled programmer
11179 <indexterm startref='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea2' class='endofrange'
/>
11180 <indexterm id='idxcongressusconstitutionalpowersof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>constitutional powers of
</secondary></indexterm>
11181 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Progress Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
11182 <indexterm id='idxprogressclause2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Progress Clause
</primary></indexterm>
11183 <indexterm id='idxlessiglawrenceeldredcaseinvolvementof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>Eldred case involvement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11185 It was here that I became involved in Eldred's battle. I was a
11187 scholar whose first passion was constitutional
11189 And though constitutional law courses never focus upon the
11190 Progress Clause of the Constitution, it had always struck me as
11192 different. As you know, the Constitution says,
11196 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science
…
11197 by securing for limited Times to Authors
… exclusive Right to
11198 their
… Writings.
…
11201 <indexterm startref='idxeldrederic' class='endofrange'
/>
11203 As I've described, this clause is unique within the power-granting
11204 clause of Article I, section
8 of our Constitution. Every other clause
11205 granting power to Congress simply says Congress has the power to do
11206 something
—for example, to regulate
<quote>commerce among the several
11207 states
</quote> or
<quote>declare War.
</quote> But here, the
<quote>something
</quote> is something quite
11208 specific
—to
<quote>promote
… Progress
</quote>—through means that
11209 are also specific
— by
<quote>securing
</quote> <quote>exclusive Rights
</quote> (i.e.,
11210 copyrights)
<quote>for limited Times.
</quote>
11212 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof2' class='endofrange'
/>
11213 <indexterm startref='idxprogressclause2' class='endofrange'
/>
11214 <indexterm startref='idxlessiglawrenceeldredcaseinvolvementof' class='endofrange'
/>
11215 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
11217 In the past forty years, Congress has gotten into the practice of
11218 extending existing terms of copyright protection. What puzzled me
11219 about this was, if Congress has the power to extend existing terms,
11220 then the Constitution's requirement that terms be
<quote>limited
</quote> will have
11221 <!-- PAGE BREAK 223 -->
11222 no practical effect. If every time a copyright is about to expire,
11223 Congress has the power to extend its term, then Congress can achieve
11224 what the Constitution plainly forbids
—perpetual terms
<quote>on the
11225 installment plan,
</quote> as Professor Peter Jaszi so nicely put it.
11227 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity4' class='endofrange'
/>
11228 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusconstitutionalpowersof' class='endofrange'
/>
11229 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>Eldred case involvement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11231 As an academic, my first response was to hit the books. I remember
11232 sitting late at the office, scouring on-line databases for any serious
11233 consideration of the question. No one had ever challenged Congress's
11234 practice of extending existing terms. That failure may in part be why
11235 Congress seemed so untroubled in its habit. That, and the fact that
11236 the practice had become so lucrative for Congress. Congress knows that
11237 copyright owners will be willing to pay a great deal of money to see
11238 their copyright terms extended. And so Congress is quite happy to keep
11239 this gravy train going.
11242 For this is the core of the corruption in our present system of
11243 government.
<quote>Corruption
</quote> not in the sense that representatives are
11244 bribed. Rather,
<quote>corruption
</quote> in the sense that the system induces the
11245 beneficiaries of Congress's acts to raise and give money to Congress
11246 to induce it to act. There's only so much time; there's only so much
11247 Congress can do. Why not limit its actions to those things it must
11248 do
—and those things that pay? Extending copyright terms pays.
11251 If that's not obvious to you, consider the following: Say you're one
11252 of the very few lucky copyright owners whose copyright continues to
11253 make money one hundred years after it was created. The Estate of
11254 Robert Frost is a good example. Frost died in
1963. His poetry
11255 continues to be extraordinarily valuable. Thus the Robert Frost estate
11256 benefits greatly from any extension of copyright, since no publisher
11257 would pay the estate any money if the poems Frost wrote could be
11258 published by anyone for free.
11261 So imagine the Robert Frost estate is earning $
100,
000 a year from
11262 three of Frost's poems. And imagine the copyright for those poems
11263 is about to expire. You sit on the board of the Robert Frost estate.
11264 Your financial adviser comes to your board meeting with a very grim
11268 <quote>Next year,
</quote> the adviser announces,
<quote>our copyrights in works A, B,
11270 <!-- PAGE BREAK 224 -->
11271 and C will expire. That means that after next year, we will no longer be
11272 receiving the annual royalty check of $
100,
000 from the publishers of
11273 those works.
</quote>
11276 <quote>There's a proposal in Congress, however,
</quote> she continues,
<quote>that
11277 could change this. A few congressmen are floating a bill to extend the
11278 terms of copyright by twenty years. That bill would be extraordinarily
11279 valuable to us. So we should hope this bill passes.
</quote>
11282 <quote>Hope?
</quote> a fellow board member says.
<quote>Can't we be doing something
11286 <quote>Well, obviously, yes,
</quote> the adviser responds.
<quote>We could contribute
11287 to the campaigns of a number of representatives to try to assure that
11288 they support the bill.
</quote>
11291 You hate politics. You hate contributing to campaigns. So you want
11292 to know whether this disgusting practice is worth it.
<quote>How much
11293 would we get if this extension were passed?
</quote> you ask the adviser.
<quote>How
11294 much is it worth?
</quote>
11297 <quote>Well,
</quote> the adviser says,
<quote>if you're confident that you will continue
11298 to get at least $
100,
000 a year from these copyrights, and you use the
11299 `discount rate' that we use to evaluate estate investments (
6 percent),
11300 then this law would be worth $
1,
146,
000 to the estate.
</quote>
11303 You're a bit shocked by the number, but you quickly come to the
11304 correct conclusion:
11307 <quote>So you're saying it would be worth it for us to pay more than
11308 $
1,
000,
000 in campaign contributions if we were confident those
11310 would assure that the bill was passed?
</quote>
11313 <quote>Absolutely,
</quote> the adviser responds.
<quote>It is worth it to you to
11315 up to the `present value' of the income you expect from these
11316 copyrights. Which for us means over $
1,
000,
000.
</quote>
11319 You quickly get the point
—you as the member of the board and, I
11320 trust, you the reader. Each time copyrights are about to expire, every
11321 beneficiary in the position of the Robert Frost estate faces the same
11322 choice: If they can contribute to get a law passed to extend copyrights,
11323 <!-- PAGE BREAK 225 -->
11324 they will benefit greatly from that extension. And so each time
11326 are about to expire, there is a massive amount of lobbying to get
11327 the copyright term extended.
11330 Thus a congressional perpetual motion machine: So long as legislation
11331 can be bought (albeit indirectly), there will be all the incentive in
11332 the world to buy further extensions of copyright.
11335 In the lobbying that led to the passage of the Sonny Bono
11337 Term Extension Act, this
<quote>theory
</quote> about incentives was proved
11338 real. Ten of the thirteen original sponsors of the act in the House
11339 received the maximum contribution from Disney's political action
11340 committee; in the Senate, eight of the twelve sponsors received
11341 contributions.
<footnote><para>
11342 <!-- f3. --> Associated Press,
<quote>Disney Lobbying for Copyright Extension No Mickey
11343 Mouse Effort; Congress OKs Bill Granting Creators
20 More Years,
</quote>
11344 <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
17 October
1998,
22.
11346 The RIAA and the MPAA are estimated to have spent over
11347 $
1.5 million lobbying in the
1998 election cycle. They paid out more
11348 than $
200,
000 in campaign contributions.
<footnote><para>
11349 <!-- f4. --> See Nick Brown,
<quote>Fair Use No More?: Copyright in the Information
11350 Age,
</quote> available at
11351 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
49</ulink>.
11353 Disney is estimated to have
11354 contributed more than $
800,
000 to reelection campaigns in the
11355 cycle.
<footnote><para>
11357 Alan K. Ota,
<quote>Disney in Washington: The Mouse That Roars,
</quote>
11358 <citetitle>Congressional Quarterly This Week
</citetitle>,
8 August
1990, available at
11359 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
50</ulink>.
11364 <emphasis role='strong'
>Constitutional law
</emphasis> is not oblivious
11365 to the obvious. Or at least, it need not be. So when I was considering
11366 Eldred's complaint, this reality about the never-ending incentives to
11367 increase the copyright term was central to my thinking. In my view, a
11368 pragmatic court committed to interpreting and applying the
11369 Constitution of our framers would see that if Congress has the power
11370 to extend existing terms, then there would be no effective
11371 constitutional requirement that terms be
<quote>limited.
</quote> If
11372 they could extend it once, they would extend it again and again and
11375 <indexterm startref='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby2' class='endofrange'
/>
11376 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof6' class='endofrange'
/>
11377 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin2' class='endofrange'
/>
11379 It was also my judgment that
<emphasis>this
</emphasis> Supreme Court
11380 would not allow Congress to extend existing terms. As anyone close to
11381 the Supreme Court's work knows, this Court has increasingly restricted
11382 the power of Congress when it has viewed Congress's actions as
11383 exceeding the power granted to it by the Constitution. Among
11384 constitutional scholars, the most famous example of this trend was the
11387 <!-- PAGE BREAK 226 -->
11388 decision in
1995 to strike down a law that banned the possession of
11392 Since
1937, the Supreme Court had interpreted Congress's granted
11393 powers very broadly; so, while the Constitution grants Congress the
11394 power to regulate only
<quote>commerce among the several states
</quote> (aka
11396 commerce
</quote>), the Supreme Court had interpreted that power to
11397 include the power to regulate any activity that merely affected
11402 As the economy grew, this standard increasingly meant that there was
11403 no limit to Congress's power to regulate, since just about every
11404 activity, when considered on a national scale, affects interstate
11405 commerce. A Constitution designed to limit Congress's power was
11406 instead interpreted to impose no limit.
11408 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.
</primary></indexterm>
11410 The Supreme Court, under Chief Justice Rehnquist's command, changed
11411 that in
<citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. The government had
11412 argued that possessing guns near schools affected interstate
11413 commerce. Guns near schools increase crime, crime lowers property
11414 values, and so on. In the oral argument, the Chief Justice asked the
11415 government whether there was any activity that would not affect
11416 interstate commerce under the reasoning the government advanced. The
11417 government said there was not; if Congress says an activity affects
11418 interstate commerce, then that activity affects interstate
11419 commerce. The Supreme Court, the government said, was not in the
11420 position to second-guess Congress.
11423 <quote>We pause to consider the implications of the government's arguments,
</quote>
11424 the Chief Justice wrote.
<footnote><para>
11425 <!-- f6. --> <citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>,
514 U.S.
549,
564 (
1995).
11427 If anything Congress says is interstate commerce must therefore be
11428 considered interstate commerce, then there would be no limit to
11429 Congress's power. The decision in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> was reaffirmed five years
11430 later in
<citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Morrison
</citetitle>.
<footnote><para>
11432 <citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Morrison
</citetitle>,
529 U.S.
598 (
2000).
11436 If a principle were at work here, then it should apply to the Progress
11437 Clause as much as the Commerce Clause.
<footnote><para>
11439 If it is a principle about enumerated powers, then the principle
11440 carries from one enumerated power to another. The animating point in
11441 the context of the Commerce Clause was that the interpretation offered
11442 by the government would allow the government unending power to
11443 regulate commerce
—the limitation to interstate commerce
11444 notwithstanding. The same point is true in the context of the
11445 Copyright Clause. Here, too, the government's interpretation would
11446 allow the government unending power to regulate copyrights
—the
11447 limitation to
<quote>limited times
</quote> notwithstanding.
11449 And if it is applied to the Progress Clause, the principle should
11450 yield the conclusion that Congress
11451 <!-- PAGE BREAK 227 -->
11452 can't extend an existing term. If Congress could extend an existing
11453 term, then there would be no
<quote>stopping point
</quote> to Congress's power over
11454 terms, though the Constitution expressly states that there is such a
11455 limit. Thus, the same principle applied to the power to grant
11456 copyrights should entail that Congress is not allowed to extend the
11457 term of existing copyrights.
11460 <emphasis>If
</emphasis>, that is, the principle announced in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>
11461 stood for a principle. Many believed the decision in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> stood for
11462 politics
—a conservative Supreme Court, which believed in states'
11463 rights, using its power over Congress to advance its own personal
11464 political preferences. But I rejected that view of the Supreme Court's
11465 decision. Indeed, shortly after the decision, I wrote an article
11466 demonstrating the
<quote>fidelity
</quote> in such an interpretation of the
11467 Constitution. The idea that the Supreme Court decides cases based upon
11468 its politics struck me as extraordinarily boring. I was not going to
11469 devote my life to teaching constitutional law if these nine Justices
11470 were going to be petty politicians.
11472 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright purpose established in
</secondary></indexterm>
11473 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>constitutional purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
11474 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
11475 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
11477 <emphasis role='strong'
>Now let's pause
</emphasis> for a moment to
11478 make sure we understand what the argument in
11479 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was not about. By insisting on the
11480 Constitution's limits to copyright, obviously Eldred was not endorsing
11481 piracy. Indeed, in an obvious sense, he was fighting a kind of
11482 piracy
—piracy of the public domain. When Robert Frost wrote his
11483 work and when Walt Disney created Mickey Mouse, the maximum copyright
11484 term was just fifty-six years. Because of interim changes, Frost and
11485 Disney had already enjoyed a seventy-five-year monopoly for their
11486 work. They had gotten the benefit of the bargain that the Constitution
11487 envisions: In exchange for a monopoly protected for fifty-six years,
11488 they created new work. But now these entities were using their
11489 power
—expressed through the power of lobbyists' money
—to
11490 get another twenty-year dollop of monopoly. That twenty-year dollop
11491 would be taken from the public domain. Eric Eldred was fighting a
11492 piracy that affects us all.
11494 <indexterm><primary>Nashville Songwriters Association
</primary></indexterm>
11496 Some people view the public domain with contempt. In their brief
11498 <!-- PAGE BREAK 228 -->
11499 before the Supreme Court, the Nashville Songwriters Association
11500 wrote that the public domain is nothing more than
<quote>legal piracy.
</quote><footnote><para>
11502 Brief of the Nashville Songwriters Association,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle>
11503 v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618), n
.10, available
11504 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
51</ulink>.
11506 But it is not piracy when the law allows it; and in our constitutional
11507 system, our law requires it. Some may not like the Constitution's
11508 requirements, but that doesn't make the Constitution a pirate's
11512 As we've seen, our constitutional system requires limits on
11514 as a way to assure that copyright holders do not too heavily
11516 the development and distribution of our culture. Yet, as Eric
11517 Eldred discovered, we have set up a system that assures that copyright
11518 terms will be repeatedly extended, and extended, and extended. We
11519 have created the perfect storm for the public domain. Copyrights have
11520 not expired, and will not expire, so long as Congress is free to be
11521 bought to extend them again.
11524 <emphasis role='strong'
>It is valuable
</emphasis> copyrights that are
11525 responsible for terms being extended. Mickey Mouse and
11526 <quote>Rhapsody in Blue.
</quote> These works are too valuable for
11527 copyright owners to ignore. But the real harm to our society from
11528 copyright extensions is not that Mickey Mouse remains Disney's.
11529 Forget Mickey Mouse. Forget Robert Frost. Forget all the works from
11530 the
1920s and
1930s that have continuing commercial value. The real
11531 harm of term extension comes not from these famous works. The real
11532 harm is to the works that are not famous, not commercially exploited,
11533 and no longer available as a result.
11536 If you look at the work created in the first twenty years (
1923 to
11537 1942) affected by the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act,
11538 2 percent of that work has any continuing commercial value. It was the
11539 copyright holders for that
2 percent who pushed the CTEA through.
11540 But the law and its effect were not limited to that
2 percent. The law
11541 extended the terms of copyright generally.
<footnote><para>
11542 <!-- f10. --> The figure of
2 percent is an extrapolation from the study by the
11544 Research Service, in light of the estimated renewal ranges. See Brief
11545 of Petitioners,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
7, available at
11546 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
52</ulink>.
11551 Think practically about the consequence of this
11552 extension
—practically,
11553 as a businessperson, and not as a lawyer eager for more legal
11555 <!-- PAGE BREAK 229 -->
11556 work. In
1930,
10,
047 books were published. In
2000,
174 of those
11557 books were still in print. Let's say you were Brewster Kahle, and you
11558 wanted to make available to the world in your iArchive project the
11560 9,
873. What would you have to do?
11562 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
11564 Well, first, you'd have to determine which of the
9,
873 books were
11565 still under copyright. That requires going to a library (these data are
11566 not on-line) and paging through tomes of books, cross-checking the
11567 titles and authors of the
9,
873 books with the copyright registration
11568 and renewal records for works published in
1930. That will produce a
11569 list of books still under copyright.
11572 Then for the books still under copyright, you would need to locate
11573 the current copyright owners. How would you do that?
11576 Most people think that there must be a list of these copyright
11578 somewhere. Practical people think this way. How could there be
11579 thousands and thousands of government monopolies without there
11580 being at least a list?
11583 But there is no list. There may be a name from
1930, and then in
11584 1959, of the person who registered the copyright. But just think
11586 about how impossibly difficult it would be to track down
11588 of such records
—especially since the person who registered is
11589 not necessarily the current owner. And we're just talking about
1930!
11592 <quote>But there isn't a list of who owns property generally,
</quote> the
11593 apologists for the system respond.
<quote>Why should there be a list of
11594 copyright owners?
</quote>
11597 Well, actually, if you think about it, there
<emphasis>are
</emphasis>
11598 plenty of lists of who owns what property. Think about deeds on
11599 houses, or titles to cars. And where there isn't a list, the code of
11600 real space is pretty good at suggesting who the owner of a bit of
11601 property is. (A swing set in your backyard is probably yours.) So
11602 formally or informally, we have a pretty good way to know who owns
11603 what tangible property.
11606 So: You walk down a street and see a house. You can know who
11607 owns the house by looking it up in the courthouse registry. If you see
11608 a car, there is ordinarily a license plate that will link the owner to the
11610 <!-- PAGE BREAK 230 -->
11611 car. If you see a bunch of children's toys sitting on the front lawn of a
11612 house, it's fairly easy to determine who owns the toys. And if you
11614 to see a baseball lying in a gutter on the side of the road, look
11615 around for a second for some kids playing ball. If you don't see any
11616 kids, then okay: Here's a bit of property whose owner we can't easily
11617 determine. It is the exception that proves the rule: that we ordinarily
11618 know quite well who owns what property.
11621 Compare this story to intangible property. You go into a library.
11622 The library owns the books. But who owns the copyrights? As I've
11624 described, there's no list of copyright owners. There are authors'
11625 names, of course, but their copyrights could have been assigned, or
11626 passed down in an estate like Grandma's old jewelry. To know who
11627 owns what, you would have to hire a private detective. The bottom
11628 line: The owner cannot easily be located. And in a regime like ours, in
11629 which it is a felony to use such property without the property owner's
11630 permission, the property isn't going to be used.
11633 The consequence with respect to old books is that they won't be
11634 digitized, and hence will simply rot away on shelves. But the
11636 for other creative works is much more dire.
11638 <indexterm id='idxageemichael' class='startofrange'
><primary>Agee, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
11639 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios
</primary></indexterm>
11640 <indexterm><primary>Laurel and Hardy Films
</primary></indexterm>
11641 <indexterm><primary>Lucky Dog, The
</primary></indexterm>
11643 Consider the story of Michael Agee, chairman of Hal Roach Studios,
11644 which owns the copyrights for the Laurel and Hardy films. Agee is a
11645 direct beneficiary of the Bono Act. The Laurel and Hardy films were
11646 made between
1921 and
1951. Only one of these films,
<citetitle>The Lucky Dog
</citetitle>, is
11647 currently out of copyright. But for the CTEA, films made after
1923
11648 would have begun entering the public domain. Because Agee controls the
11649 exclusive rights for these popular films, he makes a great deal of
11650 money. According to one estimate,
<quote>Roach has sold about
60,
000
11651 videocassettes and
50,
000 DVDs of the duo's silent
11652 films.
</quote><footnote><para>
11654 See David G. Savage,
<quote>High Court Scene of Showdown on Copyright Law,
</quote>
11655 <citetitle>Los Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
6 October
2002; David Streitfeld,
<quote>Classic Movies,
11656 Songs, Books at Stake; Supreme Court Hears Arguments Today on Striking
11657 Down Copyright Extension,
</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune
</citetitle>,
9 October
2002.
11661 Yet Agee opposed the CTEA. His reasons demonstrate a rare virtue in
11662 this culture: selflessness. He argued in a brief before the Supreme
11663 Court that the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act will, if left
11664 standing, destroy a whole generation of American film.
11667 His argument is straightforward. A tiny fraction of this work has
11669 <!-- PAGE BREAK 231 -->
11670 any continuing commercial value. The rest
—to the extent it
11671 survives at all
—sits in vaults gathering dust. It may be that
11672 some of this work not now commercially valuable will be deemed to be
11673 valuable by the owners of the vaults. For this to occur, however, the
11674 commercial benefit from the work must exceed the costs of making the
11675 work available for distribution.
11678 We can't know the benefits, but we do know a lot about the costs.
11679 For most of the history of film, the costs of restoring film were very
11680 high; digital technology has lowered these costs substantially. While
11681 it cost more than $
10,
000 to restore a ninety-minute black-and-white
11682 film in
1993, it can now cost as little as $
100 to digitize one hour of
11683 8 mm film.
<footnote><para>
11685 Brief of Hal Roach Studios and Michael Agee as Amicus Curiae
11686 Supporting the Petitoners,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537
11687 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618),
12. See also Brief of Amicus Curiae
11688 filed on behalf of Petitioners by the Internet Archive,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle>
11689 v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>, available at
11690 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
53</ulink>.
11695 Restoration technology is not the only cost, nor the most
11697 Lawyers, too, are a cost, and increasingly, a very important one. In
11698 addition to preserving the film, a distributor needs to secure the rights.
11699 And to secure the rights for a film that is under copyright, you need to
11700 locate the copyright owner.
11703 Or more accurately,
<emphasis>owners
</emphasis>. As we've seen, there
11704 isn't only a single copyright associated with a film; there are
11705 many. There isn't a single person whom you can contact about those
11706 copyrights; there are as many as can hold the rights, which turns out
11707 to be an extremely large number. Thus the costs of clearing the rights
11708 to these films is exceptionally high.
11711 <quote>But can't you just restore the film, distribute it, and then pay the
11712 copyright owner when she shows up?
</quote> Sure, if you want to commit a
11713 felony. And even if you're not worried about committing a felony, when
11714 she does show up, she'll have the right to sue you for all the profits you
11715 have made. So, if you're successful, you can be fairly confident you'll be
11716 getting a call from someone's lawyer. And if you're not successful, you
11717 won't make enough to cover the costs of your own lawyer. Either way,
11718 you have to talk to a lawyer. And as is too often the case, saying you have
11719 to talk to a lawyer is the same as saying you won't make any money.
11722 For some films, the benefit of releasing the film may well exceed
11724 <!-- PAGE BREAK 232 -->
11725 these costs. But for the vast majority of them, there is no way the
11727 would outweigh the legal costs. Thus, for the vast majority of old
11728 films, Agee argued, the film will not be restored and distributed until
11729 the copyright expires.
11731 <indexterm startref='idxageemichael' class='endofrange'
/>
11733 But by the time the copyright for these films expires, the film will
11734 have expired. These films were produced on nitrate-based stock, and
11735 nitrate stock dissolves over time. They will be gone, and the metal
11737 in which they are now stored will be filled with nothing more
11741 <emphasis role='strong'
>Of all the
</emphasis> creative work produced
11742 by humans anywhere, a tiny fraction has continuing commercial
11743 value. For that tiny fraction, the copyright is a crucially important
11744 legal device. For that tiny fraction, the copyright creates incentives
11745 to produce and distribute the creative work. For that tiny fraction,
11746 the copyright acts as an
<quote>engine of free expression.
</quote>
11749 But even for that tiny fraction, the actual time during which the
11750 creative work has a commercial life is extremely short. As I've
11752 most books go out of print within one year. The same is true of
11753 music and film. Commercial culture is sharklike. It must keep moving.
11754 And when a creative work falls out of favor with the commercial
11756 the commercial life ends.
11759 Yet that doesn't mean the life of the creative work ends. We don't
11760 keep libraries of books in order to compete with Barnes
& Noble, and
11761 we don't have archives of films because we expect people to choose
11763 spending Friday night watching new movies and spending
11765 night watching a
1930 news documentary. The noncommercial life
11766 of culture is important and valuable
—for entertainment but also, and
11767 more importantly, for knowledge. To understand who we are, and
11768 where we came from, and how we have made the mistakes that we
11769 have, we need to have access to this history.
11772 Copyrights in this context do not drive an engine of free expression.
11774 <!-- PAGE BREAK 233 -->
11775 In this context, there is no need for an exclusive right. Copyrights in
11776 this context do no good.
11779 Yet, for most of our history, they also did little harm. For most of
11780 our history, when a work ended its commercial life, there was no
11781 <emphasis>copyright-related use
</emphasis> that would be inhibited by
11782 an exclusive right. When a book went out of print, you could not buy
11783 it from a publisher. But you could still buy it from a used book
11784 store, and when a used book store sells it, in America, at least,
11785 there is no need to pay the copyright owner anything. Thus, the
11786 ordinary use of a book after its commercial life ended was a use that
11787 was independent of copyright law.
11790 The same was effectively true of film. Because the costs of restoring
11791 a film
—the real economic costs, not the lawyer costs
—were
11792 so high, it was never at all feasible to preserve or restore
11793 film. Like the remains of a great dinner, when it's over, it's
11794 over. Once a film passed out of its commercial life, it may have been
11795 archived for a bit, but that was the end of its life so long as the
11796 market didn't have more to offer.
11799 In other words, though copyright has been relatively short for most
11800 of our history, long copyrights wouldn't have mattered for the works
11801 that lost their commercial value. Long copyrights for these works
11802 would not have interfered with anything.
11805 But this situation has now changed.
11807 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital2' class='startofrange'
><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
11809 One crucially important consequence of the emergence of digital
11810 technologies is to enable the archive that Brewster Kahle dreams of.
11811 Digital technologies now make it possible to preserve and give access
11812 to all sorts of knowledge. Once a book goes out of print, we can now
11813 imagine digitizing it and making it available to everyone,
11814 forever. Once a film goes out of distribution, we could digitize it
11815 and make it available to everyone, forever. Digital technologies give
11816 new life to copyrighted material after it passes out of its commercial
11817 life. It is now possible to preserve and assure universal access to
11818 this knowledge and culture, whereas before it was not.
11821 <!-- PAGE BREAK 234 -->
11822 And now copyright law does get in the way. Every step of producing
11823 this digital archive of our culture infringes on the exclusive right
11824 of copyright. To digitize a book is to copy it. To do that requires
11825 permission of the copyright owner. The same with music, film, or any
11826 other aspect of our culture protected by copyright. The effort to make
11827 these things available to history, or to researchers, or to those who
11828 just want to explore, is now inhibited by a set of rules that were
11829 written for a radically different context.
11832 Here is the core of the harm that comes from extending terms: Now that
11833 technology enables us to rebuild the library of Alexandria, the law
11834 gets in the way. And it doesn't get in the way for any useful
11835 <emphasis>copyright
</emphasis> purpose, for the purpose of copyright
11836 is to enable the commercial market that spreads culture. No, we are
11837 talking about culture after it has lived its commercial life. In this
11838 context, copyright is serving no purpose
<emphasis>at all
</emphasis>
11839 related to the spread of knowledge. In this context, copyright is not
11840 an engine of free expression. Copyright is a brake.
11843 You may well ask,
<quote>But if digital technologies lower the costs for
11844 Brewster Kahle, then they will lower the costs for Random House, too.
11845 So won't Random House do as well as Brewster Kahle in spreading
11846 culture widely?
</quote>
11849 Maybe. Someday. But there is absolutely no evidence to suggest that
11850 publishers would be as complete as libraries. If Barnes
& Noble
11851 offered to lend books from its stores for a low price, would that
11852 eliminate the need for libraries? Only if you think that the only role
11853 of a library is to serve what
<quote>the market
</quote> would demand. But if you
11854 think the role of a library is bigger than this
—if you think its
11855 role is to archive culture, whether there's a demand for any
11856 particular bit of that culture or not
—then we can't count on the
11857 commercial market to do our library work for us.
11859 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital2' class='endofrange'
/>
11861 I would be the first to agree that it should do as much as it can: We
11862 should rely upon the market as much as possible to spread and enable
11863 culture. My message is absolutely not antimarket. But where we see the
11864 market is not doing the job, then we should allow nonmarket forces the
11866 <!-- PAGE BREAK 235 -->
11867 freedom to fill the gaps. As one researcher calculated for American
11868 culture,
94 percent of the films, books, and music produced between
11869 1923 and
1946 is not commercially available. However much you love the
11870 commercial market, if access is a value, then
6 percent is a failure
11871 to provide that value.
<footnote><para>
11873 Jason Schultz,
<quote>The Myth of the
1976 Copyright `Chaos' Theory,
</quote> 20
11874 December
2002, available at
11875 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
54</ulink>.
11880 <emphasis role='strong'
>In January
1999</emphasis>, we filed a lawsuit
11881 on Eric Eldred's behalf in federal district court in Washington, D.C.,
11882 asking the court to declare the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension
11883 Act unconstitutional. The two central claims that we made were (
1)
11884 that extending existing terms violated the Constitution's
11885 <quote>limited Times
</quote> requirement, and (
2) that extending terms
11886 by another twenty years violated the First Amendment.
11889 The district court dismissed our claims without even hearing an
11890 argument. A panel of the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit also
11891 dismissed our claims, though after hearing an extensive argument. But
11892 that decision at least had a dissent, by one of the most conservative
11893 judges on that court. That dissent gave our claims life.
11896 Judge David Sentelle said the CTEA violated the requirement that
11897 copyrights be for
<quote>limited Times
</quote> only. His argument was as elegant as
11898 it was simple: If Congress can extend existing terms, then there is no
11899 <quote>stopping point
</quote> to Congress's power under the Copyright Clause. The
11900 power to extend existing terms means Congress is not required to grant
11901 terms that are
<quote>limited.
</quote> Thus, Judge Sentelle argued, the court had
11902 to interpret the term
<quote>limited Times
</quote> to give it meaning. And the best
11903 interpretation, Judge Sentelle argued, would be to deny Congress the
11904 power to extend existing terms.
11907 We asked the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit as a whole to
11908 hear the case. Cases are ordinarily heard in panels of three, except for
11909 important cases or cases that raise issues specific to the circuit as a
11910 whole, where the court will sit
<quote>en banc
</quote> to hear the case.
11912 <indexterm><primary>Tatel, David
</primary></indexterm>
11914 The Court of Appeals rejected our request to hear the case en banc.
11915 This time, Judge Sentelle was joined by the most liberal member of the
11917 <!-- PAGE BREAK 236 -->
11918 D.C. Circuit, Judge David Tatel. Both the most conservative and the
11919 most liberal judges in the D.C. Circuit believed Congress had
11920 overstepped its bounds.
11923 It was here that most expected Eldred v. Ashcroft would die, for the
11924 Supreme Court rarely reviews any decision by a court of appeals. (It
11925 hears about one hundred cases a year, out of more than five thousand
11926 appeals.) And it practically never reviews a decision that upholds a
11927 statute when no other court has yet reviewed the statute.
11930 But in February
2002, the Supreme Court surprised the world by
11931 granting our petition to review the D.C. Circuit opinion. Argument
11932 was set for October of
2002. The summer would be spent writing
11933 briefs and preparing for argument.
11936 <emphasis role='strong'
>It is over
</emphasis> a year later as I write
11937 these words. It is still astonishingly hard. If you know anything at
11938 all about this story, you know that we lost the appeal. And if you
11939 know something more than just the minimum, you probably think there
11940 was no way this case could have been won. After our defeat, I received
11941 literally thousands of missives by well-wishers and supporters,
11942 thanking me for my work on behalf of this noble but doomed cause. And
11943 none from this pile was more significant to me than the e-mail from my
11944 client, Eric Eldred.
11947 But my client and these friends were wrong. This case could have
11948 been won. It should have been won. And no matter how hard I try to
11949 retell this story to myself, I can never escape believing that my own
11952 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey
</primary></indexterm>
11954 <emphasis role='strong'
>The mistake
</emphasis> was made early, though
11955 it became obvious only at the very end. Our case had been supported
11956 from the very beginning by an extraordinary lawyer, Geoffrey Stewart,
11957 and by the law firm he had moved to, Jones, Day, Reavis and
11958 Pogue. Jones Day took a great deal of heat
11959 <!-- PAGE BREAK 237 -->
11960 from its copyright-protectionist clients for supporting us. They
11961 ignored this pressure (something that few law firms today would ever
11962 do), and throughout the case, they gave it everything they could.
11964 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
11965 <indexterm><primary>Bromberg, Dan
</primary></indexterm>
11966 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey
</primary></indexterm>
11968 There were three key lawyers on the case from Jones Day. Geoff
11969 Stewart was the first, but then Dan Bromberg and Don Ayer became
11970 quite involved. Bromberg and Ayer in particular had a common view
11971 about how this case would be won: We would only win, they repeatedly
11972 told me, if we could make the issue seem
<quote>important
</quote> to the Supreme
11973 Court. It had to seem as if dramatic harm were being done to free
11974 speech and free culture; otherwise, they would never vote against
<quote>the
11975 most powerful media companies in the world.
</quote>
11978 I hate this view of the law. Of course I thought the Sonny Bono Act
11979 was a dramatic harm to free speech and free culture. Of course I still
11980 think it is. But the idea that the Supreme Court decides the law based
11981 on how important they believe the issues are is just wrong. It might be
11982 <quote>right
</quote> as in
<quote>true,
</quote> I thought, but it is
<quote>wrong
</quote> as in
<quote>it just shouldn't be
11983 that way.
</quote> As I believed that any faithful interpretation of what the
11984 framers of our Constitution did would yield the conclusion that the
11985 CTEA was unconstitutional, and as I believed that any faithful
11987 of what the First Amendment means would yield the
11988 conclusion that the power to extend existing copyright terms is
11990 I was not persuaded that we had to sell our case like soap.
11991 Just as a law that bans the swastika is unconstitutional not because the
11992 Court likes Nazis but because such a law would violate the
11994 so too, in my view, would the Court decide whether Congress's
11995 law was constitutional based on the Constitution, not based on whether
11996 they liked the values that the framers put in the Constitution.
11999 In any case, I thought, the Court must already see the danger and
12000 the harm caused by this sort of law. Why else would they grant review?
12001 There was no reason to hear the case in the Supreme Court if they
12002 weren't convinced that this regulation was harmful. So in my view, we
12003 didn't need to persuade them that this law was bad, we needed to show
12004 why it was unconstitutional.
12007 There was one way, however, in which I felt politics would matter
12009 <!-- PAGE BREAK 238 -->
12010 and in which I thought a response was appropriate. I was convinced
12011 that the Court would not hear our arguments if it thought these were
12012 just the arguments of a group of lefty loons. This Supreme Court was
12013 not about to launch into a new field of judicial review if it seemed
12014 that this field of review was simply the preference of a small
12015 political minority. Although my focus in the case was not to
12016 demonstrate how bad the Sonny Bono Act was but to demonstrate that it
12017 was unconstitutional, my hope was to make this argument against a
12018 background of briefs that covered the full range of political
12019 views. To show that this claim against the CTEA was grounded in
12020 <emphasis>law
</emphasis> and not politics, then, we tried to gather
12021 the widest range of credible critics
—credible not because they
12022 were rich and famous, but because they, in the aggregate, demonstrated
12023 that this law was unconstitutional regardless of one's politics.
12025 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum
</primary></indexterm>
12026 <indexterm><primary>Schlafly, Phyllis
</primary></indexterm>
12028 The first step happened all by itself. Phyllis Schlafly's
12029 organization, Eagle Forum, had been an opponent of the CTEA from the
12030 very beginning. Mrs. Schlafly viewed the CTEA as a sellout by
12031 Congress. In November
1998, she wrote a stinging editorial attacking
12032 the Republican Congress for allowing the law to pass. As she wrote,
12033 <quote>Do you sometimes wonder why bills that create a financial windfall to
12034 narrow special interests slide easily through the intricate
12035 legislative process, while bills that benefit the general public seem
12036 to get bogged down?
</quote> The answer, as the editorial documented, was the
12037 power of money. Schlafly enumerated Disney's contributions to the key
12038 players on the committees. It was money, not justice, that gave Mickey
12039 Mouse twenty more years in Disney's control, Schlafly argued.
12042 In the Court of Appeals, Eagle Forum was eager to file a brief
12043 supporting our position. Their brief made the argument that became the
12044 core claim in the Supreme Court: If Congress can extend the term of
12045 existing copyrights, there is no limit to Congress's power to set
12046 terms. That strong conservative argument persuaded a strong
12047 conservative judge, Judge Sentelle.
12049 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
12050 <indexterm><primary>Intel
</primary></indexterm>
12051 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
12052 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum
</primary></indexterm>
12054 In the Supreme Court, the briefs on our side were about as diverse as
12055 it gets. They included an extraordinary historical brief by the Free
12057 <!-- PAGE BREAK 239 -->
12058 Software Foundation (home of the GNU project that made GNU/Linux
12059 possible). They included a powerful brief about the costs of
12060 uncertainty by Intel. There were two law professors' briefs, one by
12061 copyright scholars and one by First Amendment scholars. There was an
12062 exhaustive and uncontroverted brief by the world's experts in the
12063 history of the Progress Clause. And of course, there was a new brief
12064 by Eagle Forum, repeating and strengthening its arguments.
12066 <indexterm><primary>American Association of Law Libraries
</primary></indexterm>
12067 <indexterm><primary>National Writers Union
</primary></indexterm>
12069 Those briefs framed a legal argument. Then to support the legal
12070 argument, there were a number of powerful briefs by libraries and
12071 archives, including the Internet Archive, the American Association of
12072 Law Libraries, and the National Writers Union.
12074 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios
</primary></indexterm>
12076 But two briefs captured the policy argument best. One made the
12077 argument I've already described: A brief by Hal Roach Studios argued
12078 that unless the law was struck, a whole generation of American film
12079 would disappear. The other made the economic argument absolutely
12082 <indexterm><primary>Akerlof, George
</primary></indexterm>
12083 <indexterm><primary>Arrow, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
12084 <indexterm><primary>Buchanan, James
</primary></indexterm>
12085 <indexterm><primary>Coase, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12086 <indexterm><primary>Friedman, Milton
</primary></indexterm>
12088 This economists' brief was signed by seventeen economists, including
12089 five Nobel Prize winners, including Ronald Coase, James Buchanan,
12090 Milton Friedman, Kenneth Arrow, and George Akerlof. The economists, as
12091 the list of Nobel winners demonstrates, spanned the political
12092 spectrum. Their conclusions were powerful: There was no plausible
12093 claim that extending the terms of existing copyrights would do
12094 anything to increase incentives to create. Such extensions were
12095 nothing more than
<quote>rent-seeking
</quote>—the fancy term economists use
12096 to describe special-interest legislation gone wild.
12098 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12099 <indexterm><primary>Morrison, Alan
</primary></indexterm>
12100 <indexterm><primary>Public Citizen
</primary></indexterm>
12101 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12103 The same effort at balance was reflected in the legal team we gathered
12104 to write our briefs in the case. The Jones Day lawyers had been with
12105 us from the start. But when the case got to the Supreme Court, we
12106 added three lawyers to help us frame this argument to this Court: Alan
12107 Morrison, a lawyer from Public Citizen, a Washington group that had
12108 made constitutional history with a series of seminal victories in the
12109 Supreme Court defending individual rights; my colleague and dean,
12110 Kathleen Sullivan, who had argued many cases in the Court, and
12112 <!-- PAGE BREAK 240 -->
12113 who had advised us early on about a First Amendment strategy; and
12114 finally, former solicitor general Charles Fried.
12116 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12117 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>constitutional powers of
</secondary></indexterm>
12118 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Commerce Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
12120 Fried was a special victory for our side. Every other former solicitor
12121 general was hired by the other side to defend Congress's power to give
12122 media companies the special favor of extended copyright terms. Fried
12123 was the only one who turned down that lucrative assignment to stand up
12124 for something he believed in. He had been Ronald Reagan's chief lawyer
12125 in the Supreme Court. He had helped craft the line of cases that
12126 limited Congress's power in the context of the Commerce Clause. And
12127 while he had argued many positions in the Supreme Court that I
12128 personally disagreed with, his joining the cause was a vote of
12129 confidence in our argument.
12132 The government, in defending the statute, had its collection of
12133 friends, as well. Significantly, however, none of these
<quote>friends
</quote> included
12134 historians or economists. The briefs on the other side of the case were
12135 written exclusively by major media companies, congressmen, and
12139 The media companies were not surprising. They had the most to gain
12140 from the law. The congressmen were not surprising either
—they
12141 were defending their power and, indirectly, the gravy train of
12142 contributions such power induced. And of course it was not surprising
12143 that the copyright holders would defend the idea that they should
12144 continue to have the right to control who did what with content they
12147 <indexterm><primary>Gershwin, George
</primary></indexterm>
12148 <indexterm><primary>Porgy and Bess
</primary></indexterm>
12149 <indexterm><primary>pornography
</primary></indexterm>
12151 Dr. Seuss's representatives, for example, argued that it was
12152 better for the Dr. Seuss estate to control what happened to
12153 Dr. Seuss's work
— better than allowing it to fall into the
12154 public domain
—because if this creativity were in the public
12155 domain, then people could use it to
<quote>glorify drugs or to create
12156 pornography.
</quote><footnote><para>
12158 Brief of Amici Dr. Seuss Enterprise et al.,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537
12159 U.S. (
2003) (No.
01-
618),
19.
12161 That was also the motive of the Gershwin estate, which defended its
12162 <quote>protection
</quote> of the work of George Gershwin. They refuse, for example,
12163 to license
<citetitle>Porgy and Bess
</citetitle> to anyone who refuses to use African
12164 Americans in the cast.
<footnote><para>
12166 Dinitia Smith,
<quote>Immortal Words, Immortal Royalties? Even Mickey
12167 Mouse Joins the Fray,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
28 March
1998, B7.
12170 <!-- PAGE BREAK 241 -->
12171 their view of how this part of American culture should be controlled,
12172 and they wanted this law to help them effect that control.
12175 This argument made clear a theme that is rarely noticed in this
12176 debate. When Congress decides to extend the term of existing
12177 copyrights, Congress is making a choice about which speakers it will
12178 favor. Famous and beloved copyright owners, such as the Gershwin
12179 estate and Dr. Seuss, come to Congress and say,
<quote>Give us twenty years
12180 to control the speech about these icons of American culture. We'll do
12181 better with them than anyone else.
</quote> Congress of course likes to reward
12182 the popular and famous by giving them what they want. But when
12183 Congress gives people an exclusive right to speak in a certain way,
12184 that's just what the First Amendment is traditionally meant to block.
12187 We argued as much in a final brief. Not only would upholding the CTEA
12188 mean that there was no limit to the power of Congress to extend
12189 copyrights
—extensions that would further concentrate the market;
12190 it would also mean that there was no limit to Congress's power to play
12191 favorites, through copyright, with who has the right to speak.
12194 <emphasis role='strong'
>Between February
</emphasis> and October, there
12195 was little I did beyond preparing for this case. Early on, as I said,
12196 I set the strategy.
12198 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.
</primary></indexterm>
12199 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day
</primary></indexterm>
12201 The Supreme Court was divided into two important camps. One camp we
12202 called
<quote>the Conservatives.
</quote> The other we called
<quote>the Rest.
</quote> The
12203 Conservatives included Chief Justice Rehnquist, Justice O'Connor,
12204 Justice Scalia, Justice Kennedy, and Justice Thomas. These five had
12205 been the most consistent in limiting Congress's power. They were the
12206 five who had supported the
<citetitle>Lopez/Morrison
</citetitle> line
12207 of cases that said that an enumerated power had to be interpreted to
12208 assure that Congress's powers had limits.
12210 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12211 <indexterm id='idxginsburg' class='startofrange'
><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader
</primary></indexterm>
12213 The Rest were the four Justices who had strongly opposed limits on
12214 Congress's power. These four
—Justice Stevens, Justice Souter,
12215 Justice Ginsburg, and Justice Breyer
—had repeatedly argued that
12217 <!-- PAGE BREAK 242 -->
12218 gives Congress broad discretion to decide how best to implement its
12219 powers. In case after case, these justices had argued that the Court's
12220 role should be one of deference. Though the votes of these four
12221 justices were the votes that I personally had most consistently agreed
12222 with, they were also the votes that we were least likely to get.
12225 In particular, the least likely was Justice Ginsburg's. In addition to
12226 her general view about deference to Congress (except where issues of
12227 gender are involved), she had been particularly deferential in the
12228 context of intellectual property protections. She and her daughter (an
12229 excellent and well-known intellectual property scholar) were cut from
12230 the same intellectual property cloth. We expected she would agree with
12231 the writings of her daughter: that Congress had the power in this
12232 context to do as it wished, even if what Congress wished made little
12235 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12237 Close behind Justice Ginsburg were two justices whom we also viewed as
12238 unlikely allies, though possible surprises. Justice Souter strongly
12239 favored deference to Congress, as did Justice Breyer. But both were
12240 also very sensitive to free speech concerns. And as we strongly
12241 believed, there was a very important free speech argument against
12242 these retrospective extensions.
12244 <indexterm startref='idxginsburg' class='endofrange'
/>
12246 The only vote we could be confident about was that of Justice
12247 Stevens. History will record Justice Stevens as one of the greatest
12248 judges on this Court. His votes are consistently eclectic, which just
12249 means that no simple ideology explains where he will stand. But he
12250 had consistently argued for limits in the context of intellectual property
12251 generally. We were fairly confident he would recognize limits here.
12254 This analysis of
<quote>the Rest
</quote> showed most clearly where our focus had to
12255 be: on the Conservatives. To win this case, we had to crack open these
12256 five and get at least a majority to go our way. Thus, the single
12257 overriding argument that animated our claim rested on the
12258 Conservatives' most important jurisprudential innovation
—the
12259 argument that Judge Sentelle had relied upon in the Court of Appeals,
12260 that Congress's power must be interpreted so that its enumerated
12261 powers have limits.
12264 This then was the core of our strategy
—a strategy for which I am
12265 responsible. We would get the Court to see that just as with the
12266 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>
12267 <!-- PAGE BREAK 243 -->
12268 case, under the government's argument here, Congress would always have
12269 unlimited power to extend existing terms. If anything was plain about
12270 Congress's power under the Progress Clause, it was that this power was
12271 supposed to be
<quote>limited.
</quote> Our aim would be to get the Court to
12272 reconcile
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> with
12273 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>: If Congress's power to regulate commerce
12274 was limited, then so, too, must Congress's power to regulate copyright
12278 <emphasis role='strong'
>The argument
</emphasis> on the government's
12279 side came down to this: Congress has done it before. It should be
12280 allowed to do it again. The government claimed that from the very
12281 beginning, Congress has been extending the term of existing
12282 copyrights. So, the government argued, the Court should not now say
12283 that practice is unconstitutional.
12286 There was some truth to the government's claim, but not much. We
12287 certainly agreed that Congress had extended existing terms in
1831
12288 and in
1909. And of course, in
1962, Congress began extending
12290 terms regularly
—eleven times in forty years.
12293 But this
<quote>consistency
</quote> should be kept in perspective. Congress
12295 existing terms once in the first hundred years of the Republic.
12296 It then extended existing terms once again in the next fifty. Those rare
12297 extensions are in contrast to the now regular practice of extending
12299 terms. Whatever restraint Congress had had in the past, that
12301 was now gone. Congress was now in a cycle of extensions; there
12302 was no reason to expect that cycle would end. This Court had not
12304 to intervene where Congress was in a similar cycle of extension.
12305 There was no reason it couldn't intervene here.
12308 <emphasis role='strong'
>Oral argument
</emphasis> was scheduled for the
12309 first week in October. I arrived in D.C. two weeks before the
12310 argument. During those two weeks, I was repeatedly
12311 <quote>mooted
</quote> by lawyers who had volunteered to
12313 <!-- PAGE BREAK 244 -->
12314 help in the case. Such
<quote>moots
</quote> are basically practice rounds, where
12315 wannabe justices fire questions at wannabe winners.
12318 I was convinced that to win, I had to keep the Court focused on a
12319 single point: that if this extension is permitted, then there is no limit to
12320 the power to set terms. Going with the government would mean that
12321 terms would be effectively unlimited; going with us would give
12323 a clear line to follow: Don't extend existing terms. The moots
12324 were an effective practice; I found ways to take every question back to
12327 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12328 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12329 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12331 One moot was before the lawyers at Jones Day. Don Ayer was the
12332 skeptic. He had served in the Reagan Justice Department with Solicitor
12333 General Charles Fried. He had argued many cases before the Supreme
12334 Court. And in his review of the moot, he let his concern speak:
12337 <quote>I'm just afraid that unless they really see the harm, they won't be
12338 willing to upset this practice that the government says has been a
12339 consistent practice for two hundred years. You have to make them see
12340 the harm
—passionately get them to see the harm. For if they
12341 don't see that, then we haven't any chance of winning.
</quote>
12343 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12345 He may have argued many cases before this Court, I thought, but
12346 he didn't understand its soul. As a clerk, I had seen the Justices do the
12347 right thing
—not because of politics but because it was right. As a law
12348 professor, I had spent my life teaching my students that this Court
12349 does the right thing
—not because of politics but because it is right. As
12350 I listened to Ayer's plea for passion in pressing politics, I understood
12351 his point, and I rejected it. Our argument was right. That was enough.
12352 Let the politicians learn to see that it was also good.
12355 <emphasis role='strong'
>The night before
</emphasis> the argument, a
12356 line of people began to form in front of the Supreme Court. The case
12357 had become a focus of the press and of the movement to free
12358 culture. Hundreds stood in line
12360 <!-- PAGE BREAK 245 -->
12361 for the chance to see the proceedings. Scores spent the night on the
12362 Supreme Court steps so that they would be assured a seat.
12365 Not everyone has to wait in line. People who know the Justices can
12366 ask for seats they control. (I asked Justice Scalia's chambers for seats for
12367 my parents, for example.) Members of the Supreme Court bar can get
12368 a seat in a special section reserved for them. And senators and
12370 have a special place where they get to sit, too. And finally, of
12371 course, the press has a gallery, as do clerks working for the Justices on
12372 the Court. As we entered that morning, there was no place that was
12373 not taken. This was an argument about intellectual property law, yet
12374 the halls were filled. As I walked in to take my seat at the front of the
12375 Court, I saw my parents sitting on the left. As I sat down at the table,
12376 I saw Jack Valenti sitting in the special section ordinarily reserved for
12377 family of the Justices.
12380 When the Chief Justice called me to begin my argument, I began
12381 where I intended to stay: on the question of the limits on Congress's
12382 power. This was a case about enumerated powers, I said, and whether
12383 those enumerated powers had any limit.
12385 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day
</primary></indexterm>
12387 Justice O'Connor stopped me within one minute of my opening.
12388 The history was bothering her.
12392 justice o'connor: Congress has extended the term so often
12393 through the years, and if you are right, don't we run the risk of
12394 upsetting previous extensions of time? I mean, this seems to be a
12395 practice that began with the very first act.
12399 She was quite willing to concede
<quote>that this flies directly in the face
12400 of what the framers had in mind.
</quote> But my response again and again
12401 was to emphasize limits on Congress's power.
12405 mr. lessig: Well, if it flies in the face of what the framers had in
12406 mind, then the question is, is there a way of interpreting their
12407 <!-- PAGE BREAK 246 -->
12408 words that gives effect to what they had in mind, and the answer
12413 There were two points in this argument when I should have seen
12414 where the Court was going. The first was a question by Justice
12415 Kennedy, who observed,
12419 justice kennedy: Well, I suppose implicit in the argument that
12420 the '
76 act, too, should have been declared void, and that we
12421 might leave it alone because of the disruption, is that for all these
12422 years the act has impeded progress in science and the useful arts.
12423 I just don't see any empirical evidence for that.
12427 Here follows my clear mistake. Like a professor correcting a
12433 mr. lessig: Justice, we are not making an empirical claim at all.
12434 Nothing in our Copyright Clause claim hangs upon the empirical
12435 assertion about impeding progress. Our only argument is this is a
12436 structural limit necessary to assure that what would be an effectively
12437 perpetual term not be permitted under the copyright laws.
12440 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12442 That was a correct answer, but it wasn't the right answer. The right
12443 answer was instead that there was an obvious and profound harm. Any
12444 number of briefs had been written about it. He wanted to hear it. And
12445 here was the place Don Ayer's advice should have mattered. This was a
12446 softball; my answer was a swing and a miss.
12449 The second came from the Chief, for whom the whole case had been
12450 crafted. For the Chief Justice had crafted the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> ruling,
12451 and we hoped that he would see this case as its second cousin.
12454 It was clear a second into his question that he wasn't at all
12455 sympathetic. To him, we were a bunch of anarchists. As he asked:
12457 <!-- PAGE BREAK 247 -->
12461 chief justice: Well, but you want more than that. You want the
12462 right to copy verbatim other people's books, don't you?
12465 mr. lessig: We want the right to copy verbatim works that
12466 should be in the public domain and would be in the public
12468 but for a statute that cannot be justified under ordinary First
12469 Amendment analysis or under a proper reading of the limits built
12470 into the Copyright Clause.
12473 <indexterm><primary>Olson, Theodore B.
</primary></indexterm>
12475 Things went better for us when the government gave its argument;
12476 for now the Court picked up on the core of our claim. As Justice Scalia
12477 asked Solicitor General Olson,
12481 justice scalia: You say that the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12482 time would be a violation [of the Constitution], but that's precisely
12483 the argument that's being made by petitioners here, that a limited
12484 time which is extendable is the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12489 When Olson was finished, it was my turn to give a closing rebuttal.
12490 Olson's flailing had revived my anger. But my anger still was directed
12491 to the academic, not the practical. The government was arguing as if
12492 this were the first case ever to consider limits on Congress's
12493 Copyright and Patent Clause power. Ever the professor and not the
12494 advocate, I closed by pointing out the long history of the Court
12495 imposing limits on Congress's power in the name of the Copyright and
12496 Patent Clause
— indeed, the very first case striking a law of
12497 Congress as exceeding a specific enumerated power was based upon the
12498 Copyright and Patent Clause. All true. But it wasn't going to move the
12502 <emphasis role='strong'
>As I left
</emphasis> the court that day, I
12503 knew there were a hundred points I wished I could remake. There were a
12504 hundred questions I wished I had
12506 <!-- PAGE BREAK 248 -->
12507 answered differently. But one way of thinking about this case left me
12511 The government had been asked over and over again, what is the limit?
12512 Over and over again, it had answered there is no limit. This was
12513 precisely the answer I wanted the Court to hear. For I could not
12514 imagine how the Court could understand that the government believed
12515 Congress's power was unlimited under the terms of the Copyright
12516 Clause, and sustain the government's argument. The solicitor general
12517 had made my argument for me. No matter how often I tried, I could not
12518 understand how the Court could find that Congress's power under the
12519 Commerce Clause was limited, but under the Copyright Clause,
12520 unlimited. In those rare moments when I let myself believe that we may
12521 have prevailed, it was because I felt this Court
—in particular,
12522 the Conservatives
—would feel itself constrained by the rule of
12523 law that it had established elsewhere.
12526 <emphasis role='strong'
>The morning
</emphasis> of January
15,
2003, I
12527 was five minutes late to the office and missed the
7:
00 A.M. call from
12528 the Supreme Court clerk. Listening to the message, I could tell in an
12529 instant that she had bad news to report.The Supreme Court had affirmed
12530 the decision of the Court of Appeals. Seven justices had voted in the
12531 majority. There were two dissents.
12534 A few seconds later, the opinions arrived by e-mail. I took the
12535 phone off the hook, posted an announcement to our blog, and sat
12536 down to see where I had been wrong in my reasoning.
12539 My
<emphasis>reasoning
</emphasis>. Here was a case that pitted all the
12540 money in the world against
<emphasis>reasoning
</emphasis>. And here
12541 was the last naïve law professor, scouring the pages, looking for
12545 I first scoured the opinion, looking for how the Court would
12546 distinguish the principle in this case from the principle in
12547 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. The argument was nowhere to be found. The case was not even
12548 cited. The argument that was the core argument of our case did not
12549 even appear in the Court's opinion.
12551 <indexterm><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader
</primary></indexterm>
12554 <!-- PAGE BREAK 249 -->
12555 Justice Ginsburg simply ignored the enumerated powers argument.
12556 Consistent with her view that Congress's power was not limited
12557 generally, she had found Congress's power not limited here.
12560 Her opinion was perfectly reasonable
—for her, and for Justice
12561 Souter. Neither believes in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. It would be too much to expect them
12562 to write an opinion that recognized, much less explained, the doctrine
12563 they had worked so hard to defeat.
12566 But as I realized what had happened, I couldn't quite believe what I
12567 was reading. I had said there was no way this Court could reconcile
12568 limited powers with the Commerce Clause and unlimited powers with the
12569 Progress Clause. It had never even occurred to me that they could
12570 reconcile the two simply
<emphasis>by not addressing the
12571 argument
</emphasis>. There was no inconsistency because they would not
12572 talk about the two together. There was therefore no principle that
12573 followed from the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> case: In that context, Congress's power would
12574 be limited, but in this context it would not.
12577 Yet by what right did they get to choose which of the framers' values
12578 they would respect? By what right did they
—the silent
12579 five
—get to select the part of the Constitution they would
12580 enforce based on the values they thought important? We were right back
12581 to the argument that I said I hated at the start: I had failed to
12582 convince them that the issue here was important, and I had failed to
12583 recognize that however much I might hate a system in which the Court
12584 gets to pick the constitutional values that it will respect, that is
12585 the system we have.
12587 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12589 Justices Breyer and Stevens wrote very strong dissents. Stevens's
12590 opinion was crafted internal to the law: He argued that the tradition
12591 of intellectual property law should not support this unjustified
12592 extension of terms. He based his argument on a parallel analysis that
12593 had governed in the context of patents (so had we). But the rest of
12594 the Court discounted the parallel
—without explaining how the
12595 very same words in the Progress Clause could come to mean totally
12596 different things depending upon whether the words were about patents
12597 or copyrights. The Court let Justice Stevens's charge go unanswered.
12599 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12601 <!-- PAGE BREAK 250 -->
12602 Justice Breyer's opinion, perhaps the best opinion he has ever
12603 written, was external to the Constitution. He argued that the term of
12604 copyrights has become so long as to be effectively unlimited. We had
12605 said that under the current term, a copyright gave an author
99.8
12606 percent of the value of a perpetual term. Breyer said we were wrong,
12607 that the actual number was
99.9997 percent of a perpetual term. Either
12608 way, the point was clear: If the Constitution said a term had to be
12609 <quote>limited,
</quote> and the existing term was so long as to be effectively
12610 unlimited, then it was unconstitutional.
12613 These two justices understood all the arguments we had made. But
12614 because neither believed in the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> case, neither was willing to push
12615 it as a reason to reject this extension. The case was decided without
12616 anyone having addressed the argument that we had carried from Judge
12617 Sentelle. It was
<citetitle>Hamlet
</citetitle> without the Prince.
12620 <emphasis role='strong'
>Defeat brings depression
</emphasis>. They say
12621 it is a sign of health when depression gives way to anger. My anger
12622 came quickly, but it didn't cure the depression. This anger was of two
12625 <indexterm><primary>originalism
</primary></indexterm>
12627 It was first anger with the five
<quote>Conservatives.
</quote> It would have been
12628 one thing for them to have explained why the principle of
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> didn't
12629 apply in this case. That wouldn't have been a very convincing
12630 argument, I don't believe, having read it made by others, and having
12631 tried to make it myself. But it at least would have been an act of
12632 integrity. These justices in particular have repeatedly said that the
12633 proper mode of interpreting the Constitution is
<quote>originalism
</quote>—to
12634 first understand the framers' text, interpreted in their context, in
12635 light of the structure of the Constitution. That method had produced
12636 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> and many other
<quote>originalist
</quote> rulings. Where was their
12637 <quote>originalism
</quote> now?
12640 Here, they had joined an opinion that never once tried to explain
12641 what the framers had meant by crafting the Progress Clause as they
12642 did; they joined an opinion that never once tried to explain how the
12643 structure of that clause would affect the interpretation of Congress's
12645 <!-- PAGE BREAK 251 -->
12646 power. And they joined an opinion that didn't even try to explain why
12647 this grant of power could be unlimited, whereas the Commerce Clause
12648 would be limited. In short, they had joined an opinion that did not
12649 apply to, and was inconsistent with, their own method for interpreting
12650 the Constitution. This opinion may well have yielded a result that
12651 they liked. It did not produce a reason that was consistent with their
12655 My anger with the Conservatives quickly yielded to anger with
12657 For I had let a view of the law that I liked interfere with a view of
12660 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12662 Most lawyers, and most law professors, have little patience for
12663 idealism about courts in general and this Supreme Court in particular.
12664 Most have a much more pragmatic view. When Don Ayer said that this
12665 case would be won based on whether I could convince the Justices that
12666 the framers' values were important, I fought the idea, because I
12667 didn't want to believe that that is how this Court decides. I insisted
12668 on arguing this case as if it were a simple application of a set of
12669 principles. I had an argument that followed in logic. I didn't need
12670 to waste my time showing it should also follow in popularity.
12673 As I read back over the transcript from that argument in October, I
12674 can see a hundred places where the answers could have taken the
12675 conversation in different directions, where the truth about the harm
12676 that this unchecked power will cause could have been made clear to
12677 this Court. Justice Kennedy in good faith wanted to be shown. I,
12678 idiotically, corrected his question. Justice Souter in good faith
12679 wanted to be shown the First Amendment harms. I, like a math teacher,
12680 reframed the question to make the logical point. I had shown them how
12681 they could strike this law of Congress if they wanted to. There were a
12682 hundred places where I could have helped them want to, yet my
12683 stubbornness, my refusal to give in, stopped me. I have stood before
12684 hundreds of audiences trying to persuade; I have used passion in that
12685 effort to persuade; but I
12686 <!-- PAGE BREAK 252 -->
12687 refused to stand before this audience and try to persuade with the
12688 passion I had used elsewhere. It was not the basis on which a court
12689 should decide the issue.
12691 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12692 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12694 Would it have been different if I had argued it differently? Would it
12695 have been different if Don Ayer had argued it? Or Charles Fried? Or
12699 My friends huddled around me to insist it would not. The Court
12700 was not ready, my friends insisted. This was a loss that was destined. It
12701 would take a great deal more to show our society why our framers were
12702 right. And when we do that, we will be able to show that Court.
12705 Maybe, but I doubt it. These Justices have no financial interest in
12706 doing anything except the right thing. They are not lobbied. They have
12707 little reason to resist doing right. I can't help but think that if I had
12708 stepped down from this pretty picture of dispassionate justice, I could
12711 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
12713 And even if I couldn't, then that doesn't excuse what happened in
12714 January. For at the start of this case, one of America's leading
12715 intellectual property professors stated publicly that my bringing this
12716 case was a mistake.
<quote>The Court is not ready,
</quote> Peter Jaszi said; this
12717 issue should not be raised until it is.
12720 After the argument and after the decision, Peter said to me, and
12721 publicly, that he was wrong. But if indeed that Court could not have
12722 been persuaded, then that is all the evidence that's needed to know that
12723 here again Peter was right. Either I was not ready to argue this case in
12724 a way that would do some good or they were not ready to hear this case
12725 in a way that would do some good. Either way, the decision to bring
12726 this case
—a decision I had made four years before
—was wrong.
12729 <emphasis role='strong'
>While the reaction
</emphasis> to the Sonny
12730 Bono Act itself was almost unanimously negative, the reaction to the
12731 Court's decision was mixed. No one, at least in the press, tried to
12732 say that extending the term of copyright was a good idea. We had won
12733 that battle over ideas. Where
12735 <!-- PAGE BREAK 253 -->
12736 the decision was praised, it was praised by papers that had been
12737 skeptical of the Court's activism in other cases. Deference was a good
12738 thing, even if it left standing a silly law. But where the decision
12739 was attacked, it was attacked because it left standing a silly and
12740 harmful law.
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle> wrote in its editorial,
12744 In effect, the Supreme Court's decision makes it likely that we are
12745 seeing the beginning of the end of public domain and the birth of
12746 copyright perpetuity. The public domain has been a grand experiment,
12747 one that should not be allowed to die. The ability to draw freely on
12748 the entire creative output of humanity is one of the reasons we live
12749 in a time of such fruitful creative ferment.
12753 The best responses were in the cartoons. There was a gaggle of
12754 hilarious images
—of Mickey in jail and the like. The best, from
12755 my view of the case, was Ruben Bolling's, reproduced in figure
12756 <xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n" linkend=
"fig-18"/>. The
<quote>powerful
12757 and wealthy
</quote> line is a bit unfair. But the punch in the face
12758 felt exactly like that.
12759 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben
</primary></indexterm>
12761 <figure id=
"fig-18" float=
"1">
12763 <graphic fileref=
"images/tom-the-dancing-bug.png" align=
"center" width=
"100%"></graphic>
12764 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben
</primary></indexterm>
12767 The image that will always stick in my head is that evoked by the
12768 quote from
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>. That
<quote>grand experiment
</quote> we call the
12769 <quote>public domain
</quote> is over? When I can make light of it, I think,
<quote>Honey,
12770 I shrunk the Constitution.
</quote> But I can rarely make light of it. We had
12771 in our Constitution a commitment to free culture. In the case that I
12772 fathered, the Supreme Court effectively renounced that commitment. A
12773 better lawyer would have made them see differently.
12775 <!-- PAGE BREAK 254 -->
12777 <chapter label=
"14" id=
"eldred-ii">
12778 <title>Chapter Fourteen: Eldred II
</title>
12780 <emphasis role='strong'
>The day
</emphasis>
12781 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was decided, fate would have it that I
12782 was to travel to Washington, D.C. (The day the rehearing petition in
12783 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was denied
—meaning the case was
12784 really finally over
—fate would have it that I was giving a
12785 speech to technologists at Disney World.) This was a particularly
12786 long flight to my least favorite city. The drive into the city from
12787 Dulles was delayed because of traffic, so I opened up my computer and
12788 wrote an op-ed piece.
12790 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12792 It was an act of contrition. During the whole of the flight from San
12793 Francisco to Washington, I had heard over and over again in my head
12794 the same advice from Don Ayer: You need to make them see why it is
12795 important. And alternating with that command was the question of
12796 Justice Kennedy:
<quote>For all these years the act has impeded progress in
12797 science and the useful arts. I just don't see any empirical evidence for
12798 that.
</quote> And so, having failed in the argument of constitutional principle,
12799 finally, I turned to an argument of politics.
12802 <citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle> published the piece. In it, I proposed a simple
12803 fix: Fifty years after a work has been published, the copyright owner
12804 <!-- PAGE BREAK 256 -->
12805 would be required to register the work and pay a small fee. If he paid
12806 the fee, he got the benefit of the full term of copyright. If he did not,
12807 the work passed into the public domain.
12810 We called this the Eldred Act, but that was just to give it a name.
12811 Eric Eldred was kind enough to let his name be used once again, but as
12812 he said early on, it won't get passed unless it has another name.
12815 Or another two names. For depending upon your perspective, this
12816 is either the
<quote>Public Domain Enhancement Act
</quote> or the
<quote>Copyright
12817 Term Deregulation Act.
</quote> Either way, the essence of the idea is clear
12818 and obvious: Remove copyright where it is doing nothing except
12819 blocking access and the spread of knowledge. Leave it for as long as
12820 Congress allows for those works where its worth is at least $
1. But for
12821 everything else, let the content go.
12823 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
12825 The reaction to this idea was amazingly strong. Steve Forbes endorsed
12826 it in an editorial. I received an avalanche of e-mail and letters
12827 expressing support. When you focus the issue on lost creativity,
12828 people can see the copyright system makes no sense. As a good
12829 Republican might say, here government regulation is simply getting in
12830 the way of innovation and creativity. And as a good Democrat might
12831 say, here the government is blocking access and the spread of
12832 knowledge for no good reason. Indeed, there is no real difference
12833 between Democrats and Republicans on this issue. Anyone can recognize
12834 the stupid harm of the present system.
12837 Indeed, many recognized the obvious benefit of the registration
12838 requirement. For one of the hardest things about the current system
12839 for people who want to license content is that there is no obvious
12840 place to look for the current copyright owners. Since registration is
12841 not required, since marking content is not required, since no
12842 formality at all is required, it is often impossibly hard to locate
12843 copyright owners to ask permission to use or license their work. This
12844 system would lower these costs, by establishing at least one registry
12845 where copyright owners could be identified.
12847 <indexterm><primary>Berlin Act (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12848 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12850 <!-- PAGE BREAK 257 -->
12851 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
12852 linkend=
"property-i"/>, formalities in copyright law were
12853 removed in
1976, when Congress followed the Europeans by abandoning
12854 any formal requirement before a copyright is granted.
<footnote><para>
12856 <indexterm><primary>German copyright law
</primary></indexterm>
12857 Until the
1908 Berlin Act of the Berne Convention, national copyright
12858 legislation sometimes made protection depend upon compliance with
12859 formalities such as registration, deposit, and affixation of notice of
12860 the author's claim of copyright. However, starting with the
1908 act,
12861 every text of the Convention has provided that
<quote>the enjoyment and the
12862 exercise
</quote> of rights guaranteed by the Convention
<quote>shall not be subject
12863 to any formality.
</quote> The prohibition against formalities is presently
12864 embodied in Article
5(
2) of the Paris Text of the Berne
12865 Convention. Many countries continue to impose some form of deposit or
12866 registration requirement, albeit not as a condition of
12867 copyright. French law, for example, requires the deposit of copies of
12868 works in national repositories, principally the National Museum.
12869 Copies of books published in the United Kingdom must be deposited in
12870 the British Library. The German Copyright Act provides for a Registrar
12871 of Authors where the author's true name can be filed in the case of
12872 anonymous or pseudonymous works. Paul Goldstein,
<citetitle>International
12873 Intellectual Property Law, Cases and Materials
</citetitle> (New York: Foundation
12874 Press,
2001),
153–54.
</para></footnote>
12875 The Europeans are said to view copyright as a
<quote>natural right.
</quote> Natural
12876 rights don't need forms to exist. Traditions, like the Anglo-American
12877 tradition that required copyright owners to follow form if their
12878 rights were to be protected, did not, the Europeans thought, properly
12879 respect the dignity of the author. My right as a creator turns on my
12880 creativity, not upon the special favor of the government.
12883 That's great rhetoric. It sounds wonderfully romantic. But it is
12884 absurd copyright policy. It is absurd especially for authors, because
12885 a world without formalities harms the creator. The ability to spread
12886 <quote>Walt Disney creativity
</quote> is destroyed when there is no simple way to
12887 know what's protected and what's not.
12889 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12891 The fight against formalities achieved its first real victory in
12892 Berlin in
1908. International copyright lawyers amended the Berne
12893 Convention in
1908, to require copyright terms of life plus fifty
12894 years, as well as the abolition of copyright formalities. The
12895 formalities were hated because the stories of inadvertent loss were
12896 increasingly common. It was as if a Charles Dickens character ran all
12897 copyright offices, and the failure to dot an
<citetitle>i
</citetitle> or cross a
12898 <citetitle>t
</citetitle> resulted in the loss of widows' only income.
12901 These complaints were real and sensible. And the strictness of the
12902 formalities, especially in the United States, was absurd. The law
12903 should always have ways of forgiving innocent mistakes. There is no
12904 reason copyright law couldn't, as well. Rather than abandoning
12905 formalities totally, the response in Berlin should have been to
12906 embrace a more equitable system of registration.
12909 Even that would have been resisted, however, because registration
12910 in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries was still expensive. It was
12911 also a hassle. The abolishment of formalities promised not only to save
12912 the starving widows, but also to lighten an unnecessary regulatory
12914 imposed upon creators.
12917 In addition to the practical complaint of authors in
1908, there was
12918 a moral claim as well. There was no reason that creative property
12920 <!-- PAGE BREAK 258 -->
12921 should be a second-class form of property. If a carpenter builds a
12922 table, his rights over the table don't depend upon filing a form with
12923 the government. He has a property right over the table
<quote>naturally,
</quote>
12924 and he can assert that right against anyone who would steal the table,
12925 whether or not he has informed the government of his ownership of the
12929 This argument is correct, but its implications are misleading. For the
12930 argument in favor of formalities does not depend upon creative
12931 property being second-class property. The argument in favor of
12932 formalities turns upon the special problems that creative property
12933 presents. The law of formalities responds to the special physics of
12934 creative property, to assure that it can be efficiently and fairly
12938 No one thinks, for example, that land is second-class property just
12939 because you have to register a deed with a court if your sale of land
12940 is to be effective. And few would think a car is second-class property
12941 just because you must register the car with the state and tag it with
12942 a license. In both of those cases, everyone sees that there is an
12943 important reason to secure registration
—both because it makes
12944 the markets more efficient and because it better secures the rights of
12945 the owner. Without a registration system for land, landowners would
12946 perpetually have to guard their property. With registration, they can
12947 simply point the police to a deed. Without a registration system for
12948 cars, auto theft would be much easier. With a registration system, the
12949 thief has a high burden to sell a stolen car. A slight burden is
12950 placed on the property owner, but those burdens produce a much better
12951 system of protection for property generally.
12954 It is similarly special physics that makes formalities important in
12955 copyright law. Unlike a carpenter's table, there's nothing in nature that
12956 makes it relatively obvious who might own a particular bit of creative
12957 property. A recording of Lyle Lovett's latest album can exist in a billion
12958 places without anything necessarily linking it back to a particular
12959 owner. And like a car, there's no way to buy and sell creative property
12960 with confidence unless there is some simple way to authenticate who is
12961 the author and what rights he has. Simple transactions are destroyed in
12963 <!-- PAGE BREAK 259 -->
12964 a world without formalities. Complex, expensive,
12965 <emphasis>lawyer
</emphasis> transactions take their place.
12966 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
12969 This was the understanding of the problem with the Sonny Bono
12970 Act that we tried to demonstrate to the Court. This was the part it
12971 didn't
<quote>get.
</quote> Because we live in a system without formalities, there is no
12972 way easily to build upon or use culture from our past. If copyright
12973 terms were, as Justice Story said they would be,
<quote>short,
</quote> then this
12974 wouldn't matter much. For fourteen years, under the framers' system, a
12975 work would be presumptively controlled. After fourteen years, it would
12976 be presumptively uncontrolled.
12979 But now that copyrights can be just about a century long, the
12980 inability to know what is protected and what is not protected becomes
12981 a huge and obvious burden on the creative process. If the only way a
12982 library can offer an Internet exhibit about the New Deal is to hire a
12983 lawyer to clear the rights to every image and sound, then the
12984 copyright system is burdening creativity in a way that has never been
12985 seen before
<emphasis>because there are no formalities
</emphasis>.
12988 The Eldred Act was designed to respond to exactly this problem. If
12989 it is worth $
1 to you, then register your work and you can get the
12990 longer term. Others will know how to contact you and, therefore, how
12991 to get your permission if they want to use your work. And you will get
12992 the benefit of an extended copyright term.
12995 If it isn't worth it to you to register to get the benefit of an extended
12996 term, then it shouldn't be worth it for the government to defend your
12997 monopoly over that work either. The work should pass into the public
12998 domain where anyone can copy it, or build archives with it, or create a
12999 movie based on it. It should become free if it is not worth $
1 to you.
13002 Some worry about the burden on authors. Won't the burden of
13003 registering the work mean that the $
1 is really misleading? Isn't the
13004 hassle worth more than $
1? Isn't that the real problem with
13008 It is. The hassle is terrible. The system that exists now is awful. I
13009 completely agree that the Copyright Office has done a terrible job (no
13010 doubt because they are terribly funded) in enabling simple and cheap
13012 <!-- PAGE BREAK 260 -->
13013 registrations. Any real solution to the problem of formalities must
13014 address the real problem of
<emphasis>governments
</emphasis> standing
13015 at the core of any system of formalities. In this book, I offer such a
13016 solution. That solution essentially remakes the Copyright Office. For
13017 now, assume it was Amazon that ran the registration system. Assume it
13018 was one-click registration. The Eldred Act would propose a simple,
13019 one-click registration fifty years after a work was published. Based
13020 upon historical data, that system would move up to
98 percent of
13021 commercial work, commercial work that no longer had a commercial life,
13022 into the public domain within fifty years. What do you think?
13024 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
13026 <emphasis role='strong'
>When Steve Forbes
</emphasis> endorsed the
13027 idea, some in Washington began to pay attention. Many people contacted
13028 me pointing to representatives who might be willing to introduce the
13029 Eldred Act. And I had a few who directly suggested that they might be
13030 willing to take the first step.
13032 <indexterm><primary>Lofgren, Zoe
</primary></indexterm>
13034 One representative, Zoe Lofgren of California, went so far as to get
13035 the bill drafted. The draft solved any problem with international
13036 law. It imposed the simplest requirement upon copyright owners
13037 possible. In May
2003, it looked as if the bill would be
13038 introduced. On May
16, I posted on the Eldred Act blog,
<quote>we are
13039 close.
</quote> There was a general reaction in the blog community that
13040 something good might happen here.
13043 But at this stage, the lobbyists began to intervene. Jack Valenti and
13044 the MPAA general counsel came to the congresswoman's office to give
13045 the view of the MPAA. Aided by his lawyer, as Valenti told me, Valenti
13046 informed the congresswoman that the MPAA would oppose the Eldred
13047 Act. The reasons are embarrassingly thin. More importantly, their
13048 thinness shows something clear about what this debate is really about.
13051 The MPAA argued first that Congress had
<quote>firmly rejected the central
13052 concept in the proposed bill
</quote>—that copyrights be renewed. That
13053 was true, but irrelevant, as Congress's
<quote>firm rejection
</quote> had occurred
13054 <!-- PAGE BREAK 261 -->
13055 long before the Internet made subsequent uses much more likely.
13056 Second, they argued that the proposal would harm poor copyright
13057 owners
—apparently those who could not afford the $
1 fee. Third,
13058 they argued that Congress had determined that extending a copyright
13059 term would encourage restoration work. Maybe in the case of the small
13060 percentage of work covered by copyright law that is still commercially
13061 valuable, but again this was irrelevant, as the proposal would not cut
13062 off the extended term unless the $
1 fee was not paid. Fourth, the MPAA
13063 argued that the bill would impose
<quote>enormous
</quote> costs, since a
13064 registration system is not free. True enough, but those costs are
13065 certainly less than the costs of clearing the rights for a copyright
13066 whose owner is not known. Fifth, they worried about the risks if the
13067 copyright to a story underlying a film were to pass into the public
13068 domain. But what risk is that? If it is in the public domain, then the
13069 film is a valid derivative use.
13072 Finally, the MPAA argued that existing law enabled copyright owners to
13073 do this if they wanted. But the whole point is that there are
13074 thousands of copyright owners who don't even know they have a
13075 copyright to give. Whether they are free to give away their copyright
13076 or not
—a controversial claim in any case
—unless they know
13077 about a copyright, they're not likely to.
13080 <emphasis role='strong'
>At the beginning
</emphasis> of this book, I
13081 told two stories about the law reacting to changes in technology. In
13082 the one, common sense prevailed. In the other, common sense was
13083 delayed. The difference between the two stories was the power of the
13084 opposition
—the power of the side that fought to defend the
13085 status quo. In both cases, a new technology threatened old
13086 interests. But in only one case did those interest's have the power to
13087 protect themselves against this new competitive threat.
13090 I used these two cases as a way to frame the war that this book has
13091 been about. For here, too, a new technology is forcing the law to react.
13092 And here, too, we should ask, is the law following or resisting common
13093 sense? If common sense supports the law, what explains this common
13098 <!-- PAGE BREAK 262 -->
13099 When the issue is piracy, it is right for the law to back the
13100 copyright owners. The commercial piracy that I described is wrong and
13101 harmful, and the law should work to eliminate it. When the issue is
13102 p2p sharing, it is easy to understand why the law backs the owners
13103 still: Much of this sharing is wrong, even if much is harmless. When
13104 the issue is copyright terms for the Mickey Mouses of the world, it is
13105 possible still to understand why the law favors Hollywood: Most people
13106 don't recognize the reasons for limiting copyright terms; it is thus
13107 still possible to see good faith within the resistance.
13109 <indexterm><primary>Kelly, Kevin
</primary></indexterm>
13111 But when the copyright owners oppose a proposal such as the Eldred
13112 Act, then, finally, there is an example that lays bare the naked
13113 selfinterest driving this war. This act would free an extraordinary
13114 range of content that is otherwise unused. It wouldn't interfere with
13115 any copyright owner's desire to exercise continued control over his
13116 content. It would simply liberate what Kevin Kelly calls the
<quote>Dark
13117 Content
</quote> that fills archives around the world. So when the warriors
13118 oppose a change like this, we should ask one simple question:
13121 What does this industry really want?
13124 With very little effort, the warriors could protect their content. So
13125 the effort to block something like the Eldred Act is not really about
13126 protecting
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> content. The effort to block the
13127 Eldred Act is an effort to assure that nothing more passes into the
13128 public domain. It is another step to assure that the public domain
13129 will never compete, that there will be no use of content that is not
13130 commercially controlled, and that there will be no commercial use of
13131 content that doesn't require
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> permission
13135 The opposition to the Eldred Act reveals how extreme the other side
13136 is. The most powerful and sexy and well loved of lobbies really has as
13137 its aim not the protection of
<quote>property
</quote> but the rejection of a
13138 tradition. Their aim is not simply to protect what is
13139 theirs.
<emphasis>Their aim is to assure that all there is is what is
13143 It is not hard to understand why the warriors take this view. It is not
13144 hard to see why it would benefit them if the competition of the public
13146 <!-- PAGE BREAK 263 -->
13147 domain tied to the Internet could somehow be quashed. Just as RCA
13148 feared the competition of FM, they fear the competition of a public
13149 domain connected to a public that now has the means to create with it
13150 and to share its own creation.
13152 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
13153 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
13155 What is hard to understand is why the public takes this view. It is
13156 as if the law made airplanes trespassers. The MPAA stands with the
13157 Causbys and demands that their remote and useless property rights be
13158 respected, so that these remote and forgotten copyright holders might
13159 block the progress of others.
13162 All this seems to follow easily from this untroubled acceptance of the
13163 <quote>property
</quote> in intellectual property. Common sense supports it, and so
13164 long as it does, the assaults will rain down upon the technologies of
13165 the Internet. The consequence will be an increasing
<quote>permission
13166 society.
</quote> The past can be cultivated only if you can identify the
13167 owner and gain permission to build upon his work. The future will be
13168 controlled by this dead (and often unfindable) hand of the past.
13170 <!-- PAGE BREAK 264 -->
13173 <chapter label=
"" id=
"c-conclusion">
13174 <title>Conclusion
</title>
13175 <indexterm id='idxafricamedicationsforhivpatientsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>Africa, medications for HIV patients in
</primary></indexterm>
13176 <indexterm id='idxaidsmedications' class='startofrange'
><primary>AIDS medications
</primary></indexterm>
13177 <indexterm id='idxantiretroviraldrugs' class='startofrange'
><primary>antiretroviral drugs
</primary></indexterm>
13178 <indexterm id='idxdevelopingcountriesforeignpatentcostsin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>developing countries, foreign patent costs in
</primary></indexterm>
13179 <indexterm id='idxdrugspharmaceutical' class='startofrange'
><primary>drugs
</primary><secondary>pharmaceutical
</secondary></indexterm>
13180 <indexterm id='idxhivaidstherapies' class='startofrange'
><primary>HIV/AIDS therapies
</primary></indexterm>
13182 <emphasis role='strong'
>There are more
</emphasis> than
35 million
13183 people with the AIDS virus worldwide. Twenty-five million of them live
13184 in sub-Saharan Africa. Seventeen million have already died. Seventeen
13185 million Africans is proportional percentage-wise to seven million
13186 Americans. More importantly, it is seventeen million Africans.
13189 There is no cure for AIDS, but there are drugs to slow its
13190 progression. These antiretroviral therapies are still experimental,
13191 but they have already had a dramatic effect. In the United States,
13192 AIDS patients who regularly take a cocktail of these drugs increase
13193 their life expectancy by ten to twenty years. For some, the drugs make
13194 the disease almost invisible.
13197 These drugs are expensive. When they were first introduced in the
13198 United States, they cost between $
10,
000 and $
15,
000 per person per
13199 year. Today, some cost $
25,
000 per year. At these prices, of course, no
13200 African nation can afford the drugs for the vast majority of its
13202 $
15,
000 is thirty times the per capita gross national product of
13203 Zimbabwe. At these prices, the drugs are totally unavailable.
<footnote><para>
13204 <!-- f1. --> Commission on Intellectual Property Rights,
<quote>Final Report: Integrating
13205 Intellectual Property Rights and Development Policy
</quote> (London,
2002),
13207 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
55</ulink>. According to a World Health Organization press
13209 issued
9 July
2002, only
230,
000 of the
6 million who need drugs in
13210 the developing world receive them
—and half of them are in Brazil.
13213 <indexterm id='idxpatentsonpharmaceuticals' class='startofrange'
><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>on pharmaceuticals
</secondary></indexterm>
13214 <indexterm id='idxpharmaceuticalpatents' class='startofrange'
><primary>pharmaceutical patents
</primary></indexterm>
13216 <!-- PAGE BREAK 265 -->
13217 These prices are not high because the ingredients of the drugs are
13218 expensive. These prices are high because the drugs are protected by
13219 patents. The drug companies that produced these life-saving mixes
13220 enjoy at least a twenty-year monopoly for their inventions. They use
13221 that monopoly power to extract the most they can from the market. That
13222 power is in turn used to keep the prices high.
13225 There are many who are skeptical of patents, especially drug
13226 patents. I am not. Indeed, of all the areas of research that might be
13227 supported by patents, drug research is, in my view, the clearest case
13228 where patents are needed. The patent gives the drug company some
13229 assurance that if it is successful in inventing a new drug to treat a
13230 disease, it will be able to earn back its investment and more. This is
13231 socially an extremely valuable incentive. I am the last person who
13232 would argue that the law should abolish it, at least without other
13236 But it is one thing to support patents, even drug patents. It is
13237 another thing to determine how best to deal with a crisis. And as
13238 African leaders began to recognize the devastation that AIDS was
13239 bringing, they started looking for ways to import HIV treatments at
13240 costs significantly below the market price.
13242 <indexterm id='idxinternationallaw2' class='startofrange'
><primary>international law
</primary></indexterm>
13243 <indexterm id='idxparallelimportation' class='startofrange'
><primary>parallel importation
</primary></indexterm>
13244 <indexterm id='idxsouthafricarepublicofpharmaceuticalimportsby' class='startofrange'
><primary>South Africa, Republic of, pharmaceutical imports by
</primary></indexterm>
13246 In
1997, South Africa tried one tack. It passed a law to allow the
13247 importation of patented medicines that had been produced or sold in
13248 another nation's market with the consent of the patent owner. For
13249 example, if the drug was sold in India, it could be imported into
13250 Africa from India. This is called
<quote>parallel importation,
</quote> and it is
13251 generally permitted under international trade law and is specifically
13252 permitted within the European Union.
<footnote>
13255 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite,
<citetitle>Information Feudalism: Who
13256 Owns the Knowledge Economy?
</citetitle> (New York: The New Press,
2003),
37.
13257 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John
</primary></indexterm>
13258 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13261 <indexterm><primary>United States Trade Representative (USTR)
</primary></indexterm>
13263 However, the United States government opposed the bill. Indeed, more
13264 than opposed. As the International Intellectual Property Association
13265 characterized it,
<quote>The U.S. government pressured South Africa
…
13266 not to permit compulsory licensing or parallel
13267 imports.
</quote><footnote><para>
13269 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI),
<citetitle>Patent
13270 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
13271 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
13272 Organization
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.,
2000),
14, available at
13273 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
56</ulink>. For a
13274 firsthand account of the struggle over South Africa, see Hearing
13275 Before the Subcommittee on Criminal Justice, Drug Policy, and Human
13276 Resources, House Committee on Government Reform, H. Rep.,
1st sess.,
13277 Ser. No.
106-
126 (
22 July
1999),
150–57 (statement of James
13280 Through the Office of the United States Trade Representative, the
13281 government asked South Africa to change the law
—and to add
13282 pressure to that request, in
1998, the USTR listed South Africa for
13283 possible trade sanctions.
13284 <!-- PAGE BREAK 266 -->
13285 That same year, more than forty pharmaceutical companies began
13286 proceedings in the South African courts to challenge the government's
13287 actions. The United States was then joined by other governments from
13288 the EU. Their claim, and the claim of the pharmaceutical companies,
13289 was that South Africa was violating its obligations under
13290 international law by discriminating against a particular kind of
13291 patent
— pharmaceutical patents. The demand of these governments,
13292 with the United States in the lead, was that South Africa respect
13293 these patents as it respects any other patent, regardless of any
13294 effect on the treatment of AIDS within South Africa.
<footnote><para>
13296 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI),
<citetitle>Patent
13297 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
13298 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
13299 Organization
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.,
2000),
15.
</para></footnote>
13301 <indexterm startref='idxparallelimportation' class='endofrange'
/>
13303 We should place the intervention by the United States in context. No
13304 doubt patents are not the most important reason that Africans don't
13305 have access to drugs. Poverty and the total absence of an effective
13306 health care infrastructure matter more. But whether patents are the
13307 most important reason or not, the price of drugs has an effect on
13308 their demand, and patents affect price. And so, whether massive or
13309 marginal, there was an effect from our government's intervention to
13310 stop the flow of medications into Africa.
13313 By stopping the flow of HIV treatment into Africa, the United
13314 States government was not saving drugs for United States citizens.
13315 This is not like wheat (if they eat it, we can't); instead, the flow that the
13316 United States intervened to stop was, in effect, a flow of knowledge:
13317 information about how to take chemicals that exist within Africa, and
13318 turn those chemicals into drugs that would save
15 to
30 million lives.
13321 Nor was the intervention by the United States going to protect the
13322 profits of United States drug companies
—at least, not substantially. It
13323 was not as if these countries were in the position to buy the drugs for
13324 the prices the drug companies were charging. Again, the Africans are
13325 wildly too poor to afford these drugs at the offered prices. Stopping the
13326 parallel import of these drugs would not substantially increase the sales
13330 Instead, the argument in favor of restricting this flow of
13331 information, which was needed to save the lives of millions, was an
13333 <!-- PAGE BREAK 267 -->
13334 about the sanctity of property.
<footnote><para>
13336 See Sabin Russell,
<quote>New Crusade to Lower AIDS Drug Costs: Africa's
13337 Needs at Odds with Firms' Profit Motive,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
24
13338 May
1999, A1, available at
13339 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
57</ulink>
13340 (
<quote>compulsory licenses and gray markets pose a threat to the entire
13341 system of intellectual property protection
</quote>); Robert Weissman,
<quote>AIDS
13342 and Developing Countries: Democratizing Access to Essential
13343 Medicines,
</quote> <citetitle>Foreign Policy in Focus
</citetitle> 4:
23 (August
1999), available at
13344 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
58</ulink>
13345 (describing U.S. policy); John A. Harrelson,
<quote>TRIPS, Pharmaceutical
13346 Patents, and the HIV/AIDS Crisis: Finding the Proper Balance Between
13347 Intellectual Property Rights and Compassion, a Synopsis,
</quote> <citetitle>Widener Law
13348 Symposium Journal
</citetitle> (Spring
2001):
175.
13349 <!-- PAGE BREAK 333 -->
13351 It was because
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> would be violated that these
13352 drugs should not flow into Africa. It was a principle about the
13353 importance of
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> that led these government actors
13354 to intervene against the South African response to AIDS.
13356 <indexterm startref='idxsouthafricarepublicofpharmaceuticalimportsby' class='endofrange'
/>
13358 Now just step back for a moment. There will be a time thirty years
13359 from now when our children look back at us and ask, how could we have
13360 let this happen? How could we allow a policy to be pursued whose
13361 direct cost would be to speed the death of
15 to
30 million Africans,
13362 and whose only real benefit would be to uphold the
<quote>sanctity
</quote> of an
13363 idea? What possible justification could there ever be for a policy
13364 that results in so many deaths? What exactly is the insanity that
13365 would allow so many to die for such an abstraction?
13367 <indexterm id='idxcorporationsinpharmaceuticalindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>corporations
</primary><secondary>in pharmaceutical industry
</secondary></indexterm>
13369 Some blame the drug companies. I don't. They are corporations.
13370 Their managers are ordered by law to make money for the corporation.
13371 They push a certain patent policy not because of ideals, but because it is
13372 the policy that makes them the most money. And it only makes them the
13373 most money because of a certain corruption within our political system
—
13374 a corruption the drug companies are certainly not responsible for.
13377 The corruption is our own politicians' failure of integrity. For the
13378 drug companies would love
—they say, and I believe them
—to
13379 sell their drugs as cheaply as they can to countries in Africa and
13380 elsewhere. There are issues they'd have to resolve to make sure the
13381 drugs didn't get back into the United States, but those are mere
13382 problems of technology. They could be overcome.
13384 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsofdrugpatents' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>of drug patents
</secondary></indexterm>
13386 A different problem, however, could not be overcome. This is the
13387 fear of the grandstanding politician who would call the presidents of
13388 the drug companies before a Senate or House hearing, and ask,
<quote>How
13389 is it you can sell this HIV drug in Africa for only $
1 a pill, but the same
13390 drug would cost an American $
1,
500?
</quote> Because there is no
<quote>sound
13391 bite
</quote> answer to that question, its effect would be to induce regulation
13392 of prices in America. The drug companies thus avoid this spiral by
13393 avoiding the first step. They reinforce the idea that property should be
13394 <!-- PAGE BREAK 268 -->
13395 sacred. They adopt a rational strategy in an irrational context, with the
13396 unintended consequence that perhaps millions die. And that rational
13397 strategy thus becomes framed in terms of this ideal
—the sanctity of an
13398 idea called
<quote>intellectual property.
</quote>
13400 <indexterm startref='idxafricamedicationsforhivpatientsin' class='endofrange'
/>
13401 <indexterm startref='idxaidsmedications' class='endofrange'
/>
13402 <indexterm startref='idxantiretroviraldrugs' class='endofrange'
/>
13403 <indexterm startref='idxdevelopingcountriesforeignpatentcostsin2' class='endofrange'
/>
13404 <indexterm startref='idxdrugspharmaceutical' class='endofrange'
/>
13405 <indexterm startref='idxhivaidstherapies' class='endofrange'
/>
13406 <indexterm startref='idxcorporationsinpharmaceuticalindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
13408 So when the common sense of your child confronts you, what will
13409 you say? When the common sense of a generation finally revolts
13410 against what we have done, how will we justify what we have done?
13411 What is the argument?
13414 A sensible patent policy could endorse and strongly support the patent
13415 system without having to reach everyone everywhere in exactly the same
13416 way. Just as a sensible copyright policy could endorse and strongly
13417 support a copyright system without having to regulate the spread of
13418 culture perfectly and forever, a sensible patent policy could endorse
13419 and strongly support a patent system without having to block the
13420 spread of drugs to a country not rich enough to afford market prices
13421 in any case. A sensible policy, in other words, could be a balanced
13422 policy. For most of our history, both copyright and patent policies
13423 were balanced in just this sense.
13425 <indexterm startref='idxpatentsonpharmaceuticals' class='endofrange'
/>
13426 <indexterm startref='idxpharmaceuticalpatents' class='endofrange'
/>
13427 <indexterm startref='idxinternationallaw2' class='endofrange'
/>
13429 But we as a culture have lost this sense of balance. We have lost the
13430 critical eye that helps us see the difference between truth and
13431 extremism. A certain property fundamentalism, having no connection to
13432 our tradition, now reigns in this culture
—bizarrely, and with
13433 consequences more grave to the spread of ideas and culture than almost
13434 any other single policy decision that we as a democracy will make.
13436 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsofdrugpatents' class='endofrange'
/>
13438 <emphasis role='strong'
>A simple idea
</emphasis> blinds us, and under
13439 the cover of darkness, much happens that most of us would reject if
13440 any of us looked. So uncritically do we accept the idea of property in
13441 ideas that we don't even notice how monstrous it is to deny ideas to a
13442 people who are dying without them. So uncritically do we accept the
13443 idea of property in culture that we don't even question when the
13444 control of that property removes our
13445 <!-- PAGE BREAK 269 -->
13446 ability, as a people, to develop our culture democratically. Blindness
13447 becomes our common sense. And the challenge for anyone who would
13448 reclaim the right to cultivate our culture is to find a way to make
13449 this common sense open its eyes.
13452 So far, common sense sleeps. There is no revolt. Common sense
13453 does not yet see what there could be to revolt about. The extremism
13454 that now dominates this debate fits with ideas that seem natural, and
13455 that fit is reinforced by the RCAs of our day. They wage a frantic war
13456 to fight
<quote>piracy,
</quote> and devastate a culture for creativity. They defend
13457 the idea of
<quote>creative property,
</quote> while transforming real creators into
13458 modern-day sharecroppers. They are insulted by the idea that rights
13459 should be balanced, even though each of the major players in this
13460 content war was itself a beneficiary of a more balanced ideal. The
13461 hypocrisy reeks. Yet in a city like Washington, hypocrisy is not even
13462 noticed. Powerful lobbies, complex issues, and MTV attention spans
13463 produce the
<quote>perfect storm
</quote> for free culture.
13465 <indexterm><primary>academic journals
</primary></indexterm>
13466 <indexterm><primary>biomedical research
</primary></indexterm>
13467 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>international organization on issues of
</secondary></indexterm>
13468 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
13469 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
13470 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)
</primary></indexterm>
13471 <indexterm><primary>Public Library of Science (PLoS)
</primary></indexterm>
13472 <indexterm><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>public projects in
</secondary></indexterm>
13473 <indexterm><primary>single nucleotied polymorphisms (SNPs)
</primary></indexterm>
13474 <indexterm><primary>Wellcome Trust
</primary></indexterm>
13475 <indexterm id='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Intellectual Property Organization (WIPO)
</primary></indexterm>
13476 <indexterm><primary>World Wide Web
</primary></indexterm>
13477 <indexterm><primary>Global Positioning System
</primary></indexterm>
13478 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
13479 <indexterm id='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='startofrange'
><primary>biomedical research
</primary></indexterm>
13481 <emphasis role='strong'
>In August
2003</emphasis>, a fight broke out
13482 in the United States about a decision by the World Intellectual
13483 Property Organization to cancel a meeting.
<footnote><para>
13484 <!-- f6. --> Jonathan Krim,
<quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
13485 August
2003, E1, available at
13486 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
59</ulink>; William New,
<quote>Global Group's
13487 Shift on `Open Source' Meeting Spurs Stir,
</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13488 Daily
</citetitle>,
19 August
2003, available at
13489 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
60</ulink>; William New,
<quote>U.S. Official
13490 Opposes `Open Source' Talks at WIPO,
</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13491 Daily
</citetitle>,
19 August
2003, available at
13492 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
61</ulink>.
13494 At the request of a wide range of interests, WIPO had decided to hold
13495 a meeting to discuss
<quote>open and collaborative projects to create public
13496 goods.
</quote> These are projects that have been successful in producing
13497 public goods without relying exclusively upon a proprietary use of
13498 intellectual property. Examples include the Internet and the World
13499 Wide Web, both of which were developed on the basis of protocols in
13500 the public domain. It included an emerging trend to support open
13501 academic journals, including the Public Library of Science project
13502 that I describe in chapter
13503 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"c-afterword"/>. It
13504 included a project to develop single nucleotide polymorphisms (SNPs),
13505 which are thought to have great significance in biomedical
13506 research. (That nonprofit project comprised a consortium of the
13507 Wellcome Trust and pharmaceutical and technological companies,
13508 including Amersham Biosciences, AstraZeneca,
13509 <!-- PAGE BREAK 270 -->
13510 Aventis, Bayer, Bristol-Myers Squibb, Hoffmann-La Roche,
13511 Glaxo-SmithKline, IBM, Motorola, Novartis, Pfizer, and Searle.) It
13512 included the Global Positioning System, which Ronald Reagan set free
13513 in the early
1980s. And it included
<quote>open source and free software.
</quote>
13515 <indexterm startref='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='endofrange'
/>
13517 The aim of the meeting was to consider this wide range of projects
13518 from one common perspective: that none of these projects relied upon
13519 intellectual property extremism. Instead, in all of them, intellectual
13520 property was balanced by agreements to keep access open or to impose
13521 limitations on the way in which proprietary claims might be used.
13523 <indexterm id='idxlessiglawrenceininternationaldebateonintellectualproperty' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>in international debate on intellectual property
</secondary></indexterm>
13525 From the perspective of this book, then, the conference was ideal.
<footnote><para>
13526 <!-- f7. --> I should disclose that I was one of the people who asked WIPO for the
13529 The projects within its scope included both commercial and
13530 noncommercial work. They primarily involved science, but from many
13531 perspectives. And WIPO was an ideal venue for this discussion, since
13532 WIPO is the preeminent international body dealing with intellectual
13535 <indexterm id='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)
</primary></indexterm>
13537 Indeed, I was once publicly scolded for not recognizing this fact
13538 about WIPO. In February
2003, I delivered a keynote address to a
13539 preparatory conference for the World Summit on the Information Society
13540 (WSIS). At a press conference before the address, I was asked what I
13541 would say. I responded that I would be talking a little about the
13542 importance of balance in intellectual property for the development of
13543 an information society. The moderator for the event then promptly
13544 interrupted to inform me and the assembled reporters that no question
13545 about intellectual property would be discussed by WSIS, since those
13546 questions were the exclusive domain of WIPO. In the talk that I had
13547 prepared, I had actually made the issue of intellectual property
13548 relatively minor. But after this astonishing statement, I made
13549 intellectual property the sole focus of my talk. There was no way to
13550 talk about an
<quote>Information Society
</quote> unless one also talked about the
13551 range of information and culture that would be free. My talk did not
13552 make my immoderate moderator very happy. And she was no doubt correct
13553 that the scope of intellectual property protections was ordinarily the
13555 <!-- PAGE BREAK 271 -->
13556 WIPO. But in my view, there couldn't be too much of a conversation
13557 about how much intellectual property is needed, since in my view, the
13558 very idea of balance in intellectual property had been lost.
13561 So whether or not WSIS can discuss balance in intellectual property, I
13562 had thought it was taken for granted that WIPO could and should. And
13563 thus the meeting about
<quote>open and collaborative projects to create
13564 public goods
</quote> seemed perfectly appropriate within the WIPO agenda.
13566 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof' class='endofrange'
/>
13567 <indexterm startref='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo' class='endofrange'
/>
13568 <indexterm startref='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='endofrange'
/>
13569 <indexterm id='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss' class='startofrange'
><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
13570 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation
</primary></indexterm>
13571 <indexterm id='idxmicrosoftonfreesoftware' class='startofrange'
><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>on free software
</secondary></indexterm>
13573 But there is one project within that list that is highly
13574 controversial, at least among lobbyists. That project is
<quote>open source
13575 and free software.
</quote> Microsoft in particular is wary of discussion of
13576 the subject. From its perspective, a conference to discuss open source
13577 and free software would be like a conference to discuss Apple's
13578 operating system. Both open source and free software compete with
13579 Microsoft's software. And internationally, many governments have begun
13580 to explore requirements that they use open source or free software,
13581 rather than
<quote>proprietary software,
</quote> for their own internal uses.
13583 <indexterm><primary><quote>copyleft
</quote> licenses
</primary></indexterm>
13584 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
13585 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
13586 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
13588 I don't mean to enter that debate here. It is important only to
13589 make clear that the distinction is not between commercial and
13590 noncommercial software. There are many important companies that depend
13591 fundamentally upon open source and free software, IBM being the most
13592 prominent. IBM is increasingly shifting its focus to the GNU/Linux
13593 operating system, the most famous bit of
<quote>free software
</quote>—and IBM
13594 is emphatically a commercial entity. Thus, to support
<quote>open source and
13595 free software
</quote> is not to oppose commercial entities. It is, instead,
13596 to support a mode of software development that is different from
13597 Microsoft's.
<footnote><para>
13599 Microsoft's position about free and open source software is more
13600 sophisticated. As it has repeatedly asserted, it has no problem with
13601 <quote>open source
</quote> software or software in the public domain. Microsoft's
13602 principal opposition is to
<quote>free software
</quote> licensed under a
<quote>copyleft
</quote>
13603 license, meaning a license that requires the licensee to adopt the
13604 same terms on any derivative work. See Bradford L. Smith,
<quote>The Future
13605 of Software: Enabling the Marketplace to Decide,
</quote> <citetitle>Government Policy
13606 Toward Open Source Software
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.: AEI-Brookings Joint
13607 Center for Regulatory Studies, American Enterprise Institute for
13608 Public Policy Research,
2002),
69, available at
13609 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
62</ulink>. See also
13610 Craig Mundie, Microsoft senior vice president,
<citetitle>The Commercial Software
13611 Model
</citetitle>, discussion at New York University Stern School of Business (
3
13612 May
2001), available at
13613 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
63</ulink>.
13616 <indexterm startref='idxlessiglawrenceininternationaldebateonintellectualproperty' class='endofrange'
/>
13617 <indexterm><primary>General Public License (GPL)
</primary></indexterm>
13618 <indexterm><primary>GPL (General Public License)
</primary></indexterm>
13620 More important for our purposes, to support
<quote>open source and free
13621 software
</quote> is not to oppose copyright.
<quote>Open source and free software
</quote>
13622 is not software in the public domain. Instead, like Microsoft's
13623 software, the copyright owners of free and open source software insist
13624 quite strongly that the terms of their software license be respected
13626 <!-- PAGE BREAK 272 -->
13627 adopters of free and open source software. The terms of that license
13628 are no doubt different from the terms of a proprietary software
13629 license. Free software licensed under the General Public License
13630 (GPL), for example, requires that the source code for the software be
13631 made available by anyone who modifies and redistributes the
13632 software. But that requirement is effective only if copyright governs
13633 software. If copyright did not govern software, then free software
13634 could not impose the same kind of requirements on its adopters. It
13635 thus depends upon copyright law just as Microsoft does.
13637 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>international organization on issues of
</secondary></indexterm>
13638 <indexterm id='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Intellectual Property Organization (WIPO)
</primary></indexterm>
13639 <indexterm id='idxkrimjonathan' class='startofrange'
><primary>Krim, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
13640 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>WIPO meeting opposed by
</secondary></indexterm>
13642 It is therefore understandable that as a proprietary software
13643 developer, Microsoft would oppose this WIPO meeting, and
13644 understandable that it would use its lobbyists to get the United
13645 States government to oppose it, as well. And indeed, that is just what
13646 was reported to have happened. According to Jonathan Krim of the
13647 <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>, Microsoft's lobbyists succeeded in getting the United
13648 States government to veto the meeting.
<footnote><para>
13650 Krim,
<quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,
</quote> available at
<ulink
13651 url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
64</ulink>.
13653 And without U.S. backing, the meeting was canceled.
13656 I don't blame Microsoft for doing what it can to advance its own
13657 interests, consistent with the law. And lobbying governments is
13658 plainly consistent with the law. There was nothing surprising about
13659 its lobbying here, and nothing terribly surprising about the most
13660 powerful software producer in the United States having succeeded in
13661 its lobbying efforts.
13663 <indexterm startref='idxmicrosoftonfreesoftware' class='endofrange'
/>
13664 <indexterm><primary>Boland, Lois
</primary></indexterm>
13666 What was surprising was the United States government's reason for
13667 opposing the meeting. Again, as reported by Krim, Lois Boland, acting
13668 director of international relations for the U.S. Patent and Trademark
13669 Office, explained that
<quote>open-source software runs counter to the
13670 mission of WIPO, which is to promote intellectual-property rights.
</quote>
13671 She is quoted as saying,
<quote>To hold a meeting which has as its purpose
13672 to disclaim or waive such rights seems to us to be contrary to the
13673 goals of WIPO.
</quote>
13675 <indexterm startref='idxkrimjonathan' class='endofrange'
/>
13677 These statements are astonishing on a number of levels.
13679 <indexterm startref='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss' class='endofrange'
/>
13680 <!-- PAGE BREAK 273 -->
13682 First, they are just flat wrong. As I described, most open source and
13683 free software relies fundamentally upon the intellectual property
13684 right called
<quote>copyright
</quote>. Without it, restrictions imposed by those
13685 licenses wouldn't work. Thus, to say it
<quote>runs counter
</quote> to the mission
13686 of promoting intellectual property rights reveals an extraordinary gap
13687 in understanding
—the sort of mistake that is excusable in a
13688 first-year law student, but an embarrassment from a high government
13689 official dealing with intellectual property issues.
13691 <indexterm><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)
</primary></indexterm>
13692 <indexterm><primary>drugs
</primary><secondary>pharmaceutical
</secondary></indexterm>
13693 <indexterm><primary>generic drugs
</primary></indexterm>
13694 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>on pharmaceuticals
</secondary></indexterm>
13696 Second, who ever said that WIPO's exclusive aim was to
<quote>promote
</quote>
13697 intellectual property maximally? As I had been scolded at the
13698 preparatory conference of WSIS, WIPO is to consider not only how best
13699 to protect intellectual property, but also what the best balance of
13700 intellectual property is. As every economist and lawyer knows, the
13701 hard question in intellectual property law is to find that
13702 balance. But that there should be limits is, I had thought,
13703 uncontested. One wants to ask Ms. Boland, are generic drugs (drugs
13704 based on drugs whose patent has expired) contrary to the WIPO mission?
13705 Does the public domain weaken intellectual property? Would it have
13706 been better if the protocols of the Internet had been patented?
13708 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
13710 Third, even if one believed that the purpose of WIPO was to maximize
13711 intellectual property rights, in our tradition, intellectual property
13712 rights are held by individuals and corporations. They get to decide
13713 what to do with those rights because, again, they are
13714 <emphasis>their
</emphasis> rights. If they want to
<quote>waive
</quote> or
13715 <quote>disclaim
</quote> their rights, that is, within our tradition, totally
13716 appropriate. When Bill Gates gives away more than $
20 billion to do
13717 good in the world, that is not inconsistent with the objectives of the
13718 property system. That is, on the contrary, just what a property system
13719 is supposed to be about: giving individuals the right to decide what
13720 to do with
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> property.
13722 <indexterm id='idxboland' class='startofrange'
><primary>Boland, Lois
</primary></indexterm>
13724 When Ms. Boland says that there is something wrong with a meeting
13725 <quote>which has as its purpose to disclaim or waive such rights,
</quote> she's
13726 saying that WIPO has an interest in interfering with the choices of
13727 <!-- PAGE BREAK 274 -->
13728 the individuals who own intellectual property rights. That somehow,
13729 WIPO's objective should be to stop an individual from
<quote>waiving
</quote> or
13730 <quote>disclaiming
</quote> an intellectual property right. That the interest of
13731 WIPO is not just that intellectual property rights be maximized, but
13732 that they also should be exercised in the most extreme and restrictive
13735 <indexterm id='idxfeudalsystem' class='startofrange'
><primary>feudal system
</primary></indexterm>
13736 <indexterm id='idxpropertyrightsfeudalsystemof' class='startofrange'
><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>feudal system of
</secondary></indexterm>
13738 There is a history of just such a property system that is well known
13739 in the Anglo-American tradition. It is called
<quote>feudalism.
</quote> Under
13740 feudalism, not only was property held by a relatively small number of
13741 individuals and entities. And not only were the rights that ran with
13742 that property powerful and extensive. But the feudal system had a
13743 strong interest in assuring that property holders within that system
13744 not weaken feudalism by liberating people or property within their
13745 control to the free market. Feudalism depended upon maximum control
13746 and concentration. It fought any freedom that might interfere with
13749 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13750 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John
</primary></indexterm>
13752 As Peter Drahos and John Braithwaite relate, this is precisely the
13753 choice we are now making about intellectual property.
<footnote><para>
13755 See Drahos with Braithwaite,
<citetitle>Information Feudalism
</citetitle>,
210–20.
13756 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13758 We will have an information society. That much is certain. Our only
13759 choice now is whether that information society will be
13760 <emphasis>free
</emphasis> or
<emphasis>feudal
</emphasis>. The trend is
13763 <indexterm startref='idxfeudalsystem' class='endofrange'
/>
13764 <indexterm startref='idxpropertyrightsfeudalsystemof' class='endofrange'
/>
13766 When this battle broke, I blogged it. A spirited debate within the
13767 comment section ensued. Ms. Boland had a number of supporters who
13768 tried to show why her comments made sense. But there was one comment
13769 that was particularly depressing for me. An anonymous poster wrote,
13772 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof2' class='endofrange'
/>
13773 <indexterm startref='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo2' class='endofrange'
/>
13775 George, you misunderstand Lessig: He's only talking about the world as
13776 it should be (
<quote>the goal of WIPO, and the goal of any government,
13777 should be to promote the right balance of intellectual property rights,
13778 not simply to promote intellectual property rights
</quote>), not as it is. If
13779 we were talking about the world as it is, then of course Boland didn't
13780 say anything wrong. But in the world
13781 <!-- PAGE BREAK 275 -->
13782 as Lessig would have it, then of course she did. Always pay attention
13783 to the distinction between Lessig's world and ours.
13787 I missed the irony the first time I read it. I read it quickly and
13788 thought the poster was supporting the idea that seeking balance was
13789 what our government should be doing. (Of course, my criticism of Ms.
13790 Boland was not about whether she was seeking balance or not; my
13791 criticism was that her comments betrayed a first-year law student's
13792 mistake. I have no illusion about the extremism of our government,
13793 whether Republican or Democrat. My only illusion apparently is about
13794 whether our government should speak the truth or not.)
13796 <indexterm startref='idxboland' class='endofrange'
/>
13798 Obviously, however, the poster was not supporting that idea. Instead,
13799 the poster was ridiculing the very idea that in the real world, the
13800 <quote>goal
</quote> of a government should be
<quote>to promote the right balance
</quote> of
13801 intellectual property. That was obviously silly to him. And it
13802 obviously betrayed, he believed, my own silly utopianism.
<quote>Typical for
13803 an academic,
</quote> the poster might well have continued.
13806 I understand criticism of academic utopianism. I think utopianism is
13807 silly, too, and I'd be the first to poke fun at the absurdly
13808 unrealistic ideals of academics throughout history (and not just in
13809 our own country's history).
13812 But when it has become silly to suppose that the role of our
13813 government should be to
<quote>seek balance,
</quote> then count me with the silly,
13814 for that means that this has become quite serious indeed. If it should
13815 be obvious to everyone that the government does not seek balance, that
13816 the government is simply the tool of the most powerful lobbyists, that
13817 the idea of holding the government to a different standard is absurd,
13818 that the idea of demanding of the government that it speak truth and
13819 not lies is just na
ïve, then who have we, the most powerful
13820 democracy in the world, become?
13823 It might be crazy to expect a high government official to speak
13824 the truth. It might be crazy to believe that government policy will be
13825 something more than the handmaiden of the most powerful interests.
13826 <!-- PAGE BREAK 276 -->
13827 It might be crazy to argue that we should preserve a tradition that has
13828 been part of our tradition for most of our history
—free culture.
13831 If this is crazy, then let there be more crazies. Soon.
13833 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace
</primary></indexterm>
13834 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
13835 <indexterm><primary>Turner, Ted
</primary></indexterm>
13837 <emphasis role='strong'
>There are moments
</emphasis> of hope in this
13838 struggle. And moments that surprise. When the FCC was considering
13839 relaxing ownership rules, which would thereby further increase the
13840 concentration in media ownership, an extraordinary bipartisan
13841 coalition formed to fight this change. For perhaps the first time in
13842 history, interests as diverse as the NRA, the ACLU, Moveon.org,
13843 William Safire, Ted Turner, and CodePink Women for Peace organized to
13844 oppose this change in FCC policy. An astonishing
700,
000 letters were
13845 sent to the FCC, demanding more hearings and a different result.
13848 This activism did not stop the FCC, but soon after, a broad coalition
13849 in the Senate voted to reverse the FCC decision. The hostile hearings
13850 leading up to that vote revealed just how powerful this movement had
13851 become. There was no substantial support for the FCC's decision, and
13852 there was broad and sustained support for fighting further
13853 concentration in the media.
13856 But even this movement misses an important piece of the puzzle.
13857 Largeness as such is not bad. Freedom is not threatened just because
13858 some become very rich, or because there are only a handful of big
13859 players. The poor quality of Big Macs or Quarter Pounders does not
13860 mean that you can't get a good hamburger from somewhere else.
13863 The danger in media concentration comes not from the concentration,
13864 but instead from the feudalism that this concentration, tied to the
13865 change in copyright, produces. It is not just that there are a few
13866 powerful companies that control an ever expanding slice of the
13867 media. It is that this concentration can call upon an equally bloated
13868 range of rights
—property rights of a historically extreme
13869 form
—that makes their bigness bad.
13871 <!-- PAGE BREAK 277 -->
13873 It is therefore significant that so many would rally to demand
13874 competition and increased diversity. Still, if the rally is understood
13875 as being about bigness alone, it is not terribly surprising. We
13876 Americans have a long history of fighting
<quote>big,
</quote> wisely or not. That
13877 we could be motivated to fight
<quote>big
</quote> again is not something new.
13880 It would be something new, and something very important, if an equal
13881 number could be rallied to fight the increasing extremism built within
13882 the idea of
<quote>intellectual property.
</quote> Not because balance is alien to
13883 our tradition; indeed, as I've argued, balance is our tradition. But
13884 because the muscle to think critically about the scope of anything
13885 called
<quote>property
</quote> is not well exercised within this tradition anymore.
13888 If we were Achilles, this would be our heel. This would be the place
13891 <indexterm><primary>Dylan, Bob
</primary></indexterm>
13893 <emphasis role='strong'
>As I write
</emphasis> these final words, the
13894 news is filled with stories about the RIAA lawsuits against almost
13895 three hundred individuals.
<footnote><para>
13897 John Borland,
<quote>RIAA Sues
261 File Swappers,
</quote> CNET News.com, September
13899 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
65</ulink>; Paul
13900 R. La Monica,
<quote>Music Industry Sues Swappers,
</quote> CNN/Money,
8 September
13902 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
66</ulink>; Soni
13903 Sangha and Phyllis Furman with Robert Gearty,
<quote>Sued for a Song,
13904 N.Y.C.
12-Yr-Old Among
261 Cited as Sharers,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Daily News
</citetitle>,
9
13905 September
2003,
3; Frank Ahrens,
<quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised
13906 Targets; Single Mother in Calif.,
12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among
13907 Defendants,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, E1; Katie Dean,
13908 <quote>Schoolgirl Settles with RIAA,
</quote> <citetitle>Wired News
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003,
13910 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
67</ulink>.
13912 Eminem has just been sued for
<quote>sampling
</quote> someone else's
13913 music.
<footnote><para>
13915 Jon Wiederhorn,
<quote>Eminem Gets Sued
… by a Little Old Lady,
</quote>
13916 mtv.com,
17 September
2003, available at
13917 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
68</ulink>.
13919 The story about Bob Dylan
<quote>stealing
</quote> from a Japanese author has just
13920 finished making the rounds.
<footnote><para>
13922 Kenji Hall, Associated Press,
<quote>Japanese Book May Be Inspiration for
13923 Dylan Songs,
</quote> Kansascity.com,
9 July
2003, available at
13924 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
69</ulink>.
13925 <!-- PAGE BREAK 334 -->
13927 An insider from Hollywood
—who insists he must remain
13928 anonymous
—reports
<quote>an amazing conversation with these studio
13929 guys. They've got extraordinary [old] content that they'd love to use
13930 but can't because they can't begin to clear the rights. They've got
13931 scores of kids who could do amazing things with the content, but it
13932 would take scores of lawyers to clean it first.
</quote> Congressmen are
13933 talking about deputizing computer viruses to bring down computers
13934 thought to violate the law. Universities are threatening expulsion for
13935 kids who use a computer to share content.
13937 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
13938 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
13939 <indexterm><primary>BBC
</primary></indexterm>
13940 <indexterm><primary>Brazil, free culture in
</primary></indexterm>
13941 <indexterm><primary>Creative Commons
</primary></indexterm>
13942 <indexterm><primary>Gil, Gilberto
</primary></indexterm>
13943 <indexterm><primary>United Kingdom
</primary><secondary>public creative archive in
</secondary></indexterm>
13945 Yet on the other side of the Atlantic, the BBC has just announced
13946 that it will build a
<quote>Creative Archive,
</quote> from which British citizens can
13947 download BBC content, and rip, mix, and burn it.
<footnote><para>
13948 <!-- f14. --> <quote>BBC Plans to Open Up Its Archive to the Public,
</quote> BBC press release,
13949 24 August
2003, available at
13950 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
70</ulink>.
13952 And in Brazil, the culture minister, Gilberto Gil, himself a folk hero
13953 of Brazilian music, has joined with Creative Commons to release
13954 content and free licenses in that Latin American
13955 country.
<footnote><para>
13957 <quote>Creative Commons and Brazil,
</quote> Creative Commons Weblog,
6 August
2003,
13959 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
71</ulink>.
13961 <!-- PAGE BREAK 278 -->
13962 I've told a dark story. The truth is more mixed. A technology has
13963 given us a new freedom. Slowly, some begin to understand that this
13964 freedom need not mean anarchy. We can carry a free culture into the
13965 twenty-first century, without artists losing and without the potential of
13966 digital technology being destroyed. It will take some thought, and
13967 more importantly, it will take some will to transform the RCAs of our
13968 day into the Causbys.
13971 Common sense must revolt. It must act to free culture. Soon, if this
13972 potential is ever to be realized.
13974 <!-- PAGE BREAK 279 -->
13978 <chapter label=
"" id=
"c-afterword">
13979 <title>Afterword
</title>
13982 <!-- PAGE BREAK 280 -->
13983 <emphasis role='strong'
>At least some
</emphasis> who have read this
13984 far will agree with me that something must be done to change where we
13985 are heading. The balance of this book maps what might be done.
13988 I divide this map into two parts: that which anyone can do now,
13989 and that which requires the help of lawmakers. If there is one lesson
13990 that we can draw from the history of remaking common sense, it is that
13991 it requires remaking how many people think about the very same issue.
13994 That means this movement must begin in the streets. It must recruit a
13995 significant number of parents, teachers, librarians, creators,
13996 authors, musicians, filmmakers, scientists
—all to tell this
13997 story in their own words, and to tell their neighbors why this battle
14001 Once this movement has its effect in the streets, it has some hope of
14002 having an effect in Washington. We are still a democracy. What people
14003 think matters. Not as much as it should, at least when an RCA stands
14004 opposed, but still, it matters. And thus, in the second part below, I
14005 sketch changes that Congress could make to better secure a free culture.
14007 <!-- PAGE BREAK 281 -->
14009 <section id=
"usnow">
14010 <title>Us, now
</title>
14012 <emphasis role='strong'
>Common sense
</emphasis> is with the copyright
14013 warriors because the debate so far has been framed at the
14014 extremes
—as a grand either/or: either property or anarchy,
14015 either total control or artists won't be paid. If that really is the
14016 choice, then the warriors should win.
14019 The mistake here is the error of the excluded middle. There are
14020 extremes in this debate, but the extremes are not all that there
14021 is. There are those who believe in maximal copyright
—<quote>All Rights
14022 Reserved
</quote>— and those who reject copyright
—<quote>No Rights
14023 Reserved.
</quote> The
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts believe that you should ask
14024 permission before you
<quote>use
</quote> a copyrighted work in any way. The
<quote>No
14025 Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts believe you should be able to do with content
14026 as you wish, regardless of whether you have permission or not.
14028 <indexterm id='idxinternetdevelopmentof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
14029 <indexterm id='idxinternetinitialfreecharacterof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>initial free character of
</secondary></indexterm>
14031 When the Internet was first born, its initial architecture effectively
14032 tilted in the
<quote>no rights reserved
</quote> direction. Content could be copied
14033 perfectly and cheaply; rights could not easily be controlled. Thus,
14034 regardless of anyone's desire, the effective regime of copyright under
14037 <!-- PAGE BREAK 282 -->
14038 original design of the Internet was
<quote>no rights reserved.
</quote> Content was
14039 <quote>taken
</quote> regardless of the rights. Any rights were effectively
14043 This initial character produced a reaction (opposite, but not quite
14044 equal) by copyright owners. That reaction has been the topic of this
14045 book. Through legislation, litigation, and changes to the network's
14046 design, copyright holders have been able to change the essential
14047 character of the environment of the original Internet. If the original
14048 architecture made the effective default
<quote>no rights reserved,
</quote> the
14049 future architecture will make the effective default
<quote>all rights
14050 reserved.
</quote> The architecture and law that surround the Internet's
14051 design will increasingly produce an environment where all use of
14052 content requires permission. The
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> world that defines
14053 the Internet today will become a
<quote>get permission to cut and paste
</quote>
14054 world that is a creator's nightmare.
14056 <indexterm startref='idxinternetdevelopmentof2' class='endofrange'
/>
14057 <indexterm startref='idxinternetinitialfreecharacterof' class='endofrange'
/>
14059 What's needed is a way to say something in the middle
—neither
14060 <quote>all rights reserved
</quote> nor
<quote>no rights reserved
</quote> but
<quote>some rights
14061 reserved
</quote>— and thus a way to respect copyrights but enable
14062 creators to free content as they see fit. In other words, we need a
14063 way to restore a set of freedoms that we could just take for granted
14066 <section id=
"examples">
14067 <title>Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples
</title>
14068 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturerestorationeffortsonpreviousaspectsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>restoration efforts on previous aspects of
</secondary></indexterm>
14069 <indexterm id='idxbrowsing' class='startofrange'
><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
14070 <indexterm id='idxprivacyrights2' class='startofrange'
><primary>privacy rights
</primary></indexterm>
14072 If you step back from the battle I've been describing here, you will
14073 recognize this problem from other contexts. Think about
14074 privacy. Before the Internet, most of us didn't have to worry much
14075 about data about our lives that we broadcast to the world. If you
14076 walked into a bookstore and browsed through some of the works of Karl
14077 Marx, you didn't need to worry about explaining your browsing habits
14078 to your neighbors or boss. The
<quote>privacy
</quote> of your browsing habits was
14082 What made it assured?
14084 <!-- PAGE BREAK 283 -->
14086 Well, if we think in terms of the modalities I described in chapter
14087 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>, your
14088 privacy was assured because of an inefficient architecture for
14089 gathering data and hence a market constraint (cost) on anyone who
14090 wanted to gather that data. If you were a suspected spy for North
14091 Korea, working for the CIA, no doubt your privacy would not be
14092 assured. But that's because the CIA would (we hope) find it valuable
14093 enough to spend the thousands required to track you. But for most of
14094 us (again, we can hope), spying doesn't pay. The highly inefficient
14095 architecture of real space means we all enjoy a fairly robust amount
14096 of privacy. That privacy is guaranteed to us by friction. Not by law
14097 (there is no law protecting
<quote>privacy
</quote> in public places), and in many
14098 places, not by norms (snooping and gossip are just fun), but instead,
14099 by the costs that friction imposes on anyone who would want to spy.
14101 <indexterm id='idxamazon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Amazon
</primary></indexterm>
14102 <indexterm><primary>cookies, Internet
</primary></indexterm>
14103 <indexterm id='idxinternetprivacyprotectionon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>privacy protection on
</secondary></indexterm>
14105 Enter the Internet, where the cost of tracking browsing in particular
14106 has become quite tiny. If you're a customer at Amazon, then as you
14107 browse the pages, Amazon collects the data about what you've looked
14108 at. You know this because at the side of the page, there's a list of
14109 <quote>recently viewed
</quote> pages. Now, because of the architecture of the Net
14110 and the function of cookies on the Net, it is easier to collect the
14111 data than not. The friction has disappeared, and hence any
<quote>privacy
</quote>
14112 protected by the friction disappears, too.
14114 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>privacy rights in use of
</secondary></indexterm>
14116 Amazon, of course, is not the problem. But we might begin to worry
14117 about libraries. If you're one of those crazy lefties who thinks that
14118 people should have the
<quote>right
</quote> to browse in a library without the
14119 government knowing which books you look at (I'm one of those lefties,
14120 too), then this change in the technology of monitoring might concern
14121 you. If it becomes simple to gather and sort who does what in
14122 electronic spaces, then the friction-induced privacy of yesterday
14125 <indexterm startref='idxbrowsing' class='endofrange'
/>
14126 <indexterm startref='idxamazon' class='endofrange'
/>
14128 It is this reality that explains the push of many to define
<quote>privacy
</quote>
14129 on the Internet. It is the recognition that technology can remove what
14130 friction before gave us that leads many to push for laws to do what
14131 friction did.
<footnote><para>
14134 See, for example, Marc Rotenberg,
<quote>Fair Information Practices and the
14135 Architecture of Privacy (What Larry Doesn't Get),
</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Technology
14136 Law Review
</citetitle> 1 (
2001): par.
6–18, available at
14138 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
72</ulink>
14139 (describing examples in which technology defines privacy policy). See
14140 also Jeffrey Rosen,
<citetitle>The Naked Crowd: Reclaiming Security and Freedom
14141 in an Anxious Age
</citetitle> (New York: Random House,
2004) (mapping tradeoffs
14142 between technology and privacy).
</para></footnote>
14143 And whether you're in favor of those laws or not, it is the pattern
14144 that is important here. We must take affirmative steps to secure a
14146 <!-- PAGE BREAK 284 -->
14147 kind of freedom that was passively provided before. A change in
14148 technology now forces those who believe in privacy to affirmatively
14149 act where, before, privacy was given by default.
14151 <indexterm startref='idxprivacyrights2' class='endofrange'
/>
14152 <indexterm startref='idxinternetprivacyprotectionon' class='endofrange'
/>
14153 <indexterm><primary>Data General
</primary></indexterm>
14154 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
14155 <indexterm id='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss2' class='startofrange'
><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
14157 A similar story could be told about the birth of the free software
14158 movement. When computers with software were first made available
14159 commercially, the software
—both the source code and the
14160 binaries
— was free. You couldn't run a program written for a
14161 Data General machine on an IBM machine, so Data General and IBM didn't
14162 care much about controlling their software.
14164 <indexterm id='idxstallmanrichard' class='startofrange'
><primary>Stallman, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
14166 That was the world Richard Stallman was born into, and while he was a
14167 researcher at MIT, he grew to love the community that developed when
14168 one was free to explore and tinker with the software that ran on
14169 machines. Being a smart sort himself, and a talented programmer,
14170 Stallman grew to depend upon the freedom to add to or modify other
14174 In an academic setting, at least, that's not a terribly radical
14175 idea. In a math department, anyone would be free to tinker with a
14176 proof that someone offered. If you thought you had a better way to
14177 prove a theorem, you could take what someone else did and change
14178 it. In a classics department, if you believed a colleague's
14179 translation of a recently discovered text was flawed, you were free to
14180 improve it. Thus, to Stallman, it seemed obvious that you should be
14181 free to tinker with and improve the code that ran a machine. This,
14182 too, was knowledge. Why shouldn't it be open for criticism like
14185 <indexterm id='idxproprietarycode' class='startofrange'
><primary>proprietary code
</primary></indexterm>
14187 No one answered that question. Instead, the architecture of revenue
14188 for computing changed. As it became possible to import programs from
14189 one system to another, it became economically attractive (at least in
14190 the view of some) to hide the code of your program. So, too, as
14191 companies started selling peripherals for mainframe systems. If I
14192 could just take your printer driver and copy it, then that would make
14193 it easier for me to sell a printer to the market than it was for you.
14196 Thus, the practice of proprietary code began to spread, and by the
14197 early
1980s, Stallman found himself surrounded by proprietary code.
14198 <!-- PAGE BREAK 285 -->
14199 The world of free software had been erased by a change in the
14200 economics of computing. And as he believed, if he did nothing about
14201 it, then the freedom to change and share software would be
14202 fundamentally weakened.
14204 <indexterm startref='idxproprietarycode' class='endofrange'
/>
14205 <indexterm><primary>Torvalds, Linus
</primary></indexterm>
14207 Therefore, in
1984, Stallman began a project to build a free operating
14208 system, so that at least a strain of free software would survive. That
14209 was the birth of the GNU project, into which Linus Torvalds's
<quote>Linux
</quote>
14210 kernel was added to produce the GNU/Linux operating system.
14211 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
14212 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
14215 Stallman's technique was to use copyright law to build a world of
14216 software that must be kept free. Software licensed under the Free
14217 Software Foundation's GPL cannot be modified and distributed unless
14218 the source code for that software is made available as well. Thus,
14219 anyone building upon GPL'd software would have to make their buildings
14220 free as well. This would assure, Stallman believed, that an ecology of
14221 code would develop that remained free for others to build upon. His
14222 fundamental goal was freedom; innovative creative code was a
14226 Stallman was thus doing for software what privacy advocates now
14227 do for privacy. He was seeking a way to rebuild a kind of freedom that
14228 was taken for granted before. Through the affirmative use of licenses
14229 that bind copyrighted code, Stallman was affirmatively reclaiming a
14230 space where free software would survive. He was actively protecting
14231 what before had been passively guaranteed.
14233 <indexterm startref='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss2' class='endofrange'
/>
14234 <indexterm startref='idxstallmanrichard' class='endofrange'
/>
14235 <indexterm id='idxacademicjournals' class='startofrange'
><primary>academic journals
</primary></indexterm>
14236 <indexterm id='idxscientificjournals' class='startofrange'
><primary>scientific journals
</primary></indexterm>
14238 Finally, consider a very recent example that more directly resonates
14239 with the story of this book. This is the shift in the way academic and
14240 scientific journals are produced.
14242 <indexterm id='idxlexisandwestlaw' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lexis and Westlaw
</primary></indexterm>
14243 <indexterm id='idxlawdatabasesofcasereportsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>databases of case reports in
</secondary></indexterm>
14244 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>journals in
</secondary></indexterm>
14245 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>access to opinions of
</secondary></indexterm>
14247 As digital technologies develop, it is becoming obvious to many that
14248 printing thousands of copies of journals every month and sending them
14249 to libraries is perhaps not the most efficient way to distribute
14250 knowledge. Instead, journals are increasingly becoming electronic, and
14251 libraries and their users are given access to these electronic
14252 journals through password-protected sites. Something similar to this
14253 has been happening in law for almost thirty years: Lexis and Westlaw
14254 have had electronic versions of case reports available to subscribers
14255 to their service. Although a Supreme Court opinion is not
14256 copyrighted, and anyone is free to go to a library and read it, Lexis
14257 and Westlaw are also free
14258 <!-- PAGE BREAK 286 -->
14259 to charge users for the privilege of gaining access to that Supreme
14260 Court opinion through their respective services.
14262 <indexterm><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>access fees for material in
</secondary></indexterm>
14263 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainlicensesystemforrebuildingof' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>license system for rebuilding of
</secondary></indexterm>
14265 There's nothing wrong in general with this, and indeed, the ability to
14266 charge for access to even public domain materials is a good incentive
14267 for people to develop new and innovative ways to spread knowledge.
14268 The law has agreed, which is why Lexis and Westlaw have been allowed
14269 to flourish. And if there's nothing wrong with selling the public
14270 domain, then there could be nothing wrong, in principle, with selling
14271 access to material that is not in the public domain.
14273 <indexterm startref='idxlexisandwestlaw' class='endofrange'
/>
14274 <indexterm startref='idxlawdatabasesofcasereportsin' class='endofrange'
/>
14276 But what if the only way to get access to social and scientific data
14277 was through proprietary services? What if no one had the ability to
14278 browse this data except by paying for a subscription?
14280 <indexterm id='idxlibrariesjournalsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>journals in
</secondary></indexterm>
14282 As many are beginning to notice, this is increasingly the reality with
14283 scientific journals. When these journals were distributed in paper
14284 form, libraries could make the journals available to anyone who had
14285 access to the library. Thus, patients with cancer could become cancer
14286 experts because the library gave them access. Or patients trying to
14287 understand the risks of a certain treatment could research those risks
14288 by reading all available articles about that treatment. This freedom
14289 was therefore a function of the institution of libraries (norms) and
14290 the technology of paper journals (architecture)
—namely, that it
14291 was very hard to control access to a paper journal.
14294 As journals become electronic, however, the publishers are demanding
14295 that libraries not give the general public access to the
14296 journals. This means that the freedoms provided by print journals in
14297 public libraries begin to disappear. Thus, as with privacy and with
14298 software, a changing technology and market shrink a freedom taken for
14301 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)
</primary></indexterm>
14302 <indexterm><primary>Public Library of Science (PLoS)
</primary></indexterm>
14304 This shrinking freedom has led many to take affirmative steps to
14305 restore the freedom that has been lost. The Public Library of Science
14306 (PLoS), for example, is a nonprofit corporation dedicated to making
14307 scientific research available to anyone with a Web connection. Authors
14308 <!-- PAGE BREAK 287 -->
14309 of scientific work submit that work to the Public Library of Science.
14310 That work is then subject to peer review. If accepted, the work is
14311 then deposited in a public, electronic archive and made permanently
14312 available for free. PLoS also sells a print version of its work, but
14313 the copyright for the print journal does not inhibit the right of
14314 anyone to redistribute the work for free.
14316 <indexterm startref='idxlibrariesjournalsin' class='endofrange'
/>
14318 This is one of many such efforts to restore a freedom taken for
14319 granted before, but now threatened by changing technology and markets.
14320 There's no doubt that this alternative competes with the traditional
14321 publishers and their efforts to make money from the exclusive
14322 distribution of content. But competition in our tradition is
14323 presumptively a good
—especially when it helps spread knowledge
14326 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturerestorationeffortsonpreviousaspectsof' class='endofrange'
/>
14327 <indexterm startref='idxacademicjournals' class='endofrange'
/>
14328 <indexterm startref='idxscientificjournals' class='endofrange'
/>
14330 <section id=
"oneidea">
14331 <title>Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea
</title>
14332 <indexterm id='idxcreativecommons' class='startofrange'
><primary>Creative Commons
</primary></indexterm>
14334 The same strategy could be applied to culture, as a response to the
14335 increasing control effected through law and technology.
14337 <indexterm><primary>Stanford University
</primary></indexterm>
14339 Enter the Creative Commons. The Creative Commons is a nonprofit
14340 corporation established in Massachusetts, but with its home at
14341 Stanford University. Its aim is to build a layer of
14342 <emphasis>reasonable
</emphasis> copyright on top of the extremes that
14343 now reign. It does this by making it easy for people to build upon
14344 other people's work, by making it simple for creators to express the
14345 freedom for others to take and build upon their work. Simple tags,
14346 tied to human-readable descriptions, tied to bulletproof licenses,
14347 make this possible.
14350 <emphasis>Simple
</emphasis>—which means without a middleman, or
14351 without a lawyer. By developing a free set of licenses that people
14352 can attach to their content, Creative Commons aims to mark a range of
14353 content that can easily, and reliably, be built upon. These tags are
14354 then linked to machine-readable versions of the license that enable
14355 computers automatically to identify content that can easily be
14356 shared. These three expressions together
—a legal license, a
14357 human-readable description, and
14358 <!-- PAGE BREAK 288 -->
14359 machine-readable tags
—constitute a Creative Commons license. A
14360 Creative Commons license constitutes a grant of freedom to anyone who
14361 accesses the license, and more importantly, an expression of the ideal
14362 that the person associated with the license believes in something
14363 different than the
<quote>All
</quote> or
<quote>No
</quote> extremes. Content is marked with the
14364 CC mark, which does not mean that copyright is waived, but that
14365 certain freedoms are given.
14368 These freedoms are beyond the freedoms promised by fair use. Their
14369 precise contours depend upon the choices the creator makes. The
14370 creator can choose a license that permits any use, so long as
14371 attribution is given. She can choose a license that permits only
14372 noncommercial use. She can choose a license that permits any use so
14373 long as the same freedoms are given to other uses (
<quote>share and share
14374 alike
</quote>). Or any use so long as no derivative use is made. Or any use
14375 at all within developing nations. Or any sampling use, so long as full
14376 copies are not made. Or lastly, any educational use.
14379 These choices thus establish a range of freedoms beyond the default of
14380 copyright law. They also enable freedoms that go beyond traditional
14381 fair use. And most importantly, they express these freedoms in a way
14382 that subsequent users can use and rely upon without the need to hire a
14383 lawyer. Creative Commons thus aims to build a layer of content,
14384 governed by a layer of reasonable copyright law, that others can build
14385 upon. Voluntary choice of individuals and creators will make this
14386 content available. And that content will in turn enable us to rebuild
14389 <indexterm><primary>Garlick, Mia
</primary></indexterm>
14391 This is just one project among many within the Creative Commons. And
14392 of course, Creative Commons is not the only organization pursuing such
14393 freedoms. But the point that distinguishes the Creative Commons from
14394 many is that we are not interested only in talking about a public
14395 domain or in getting legislators to help build a public domain. Our
14396 aim is to build a movement of consumers and producers
14397 <!-- PAGE BREAK 289 -->
14398 of content (
<quote>content conducers,
</quote> as attorney Mia Garlick calls them)
14399 who help build the public domain and, by their work, demonstrate the
14400 importance of the public domain to other creativity.
14402 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
14404 The aim is not to fight the
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts. The aim is to
14405 complement them. The problems that the law creates for us as a culture
14406 are produced by insane and unintended consequences of laws written
14407 centuries ago, applied to a technology that only Jefferson could have
14408 imagined. The rules may well have made sense against a background of
14409 technologies from centuries ago, but they do not make sense against
14410 the background of digital technologies. New rules
—with different
14411 freedoms, expressed in ways so that humans without lawyers can use
14412 them
—are needed. Creative Commons gives people a way effectively
14413 to begin to build those rules.
14415 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of
</secondary></indexterm>
14417 Why would creators participate in giving up total control? Some
14418 participate to better spread their content. Cory Doctorow, for
14419 example, is a science fiction author. His first novel,
<citetitle>Down and Out in
14420 the Magic Kingdom
</citetitle>, was released on-line and for free, under a Creative
14421 Commons license, on the same day that it went on sale in bookstores.
14424 Why would a publisher ever agree to this? I suspect his publisher
14425 reasoned like this: There are two groups of people out there: (
1)
14426 those who will buy Cory's book whether or not it's on the Internet,
14427 and (
2) those who may never hear of Cory's book, if it isn't made
14428 available for free on the Internet. Some part of (
1) will download
14429 Cory's book instead of buying it. Call them bad-(
1)s. Some part of (
2)
14430 will download Cory's book, like it, and then decide to buy it. Call
14431 them (
2)-goods. If there are more (
2)-goods than bad-(
1)s, the
14432 strategy of releasing Cory's book free on-line will probably
14433 <emphasis>increase
</emphasis> sales of Cory's book.
14436 Indeed, the experience of his publisher clearly supports that
14437 conclusion. The book's first printing was exhausted months before the
14438 publisher had expected. This first novel of a science fiction author
14439 was a total success.
14441 <indexterm><primary>Free for All (Wayner)
</primary></indexterm>
14442 <indexterm><primary>Wayner, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
14444 The idea that free content might increase the value of nonfree content
14445 was confirmed by the experience of another author. Peter Wayner,
14446 <!-- PAGE BREAK 290 -->
14447 who wrote a book about the free software movement titled
<citetitle>Free for All
</citetitle>,
14448 made an electronic version of his book free on-line under a Creative
14449 Commons license after the book went out of print. He then monitored
14450 used book store prices for the book. As predicted, as the number of
14451 downloads increased, the used book price for his book increased, as
14454 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='endofrange'
/>
14455 <indexterm><primary>Public Enemy
</primary></indexterm>
14456 <indexterm><primary>rap music
</primary></indexterm>
14457 <indexterm><primary>Leaphart, Walter
</primary></indexterm>
14459 These are examples of using the Commons to better spread proprietary
14460 content. I believe that is a wonderful and common use of the
14461 Commons. There are others who use Creative Commons licenses for other
14462 reasons. Many who use the
<quote>sampling license
</quote> do so because anything
14463 else would be hypocritical. The sampling license says that others are
14464 free, for commercial or noncommercial purposes, to sample content from
14465 the licensed work; they are just not free to make full copies of the
14466 licensed work available to others. This is consistent with their own
14467 art
—they, too, sample from others. Because the
14468 <emphasis>legal
</emphasis> costs of sampling are so high (Walter
14469 Leaphart, manager of the rap group Public Enemy, which was born
14470 sampling the music of others, has stated that he does not
<quote>allow
</quote>
14471 Public Enemy to sample anymore, because the legal costs are so
14472 high
<footnote><para>
14474 <citetitle>Willful Infringement: A Report from the Front Lines of the Real
14475 Culture Wars
</citetitle> (
2003), produced by Jed Horovitz, directed by Greg
14476 Hittelman, a Fiat Lucre production, available at
14477 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
72</ulink>.
14478 </para></footnote>),
14479 these artists release into the creative environment content
14480 that others can build upon, so that their form of creativity might grow.
14483 Finally, there are many who mark their content with a Creative Commons
14484 license just because they want to express to others the importance of
14485 balance in this debate. If you just go along with the system as it is,
14486 you are effectively saying you believe in the
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote>
14487 model. Good for you, but many do not. Many believe that however
14488 appropriate that rule is for Hollywood and freaks, it is not an
14489 appropriate description of how most creators view the rights
14490 associated with their content. The Creative Commons license expresses
14491 this notion of
<quote>Some Rights Reserved,
</quote> and gives many the chance to
14495 In the first six months of the Creative Commons experiment, over
14496 1 million objects were licensed with these free-culture licenses. The next
14497 step is partnerships with middleware content providers to help them
14498 build into their technologies simple ways for users to mark their content
14500 <!-- PAGE BREAK 291 -->
14501 with Creative Commons freedoms. Then the next step is to watch and
14502 celebrate creators who build content based upon content set free.
14505 These are first steps to rebuilding a public domain. They are not
14506 mere arguments; they are action. Building a public domain is the first
14507 step to showing people how important that domain is to creativity and
14508 innovation. Creative Commons relies upon voluntary steps to achieve
14509 this rebuilding. They will lead to a world in which more than voluntary
14510 steps are possible.
14513 Creative Commons is just one example of voluntary efforts by
14514 individuals and creators to change the mix of rights that now govern
14515 the creative field. The project does not compete with copyright; it
14516 complements it. Its aim is not to defeat the rights of authors, but to
14517 make it easier for authors and creators to exercise their rights more
14518 flexibly and cheaply. That difference, we believe, will enable
14519 creativity to spread more easily.
14521 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainlicensesystemforrebuildingof' class='endofrange'
/>
14522 <indexterm startref='idxcreativecommons' class='endofrange'
/>
14523 <!-- PAGE BREAK 292 -->
14526 <section id=
"themsoon">
14527 <title>Them, soon
</title>
14529 <emphasis role='strong'
>We will
</emphasis> not reclaim a free culture
14530 by individual action alone. It will also take important reforms of
14531 laws. We have a long way to go before the politicians will listen to
14532 these ideas and implement these reforms. But that also means that we
14533 have time to build awareness around the changes that we need.
14536 In this chapter, I outline five kinds of changes: four that are general,
14537 and one that's specific to the most heated battle of the day, music. Each
14538 is a step, not an end. But any of these steps would carry us a long way
14542 <section id=
"formalities">
14543 <title>1. More Formalities
</title>
14545 If you buy a house, you have to record the sale in a deed. If you buy land
14546 upon which to build a house, you have to record the purchase in a deed.
14547 If you buy a car, you get a bill of sale and register the car. If you buy an
14548 airplane ticket, it has your name on it.
14551 <!-- PAGE BREAK 293 -->
14552 These are all formalities associated with property. They are
14553 requirements that we all must bear if we want our property to be
14557 In contrast, under current copyright law, you automatically get a
14558 copyright, regardless of whether you comply with any formality. You
14559 don't have to register. You don't even have to mark your content. The
14560 default is control, and
<quote>formalities
</quote> are banished.
14566 As I suggested in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
14567 linkend=
"property-i"/>, the motivation to abolish formalities was a
14568 good one. In the world before digital technologies, formalities
14569 imposed a burden on copyright holders without much benefit. Thus, it
14570 was progress when the law relaxed the formal requirements that a
14571 copyright owner must bear to protect and secure his work. Those
14572 formalities were getting in the way.
14575 But the Internet changes all this. Formalities today need not be a
14576 burden. Rather, the world without formalities is the world that
14577 burdens creativity. Today, there is no simple way to know who owns
14578 what, or with whom one must deal in order to use or build upon the
14579 creative work of others. There are no records, there is no system to
14580 trace
— there is no simple way to know how to get permission. Yet
14581 given the massive increase in the scope of copyright's rule, getting
14582 permission is a necessary step for any work that builds upon our
14583 past. And thus, the
<emphasis>lack
</emphasis> of formalities forces
14584 many into silence where they otherwise could speak.
14587 The law should therefore change this requirement
<footnote><para>
14589 The proposal I am advancing here would apply to American works only.
14590 Obviously, I believe it would be beneficial for the same idea to be
14591 adopted by other countries as well.
</para></footnote>—but it
14592 should not change it by going back to the old, broken system. We
14593 should require formalities, but we should establish a system that will
14594 create the incentives to minimize the burden of these formalities.
14597 The important formalities are three: marking copyrighted work,
14598 registering copyrights, and renewing the claim to
14599 copyright. Traditionally, the first of these three was something the
14600 copyright owner did; the second two were something the government
14601 did. But a revised system of formalities would banish the government
14602 from the process, except for the sole purpose of approving standards
14603 developed by others.
14606 <!-- PAGE BREAK 294 -->
14608 <section id=
"registration">
14609 <title>Registration and renewal
</title>
14611 Under the old system, a copyright owner had to file a registration
14612 with the Copyright Office to register or renew a copyright. When
14613 filing that registration, the copyright owner paid a fee. As with most
14614 government agencies, the Copyright Office had little incentive to
14615 minimize the burden of registration; it also had little incentive to
14616 minimize the fee. And as the Copyright Office is not a main target of
14617 government policymaking, the office has historically been terribly
14618 underfunded. Thus, when people who know something about the process
14619 hear this idea about formalities, their first reaction is
14620 panic
—nothing could be worse than forcing people to deal with
14621 the mess that is the Copyright Office.
14624 Yet it is always astonishing to me that we, who come from a tradition
14625 of extraordinary innovation in governmental design, can no longer
14626 think innovatively about how governmental functions can be designed.
14627 Just because there is a public purpose to a government role, it
14628 doesn't follow that the government must actually administer the
14629 role. Instead, we should be creating incentives for private parties to
14630 serve the public, subject to standards that the government sets.
14633 In the context of registration, one obvious model is the Internet.
14634 There are at least
32 million Web sites registered around the world.
14635 Domain name owners for these Web sites have to pay a fee to keep their
14636 registration alive. In the main top-level domains (.com, .org, .net),
14637 there is a central registry. The actual registrations are, however,
14638 performed by many competing registrars. That competition drives the
14639 cost of registering down, and more importantly, it drives the ease
14640 with which registration occurs up.
14643 We should adopt a similar model for the registration and renewal of
14644 copyrights. The Copyright Office may well serve as the central
14645 registry, but it should not be in the registrar business. Instead, it
14646 should establish a database, and a set of standards for registrars. It
14647 should approve registrars that meet its standards. Those registrars
14648 would then compete with one another to deliver the cheapest and
14649 simplest systems for registering and renewing copyrights. That
14650 competition would substantially lower the burden of this
14651 formality
—while producing a database
14652 <!-- PAGE BREAK 295 -->
14653 of registrations that would facilitate the licensing of content.
14657 <section id=
"marking">
14658 <title>Marking
</title>
14660 It used to be that the failure to include a copyright notice on a
14661 creative work meant that the copyright was forfeited. That was a harsh
14662 punishment for failing to comply with a regulatory rule
—akin to
14663 imposing the death penalty for a parking ticket in the world of
14664 creative rights. Here again, there is no reason that a marking
14665 requirement needs to be enforced in this way. And more importantly,
14666 there is no reason a marking requirement needs to be enforced
14667 uniformly across all media.
14670 The aim of marking is to signal to the public that this work is
14671 copyrighted and that the author wants to enforce his rights. The mark
14672 also makes it easy to locate a copyright owner to secure permission to
14676 One of the problems the copyright system confronted early on was
14677 that different copyrighted works had to be differently marked. It wasn't
14678 clear how or where a statue was to be marked, or a record, or a film. A
14679 new marking requirement could solve these problems by recognizing
14680 the differences in media, and by allowing the system of marking to
14681 evolve as technologies enable it to. The system could enable a special
14682 signal from the failure to mark
—not the loss of the copyright, but the
14683 loss of the right to punish someone for failing to get permission first.
14686 Let's start with the last point. If a copyright owner allows his work
14687 to be published without a copyright notice, the consequence of that
14688 failure need not be that the copyright is lost. The consequence could
14689 instead be that anyone has the right to use this work, until the
14690 copyright owner complains and demonstrates that it is his work and he
14691 doesn't give permission.
<footnote><para>
14693 There would be a complication with derivative works that I have not
14694 solved here. In my view, the law of derivatives creates a more complicated
14695 system than is justified by the marginal incentive it creates.
14697 The meaning of an unmarked work would therefore be
<quote>use unless someone
14698 complains.
</quote> If someone does complain, then the obligation would be to
14699 stop using the work in any new
14700 <!-- PAGE BREAK 296 -->
14701 work from then on though no penalty would attach for existing uses.
14702 This would create a strong incentive for copyright owners to mark
14706 That in turn raises the question about how work should best be
14707 marked. Here again, the system needs to adjust as the technologies
14708 evolve. The best way to ensure that the system evolves is to limit the
14709 Copyright Office's role to that of approving standards for marking
14710 content that have been crafted elsewhere.
14712 <indexterm><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>copyright marking of
</secondary></indexterm>
14714 For example, if a recording industry association devises a method for
14715 marking CDs, it would propose that to the Copyright Office. The
14716 Copyright Office would hold a hearing, at which other proposals could
14717 be made. The Copyright Office would then select the proposal that it
14718 judged preferable, and it would base that choice
14719 <emphasis>solely
</emphasis> upon the consideration of which method
14720 could best be integrated into the registration and renewal system. We
14721 would not count on the government to innovate; but we would count on
14722 the government to keep the product of innovation in line with its
14723 other important functions.
14726 Finally, marking content clearly would simplify registration
14727 requirements. If photographs were marked by author and year, there
14728 would be little reason not to allow a photographer to reregister, for
14729 example, all photographs taken in a particular year in one quick
14730 step. The aim of the formality is not to burden the creator; the
14731 system itself should be kept as simple as possible.
14734 The objective of formalities is to make things clear. The existing
14735 system does nothing to make things clear. Indeed, it seems designed to
14736 make things unclear.
14739 If formalities such as registration were reinstated, one of the most
14740 difficult aspects of relying upon the public domain would be removed.
14741 It would be simple to identify what content is presumptively free; it
14742 would be simple to identify who controls the rights for a particular
14743 kind of content; it would be simple to assert those rights, and to renew
14744 that assertion at the appropriate time.
14747 <!-- PAGE BREAK 297 -->
14750 <section id=
"shortterms">
14751 <title>2. Shorter Terms
</title>
14753 The term of copyright has gone from fourteen years to ninety-five
14754 years for corporate authors, and life of the author plus seventy years for
14758 In
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>, I proposed a seventy-five-year term,
14759 granted in five-year increments with a requirement of renewal every
14760 five years. That seemed radical enough at the time. But after we lost
14761 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>, the proposals became even more
14762 radical.
<citetitle>The Economist
</citetitle> endorsed a proposal for a fourteen-year
14763 copyright term.
<footnote><para>
14766 <quote>A Radical Rethink,
</quote> <citetitle>Economist
</citetitle>,
366:
8308 (
25 January
2003):
15,
14768 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
74</ulink>.
14770 Others have proposed tying the term to the term for patents.
14773 I agree with those who believe that we need a radical change in
14774 copyright's term. But whether fourteen years or seventy-five, there
14775 are four principles that are important to keep in mind about copyright
14778 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
14781 <emphasis>Keep it short:
</emphasis> The term should be as long as
14782 necessary to give incentives to create, but no longer. If it were tied
14783 to very strong protections for authors (so authors were able to
14784 reclaim rights from publishers), rights to the same work (not
14785 derivative works) might be extended further. The key is not to tie the
14786 work up with legal regulations when it no longer benefits an author.
14790 <emphasis>Keep it simple:
</emphasis> The line between the public
14791 domain and protected content must be kept clear. Lawyers like the
14792 fuzziness of
<quote>fair use,
</quote> and the distinction between
<quote>ideas
</quote> and
14793 <quote>expression.
</quote> That kind of law gives them lots of work. But our
14794 framers had a simpler idea in mind: protected versus unprotected. The
14795 value of short terms is that there is little need to build exceptions
14796 into copyright when the term itself is kept short. A clear and active
14797 <quote>lawyer-free zone
</quote> makes the complexities of
<quote>fair use
</quote> and
14798 <quote>idea/expression
</quote> less necessary to navigate.
14799 <!-- PAGE BREAK 298 -->
14802 <indexterm><primary>veterans' pensions
</primary></indexterm>
14805 <emphasis>Keep it alive:
</emphasis> Copyright should have to be
14806 renewed. Especially if the maximum term is long, the copyright owner
14807 should be required to signal periodically that he wants the protection
14808 continued. This need not be an onerous burden, but there is no reason
14809 this monopoly protection has to be granted for free. On average, it
14810 takes ninety minutes for a veteran to apply for a
14811 pension.
<footnote><para>
14813 Department of Veterans Affairs, Veteran's Application for Compensation
14814 and/or Pension, VA Form
21-
526 (OMB Approved No.
2900-
0001),
14816 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
75</ulink>.
14818 If we make veterans suffer that burden, I don't see why we couldn't
14819 require authors to spend ten minutes every fifty years to file a
14824 <emphasis>Keep it prospective:
</emphasis> Whatever the term of
14825 copyright should be, the clearest lesson that economists teach is that
14826 a term once given should not be extended. It might have been a mistake
14827 in
1923 for the law to offer authors only a fifty-six-year term. I
14828 don't think so, but it's possible. If it was a mistake, then the
14829 consequence was that we got fewer authors to create in
1923 than we
14830 otherwise would have. But we can't correct that mistake today by
14831 increasing the term. No matter what we do today, we will not increase
14832 the number of authors who wrote in
1923. Of course, we can increase
14833 the reward that those who write now get (or alternatively, increase
14834 the copyright burden that smothers many works that are today
14835 invisible). But increasing their reward will not increase their
14836 creativity in
1923. What's not done is not done, and there's nothing
14837 we can do about that now.
</para></listitem>
14840 These changes together should produce an
<emphasis>average
</emphasis>
14841 copyright term that is much shorter than the current term. Until
1976,
14842 the average term was just
32.2 years. We should be aiming for the
14846 No doubt the extremists will call these ideas
<quote>radical.
</quote> (After all, I
14847 call them
<quote>extremists.
</quote>) But again, the term I recommended was longer
14848 than the term under Richard Nixon. How
<quote>radical
</quote> can it be to ask for
14849 a more generous copyright law than Richard Nixon presided over?
14852 <!-- PAGE BREAK 299 -->
14855 <section id=
"freefairuse">
14856 <title>3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use
</title>
14857 <indexterm><primary>land ownership, air traffic and
</primary></indexterm>
14858 <indexterm><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
14860 As I observed at the beginning of this book, property law originally
14861 granted property owners the right to control their property from the
14862 ground to the heavens. The airplane came along. The scope of property
14863 rights quickly changed. There was no fuss, no constitutional
14864 challenge. It made no sense anymore to grant that much control, given
14865 the emergence of that new technology.
14868 Our Constitution gives Congress the power to give authors
<quote>exclusive
14869 right
</quote> to
<quote>their writings.
</quote> Congress has given authors an exclusive
14870 right to
<quote>their writings
</quote> plus any derivative writings (made by
14871 others) that are sufficiently close to the author's original
14872 work. Thus, if I write a book, and you base a movie on that book, I
14873 have the power to deny you the right to release that movie, even
14874 though that movie is not
<quote>my writing.
</quote>
14876 <indexterm><primary>Kaplan, Benjamin
</primary></indexterm>
14878 Congress granted the beginnings of this right in
1870, when it
14879 expanded the exclusive right of copyright to include a right to
14880 control translations and dramatizations of a work.
<footnote><para>
14882 Benjamin Kaplan,
<citetitle>An Unhurried View of Copyright
</citetitle> (New York: Columbia
14883 University Press,
1967),
32.
14885 The courts have expanded it slowly through judicial interpretation
14886 ever since. This expansion has been commented upon by one of the law's
14887 greatest judges, Judge Benjamin Kaplan.
14891 So inured have we become to the extension of the monopoly to a
14892 large range of so-called derivative works, that we no longer sense
14893 the oddity of accepting such an enlargement of copyright while
14894 yet intoning the abracadabra of idea and expression.
<footnote><para>
14895 <!-- f6. --> Ibid.,
56.
14900 I think it's time to recognize that there are airplanes in this field and
14901 the expansiveness of these rights of derivative use no longer make
14902 sense. More precisely, they don't make sense for the period of time that
14903 a copyright runs. And they don't make sense as an amorphous grant.
14904 Consider each limitation in turn.
14907 <emphasis>Term:
</emphasis> If Congress wants to grant a derivative
14908 right, then that right should be for a much shorter term. It makes
14909 sense to protect John
14911 <!-- PAGE BREAK 300 -->
14912 Grisham's right to sell the movie rights to his latest novel (or at least
14913 I'm willing to assume it does); but it does not make sense for that right
14914 to run for the same term as the underlying copyright. The derivative
14915 right could be important in inducing creativity; it is not important long
14916 after the creative work is done.
14917 <indexterm><primary>Grisham, John
</primary></indexterm>
14920 <emphasis>Scope:
</emphasis> Likewise should the scope of derivative
14921 rights be narrowed. Again, there are some cases in which derivative
14922 rights are important. Those should be specified. But the law should
14923 draw clear lines around regulated and unregulated uses of copyrighted
14924 material. When all
<quote>reuse
</quote> of creative material was within the control
14925 of businesses, perhaps it made sense to require lawyers to negotiate
14926 the lines. It no longer makes sense for lawyers to negotiate the
14927 lines. Think about all the creative possibilities that digital
14928 technologies enable; now imagine pouring molasses into the
14929 machines. That's what this general requirement of permission does to
14930 the creative process. Smothers it.
14932 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
14934 This was the point that Alben made when describing the making of the
14935 Clint Eastwood CD. While it makes sense to require negotiation for
14936 foreseeable derivative rights
—turning a book into a movie, or a
14937 poem into a musical score
—it doesn't make sense to require
14938 negotiation for the unforeseeable. Here, a statutory right would make
14942 In each of these cases, the law should mark the uses that are
14943 protected, and the presumption should be that other uses are not
14944 protected. This is the reverse of the recommendation of my colleague
14945 Paul Goldstein.
<footnote>
14948 Paul Goldstein,
<citetitle>Copyright's Highway: From Gutenberg to the Celestial
14949 Jukebox
</citetitle> (Stanford: Stanford University Press,
2003),
187–216.
14950 <indexterm><primary>Goldstein, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
14952 His view is that the law should be written so that
14953 expanded protections follow expanded uses.
14956 Goldstein's analysis would make perfect sense if the cost of the legal
14957 system were small. But as we are currently seeing in the context of
14958 the Internet, the uncertainty about the scope of protection, and the
14959 incentives to protect existing architectures of revenue, combined with
14960 a strong copyright, weaken the process of innovation.
14963 The law could remedy this problem either by removing protection
14964 <!-- PAGE BREAK 301 -->
14965 beyond the part explicitly drawn or by granting reuse rights upon
14966 certain statutory conditions. Either way, the effect would be to free
14967 a great deal of culture to others to cultivate. And under a statutory
14968 rights regime, that reuse would earn artists more income.
14972 <section id=
"liberatemusic">
14973 <title>4. Liberate the Music
—Again
</title>
14975 The battle that got this whole war going was about music, so it
14976 wouldn't be fair to end this book without addressing the issue that
14977 is, to most people, most pressing
—music. There is no other
14978 policy issue that better teaches the lessons of this book than the
14979 battles around the sharing of music.
14982 The appeal of file-sharing music was the crack cocaine of the
14983 Internet's growth. It drove demand for access to the Internet more
14984 powerfully than any other single application. It was the Internet's
14985 killer app
—possibly in two senses of that word. It no doubt was
14986 the application that drove demand for bandwidth. It may well be the
14987 application that drives demand for regulations that in the end kill
14988 innovation on the network.
14991 The aim of copyright, with respect to content in general and music in
14992 particular, is to create the incentives for music to be composed,
14993 performed, and, most importantly, spread. The law does this by giving
14994 an exclusive right to a composer to control public performances of his
14995 work, and to a performing artist to control copies of her performance.
14998 File-sharing networks complicate this model by enabling the spread of
14999 content for which the performer has not been paid. But of course,
15000 that's not all the file-sharing networks do. As I described in chapter
15001 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"piracy"/>, they enable
15002 four different kinds of sharing:
15004 <orderedlist numeration=
"upperalpha">
15007 There are some who are using sharing networks as substitutes
15008 for purchasing CDs.
15012 There are also some who are using sharing networks to sample,
15013 on the way to purchasing CDs.
15016 <!-- PAGE BREAK 302 -->
15018 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
15019 content that is no longer sold but is still under copyright or that
15020 would have been too cumbersome to buy off the Net.
15024 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
15025 content that is not copyrighted or to get access that the copyright
15026 owner plainly endorses.
15029 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
15030 <indexterm><primary>VCRs
</primary></indexterm>
15032 Any reform of the law needs to keep these different uses in focus. It
15033 must avoid burdening type D even if it aims to eliminate type A. The
15034 eagerness with which the law aims to eliminate type A, moreover,
15035 should depend upon the magnitude of type B. As with VCRs, if the net
15036 effect of sharing is actually not very harmful, the need for regulation is
15037 significantly weakened.
15040 As I said in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
15041 linkend=
"piracy"/>, the actual harm caused by sharing is
15042 controversial. For the purposes of this chapter, however, I assume
15043 the harm is real. I assume, in other words, that type A sharing is
15044 significantly greater than type B, and is the dominant use of sharing
15048 Nonetheless, there is a crucial fact about the current technological
15049 context that we must keep in mind if we are to understand how the law
15053 Today, file sharing is addictive. In ten years, it won't be. It is
15054 addictive today because it is the easiest way to gain access to a
15055 broad range of content. It won't be the easiest way to get access to
15056 a broad range of content in ten years. Today, access to the Internet
15057 is cumbersome and slow
—we in the United States are lucky to have
15058 broadband service at
1.5 MBs, and very rarely do we get service at
15059 that speed both up and down. Although wireless access is growing, most
15060 of us still get access across wires. Most only gain access through a
15061 machine with a keyboard. The idea of the always on, always connected
15062 Internet is mainly just an idea.
15065 But it will become a reality, and that means the way we get access to
15066 the Internet today is a technology in transition. Policy makers should
15067 not make policy on the basis of technology in transition. They should
15068 <!-- PAGE BREAK 303 -->
15069 make policy on the basis of where the technology is going. The
15070 question should not be, how should the law regulate sharing in this
15071 world? The question should be, what law will we require when the
15072 network becomes the network it is clearly becoming? That network is
15073 one in which every machine with electricity is essentially on the Net;
15074 where everywhere you are
—except maybe the desert or the
15075 Rockies
—you can instantaneously be connected to the
15076 Internet. Imagine the Internet as ubiquitous as the best cell-phone
15077 service, where with the flip of a device, you are connected.
15079 <indexterm><primary>cell phones, music streamed over
</primary></indexterm>
15081 In that world, it will be extremely easy to connect to services that
15082 give you access to content on the fly
—such as Internet radio,
15083 content that is streamed to the user when the user demands. Here,
15084 then, is the critical point: When it is
<emphasis>extremely
</emphasis>
15085 easy to connect to services that give access to content, it will be
15086 <emphasis>easier
</emphasis> to connect to services that give you
15087 access to content than it will be to download and store content
15088 <emphasis>on the many devices you will have for playing
15089 content
</emphasis>. It will be easier, in other words, to subscribe
15090 than it will be to be a database manager, as everyone in the
15091 download-sharing world of Napster-like technologies essentially
15092 is. Content services will compete with content sharing, even if the
15093 services charge money for the content they give access to. Already
15094 cell-phone services in Japan offer music (for a fee) streamed over
15095 cell phones (enhanced with plugs for headphones). The Japanese are
15096 paying for this content even though
<quote>free
</quote> content is available in the
15097 form of MP3s across the Web.
<footnote><para>
15099 See, for example,
<quote>Music Media Watch,
</quote> The J@pan Inc. Newsletter,
3
15100 April
2002, available at
15101 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
76</ulink>.
15106 This point about the future is meant to suggest a perspective on the
15107 present: It is emphatically temporary. The
<quote>problem
</quote> with file
15108 sharing
—to the extent there is a real problem
—is a problem
15109 that will increasingly disappear as it becomes easier to connect to
15110 the Internet. And thus it is an extraordinary mistake for policy
15111 makers today to be
<quote>solving
</quote> this problem in light of a technology
15112 that will be gone tomorrow. The question should not be how to
15113 regulate the Internet to eliminate file sharing (the Net will evolve
15114 that problem away). The question instead should be how to assure that
15115 artists get paid, during
15117 <!-- PAGE BREAK 304 -->
15118 this transition between twentieth-century models for doing business
15119 and twenty-first-century technologies.
15122 The answer begins with recognizing that there are different
<quote>problems
</quote>
15123 here to solve. Let's start with type D content
—uncopyrighted
15124 content or copyrighted content that the artist wants shared. The
15125 <quote>problem
</quote> with this content is to make sure that the technology that
15126 would enable this kind of sharing is not rendered illegal. You can
15127 think of it this way: Pay phones are used to deliver ransom demands,
15128 no doubt. But there are many who need to use pay phones who have
15129 nothing to do with ransoms. It would be wrong to ban pay phones in
15130 order to eliminate kidnapping.
15133 Type C content raises a different
<quote>problem.
</quote> This is content that was,
15134 at one time, published and is no longer available. It may be
15135 unavailable because the artist is no longer valuable enough for the
15136 record label he signed with to carry his work. Or it may be
15137 unavailable because the work is forgotten. Either way, the aim of the
15138 law should be to facilitate the access to this content, ideally in a
15139 way that returns something to the artist.
15141 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
15142 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
15144 Again, the model here is the used book store. Once a book goes out of
15145 print, it may still be available in libraries and used book
15146 stores. But libraries and used book stores don't pay the copyright
15147 owner when someone reads or buys an out-of-print book. That makes
15148 total sense, of course, since any other system would be so burdensome
15149 as to eliminate the possibility of used book stores' existing. But
15150 from the author's perspective, this
<quote>sharing
</quote> of his content without
15151 his being compensated is less than ideal.
15154 The model of used book stores suggests that the law could simply deem
15155 out-of-print music fair game. If the publisher does not make copies of
15156 the music available for sale, then commercial and noncommercial
15157 providers would be free, under this rule, to
<quote>share
</quote> that content,
15158 even though the sharing involved making a copy. The copy here would be
15159 incidental to the trade; in a context where commercial publishing has
15160 ended, trading music should be as free as trading books.
15164 <!-- PAGE BREAK 305 -->
15165 Alternatively, the law could create a statutory license that would
15166 ensure that artists get something from the trade of their work. For
15167 example, if the law set a low statutory rate for the commercial
15168 sharing of content that was not offered for sale by a commercial
15169 publisher, and if that rate were automatically transferred to a trust
15170 for the benefit of the artist, then businesses could develop around
15171 the idea of trading this content, and artists would benefit from this
15175 This system would also create an incentive for publishers to keep
15176 works available commercially. Works that are available commercially
15177 would not be subject to this license. Thus, publishers could protect
15178 the right to charge whatever they want for content if they kept the
15179 work commercially available. But if they don't keep it available, and
15180 instead, the computer hard disks of fans around the world keep it
15181 alive, then any royalty owed for such copying should be much less than
15182 the amount owed a commercial publisher.
15185 The hard case is content of types A and B, and again, this case is
15186 hard only because the extent of the problem will change over time, as
15187 the technologies for gaining access to content change. The law's
15188 solution should be as flexible as the problem is, understanding that
15189 we are in the middle of a radical transformation in the technology for
15190 delivering and accessing content.
15193 So here's a solution that will at first seem very strange to both sides
15194 in this war, but which upon reflection, I suggest, should make some sense.
15197 Stripped of the rhetoric about the sanctity of property, the basic
15198 claim of the content industry is this: A new technology (the Internet)
15199 has harmed a set of rights that secure copyright. If those rights are to
15200 be protected, then the content industry should be compensated for that
15201 harm. Just as the technology of tobacco harmed the health of millions
15202 of Americans, or the technology of asbestos caused grave illness to
15203 thousands of miners, so, too, has the technology of digital networks
15204 harmed the interests of the content industry.
15207 <!-- PAGE BREAK 306 -->
15208 I love the Internet, and so I don't like likening it to tobacco or
15209 asbestos. But the analogy is a fair one from the perspective of the
15210 law. And it suggests a fair response: Rather than seeking to destroy
15211 the Internet, or the p2p technologies that are currently harming
15212 content providers on the Internet, we should find a relatively simple
15213 way to compensate those who are harmed.
15215 <indexterm id='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='startofrange'
><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)
</primary></indexterm>
15217 The idea would be a modification of a proposal that has been
15218 floated by Harvard law professor William Fisher.
<footnote>
15221 <indexterm id='idxartistspayments3' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
15222 William Fisher,
<citetitle>Digital Music: Problems and Possibilities
</citetitle> (last
15223 revised:
10 October
2000), available at
15224 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
77</ulink>; William
15225 Fisher,
<citetitle>Promises to Keep: Technology, Law, and the Future of
15226 Entertainment
</citetitle> (forthcoming) (Stanford: Stanford University Press,
15227 2004), ch.
6, available at
15228 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
78</ulink>. Professor
15229 Netanel has proposed a related idea that would exempt noncommercial
15230 sharing from the reach of copyright and would establish compensation
15231 to artists to balance any loss. See Neil Weinstock Netanel,
<quote>Impose a
15232 Noncommercial Use Levy to Allow Free P2P File Sharing,
</quote> available at
15233 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
79</ulink>. For other proposals, see Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>Who's Holding Back
15234 Broadband?
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
8 January
2002, A17; Philip S. Corwin on
15235 behalf of Sharman Networks, A Letter to Senator Joseph R. Biden, Jr.,
15236 Chairman of the Senate Foreign Relations Committee,
26 February
2002,
15238 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
80</ulink>; Serguei Osokine,
<citetitle>A Quick Case for Intellectual Property
15239 Use Fee (IPUF)
</citetitle>,
3 March
2002, available at
15240 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
81</ulink>; Jefferson Graham,
15241 <quote>Kazaa, Verizon Propose to Pay Artists Directly,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
13 May
15243 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
82</ulink>; Steven M. Cherry,
<quote>Getting Copyright Right,
</quote>
15244 IEEE Spectrum Online,
1 July
2002, available at
15245 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
83</ulink>; Declan
15246 McCullagh,
<quote>Verizon's Copyright Campaign,
</quote> CNET News.com,
27 August
15248 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
84</ulink>.
15249 Fisher's proposal is very similar to Richard Stallman's proposal for
15250 DAT. Unlike Fisher's, Stallman's proposal would not pay artists directly
15251 proportionally, though more popular artists would get more than the less
15252 popular. As is typical with Stallman, his proposal predates the current
15253 debate by about a decade. See
15254 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
85</ulink>.
15255 <indexterm><primary>Fisher, William
</primary></indexterm>
15256 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
15257 <indexterm><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)
</primary></indexterm>
15258 <indexterm startref='idxartistspayments3' class='endofrange'
/>
15260 Fisher suggests a very clever way around the current impasse of the
15261 Internet. Under his plan, all content capable of digital transmission
15262 would (
1) be marked with a digital watermark (don't worry about how
15263 easy it is to evade these marks; as you'll see, there's no incentive
15264 to evade them). Once the content is marked, then entrepreneurs would
15265 develop (
2) systems to monitor how many items of each content were
15266 distributed. On the basis of those numbers, then (
3) artists would be
15267 compensated. The compensation would be paid for by (
4) an appropriate
15271 Fisher's proposal is careful and comprehensive. It raises a million
15272 questions, most of which he answers well in his upcoming book,
15273 <citetitle>Promises to Keep
</citetitle>. The modification that I would make is relatively
15274 simple: Fisher imagines his proposal replacing the existing copyright
15275 system. I imagine it complementing the existing system. The aim of
15276 the proposal would be to facilitate compensation to the extent that
15277 harm could be shown. This compensation would be temporary, aimed at
15278 facilitating a transition between regimes. And it would require
15279 renewal after a period of years. If it continues to make sense to
15280 facilitate free exchange of content, supported through a taxation
15281 system, then it can be continued. If this form of protection is no
15282 longer necessary, then the system could lapse into the old system of
15283 controlling access.
15285 <indexterm startref='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='endofrange'
/>
15286 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
15288 Fisher would balk at the idea of allowing the system to lapse. His aim
15289 is not just to ensure that artists are paid, but also to ensure that
15290 the system supports the widest range of
<quote>semiotic democracy
</quote>
15291 possible. But the aims of semiotic democracy would be satisfied if the
15292 other changes I described were accomplished
—in particular, the
15293 limits on derivative
15295 <!-- PAGE BREAK 307 -->
15296 uses. A system that simply charges for access would not greatly burden
15297 semiotic democracy if there were few limitations on what one was
15298 allowed to do with the content itself.
15300 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation
</primary></indexterm>
15301 <indexterm><primary>MusicStore
</primary></indexterm>
15302 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks
</primary></indexterm>
15303 <indexterm><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>prices of
</secondary></indexterm>
15305 No doubt it would be difficult to calculate the proper measure of
15306 <quote>harm
</quote> to an industry. But the difficulty of making that calculation
15307 would be outweighed by the benefit of facilitating innovation. This
15308 background system to compensate would also not need to interfere with
15309 innovative proposals such as Apple's MusicStore. As experts predicted
15310 when Apple launched the MusicStore, it could beat
<quote>free
</quote> by being
15311 easier than free is. This has proven correct: Apple has sold millions
15312 of songs at even the very high price of
99 cents a song. (At
99 cents,
15313 the cost is the equivalent of a per-song CD price, though the labels
15314 have none of the costs of a CD to pay.) Apple's move was countered by
15315 Real Networks, offering music at just
79 cents a song. And no doubt
15316 there will be a great deal of competition to offer and sell music
15319 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
15320 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>cable vs. broadcast
</secondary></indexterm>
15321 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
15322 <indexterm><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in Asia
</secondary></indexterm>
15323 <indexterm><primary>film industry
</primary><secondary>luxury theatres vs. video piracy in
</secondary></indexterm>
15325 This competition has already occurred against the background of
<quote>free
</quote>
15326 music from p2p systems. As the sellers of cable television have known
15327 for thirty years, and the sellers of bottled water for much more than
15328 that, there is nothing impossible at all about
<quote>competing with free.
</quote>
15329 Indeed, if anything, the competition spurs the competitors to offer
15330 new and better products. This is precisely what the competitive market
15331 was to be about. Thus in Singapore, though piracy is rampant, movie
15332 theaters are often luxurious
—with
<quote>first class
</quote> seats, and meals
15333 served while you watch a movie
—as they struggle and succeed in
15334 finding ways to compete with
<quote>free.
</quote>
15337 This regime of competition, with a backstop to assure that artists
15338 don't lose, would facilitate a great deal of innovation in the
15339 delivery of content. That competition would continue to shrink type A
15340 sharing. It would inspire an extraordinary range of new
15341 innovators
—ones who would have a right to the content, and would
15342 no longer fear the uncertain and barbarically severe punishments of
15346 In summary, then, my proposal is this:
15350 <!-- PAGE BREAK 308 -->
15351 The Internet is in transition. We should not be regulating a
15352 technology in transition. We should instead be regulating to minimize
15353 the harm to interests affected by this technological change, while
15354 enabling, and encouraging, the most efficient technology we can
15358 We can minimize that harm while maximizing the benefit to innovation
15361 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
15364 guaranteeing the right to engage in type D sharing;
15368 permitting noncommercial type C sharing without liability,
15369 and commercial type C sharing at a low and fixed rate set by
15374 while in this transition, taxing and compensating for type A
15375 sharing, to the extent actual harm is demonstrated.
15379 But what if
<quote>piracy
</quote> doesn't disappear? What if there is a competitive
15380 market providing content at a low cost, but a significant number of
15381 consumers continue to
<quote>take
</quote> content for nothing? Should the law do
15385 Yes, it should. But, again, what it should do depends upon how the
15386 facts develop. These changes may not eliminate type A sharing. But the
15387 real issue is not whether it eliminates sharing in the abstract. The
15388 real issue is its effect on the market. Is it better (a) to have a
15389 technology that is
95 percent secure and produces a market of size
<citetitle>x
</citetitle>,
15390 or (b) to have a technology that is
50 percent secure but produces a
15391 market of five times
<citetitle>x
</citetitle>? Less secure might produce more unauthorized
15392 sharing, but it is likely to also produce a much bigger market in
15393 authorized sharing. The most important thing is to assure artists'
15394 compensation without breaking the Internet. Once that's assured, then
15395 it may well be appropriate to find ways to track down the petty
15399 But we're a long way away from whittling the problem down to this
15400 subset of type A sharers. And our focus until we're there should not
15401 be on finding ways to break the Internet. Our focus until we're there
15403 <!-- PAGE BREAK 309 -->
15404 should be on how to make sure the artists are paid, while protecting
15405 the space for innovation and creativity that the Internet is.
15409 <section id=
"firelawyers">
15410 <title>5. Fire Lots of Lawyers
</title>
15412 I'm a lawyer. I make lawyers for a living. I believe in the law. I believe
15413 in the law of copyright. Indeed, I have devoted my life to working in
15414 law, not because there are big bucks at the end but because there are
15415 ideals at the end that I would love to live.
15418 Yet much of this book has been a criticism of lawyers, or the role
15419 lawyers have played in this debate. The law speaks to ideals, but it
15420 is my view that our profession has become too attuned to the
15421 client. And in a world where the rich clients have one strong view,
15422 the unwillingness of the profession to question or counter that one
15423 strong view queers the law.
15425 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, Melville
</primary></indexterm>
15426 <indexterm><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary><secondary>Supreme Court challenge of
</secondary></indexterm>
15428 The evidence of this bending is compelling. I'm attacked as a
15429 <quote>radical
</quote> by many within the profession, yet the positions that I am
15430 advocating are precisely the positions of some of the most moderate
15431 and significant figures in the history of this branch of the
15432 law. Many, for example, thought crazy the challenge that we brought to
15433 the Copyright Term Extension Act. Yet just thirty years ago, the
15434 dominant scholar and practitioner in the field of copyright, Melville
15435 Nimmer, thought it obvious.
<footnote><para>
15437 Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>Copyright's First Amendment
</quote> (Melville B. Nimmer
15438 Memorial Lecture),
<citetitle>UCLA Law Review
</citetitle> 48 (
2001):
1057,
1069–70.
15443 However, my criticism of the role that lawyers have played in this
15444 debate is not just about a professional bias. It is more importantly
15445 about our failure to actually reckon the costs of the law.
15448 Economists are supposed to be good at reckoning costs and benefits.
15449 But more often than not, economists, with no clue about how the legal
15450 system actually functions, simply assume that the transaction costs of
15451 the legal system are slight.
<footnote><para>
15453 A good example is the work of Professor Stan Liebowitz. Liebowitz is
15454 to be commended for his careful review of data about infringement,
15455 leading him to question his own publicly stated
15456 position
—twice. He initially predicted that downloading would
15457 substantially harm the industry. He then revised his view in light of
15458 the data, and he has since revised his view again. Compare Stan
15459 J. Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy: The True Forces That
15460 Drive the Digital Marketplace
</citetitle> (New York: Amacom,
2002), (reviewing his
15461 original view but expressing skepticism) with Stan J. Liebowitz,
15462 <quote>Will MP3s Annihilate the Record Industry?
</quote> working paper, June
2003,
15464 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
86</ulink>.
15465 Liebowitz's careful analysis is extremely valuable in estimating the
15466 effect of file-sharing technology. In my view, however, he
15467 underestimates the costs of the legal system. See, for example,
15468 <citetitle>Rethinking
</citetitle>,
174–76.
15469 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
15471 They see a system that has been around for hundreds of years, and they
15472 assume it works the way their elementary school civics class taught
15476 <!-- PAGE BREAK 310 -->
15477 But the legal system doesn't work. Or more accurately, it doesn't work
15478 for anyone except those with the most resources. Not because the
15479 system is corrupt. I don't think our legal system (at the federal
15480 level, at least) is at all corrupt. I mean simply because the costs of
15481 our legal system are so astonishingly high that justice can
15482 practically never be done.
15485 These costs distort free culture in many ways. A lawyer's time is
15486 billed at the largest firms at more than $
400 per hour. How much time
15487 should such a lawyer spend reading cases carefully, or researching
15488 obscure strands of authority? The answer is the increasing reality:
15489 very little. The law depended upon the careful articulation and
15490 development of doctrine, but the careful articulation and development
15491 of legal doctrine depends upon careful work. Yet that careful work
15492 costs too much, except in the most high-profile and costly cases.
15495 The costliness and clumsiness and randomness of this system mock
15496 our tradition. And lawyers, as well as academics, should consider it
15497 their duty to change the way the law works
—or better, to change the
15498 law so that it works. It is wrong that the system works well only for the
15499 top
1 percent of the clients. It could be made radically more efficient,
15500 and inexpensive, and hence radically more just.
15503 But until that reform is complete, we as a society should keep the law
15504 away from areas that we know it will only harm. And that is precisely
15505 what the law will too often do if too much of our culture is left to
15508 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid
</primary></indexterm>
15510 Think about the amazing things your kid could do or make with digital
15511 technology
—the film, the music, the Web page, the blog. Or think
15512 about the amazing things your community could facilitate with digital
15513 technology
—a wiki, a barn raising, activism to change something.
15514 Think about all those creative things, and then imagine cold molasses
15515 poured onto the machines. This is what any regime that requires
15516 permission produces. Again, this is the reality of Brezhnev's Russia.
15519 The law should regulate in certain areas of culture
—but it should
15520 regulate culture only where that regulation does good. Yet lawyers
15522 <!-- PAGE BREAK 311-->
15523 rarely test their power, or the power they promote, against this
15524 simple pragmatic question:
<quote>Will it do good?
</quote> When challenged about
15525 the expanding reach of the law, the lawyer answers,
<quote>Why not?
</quote>
15528 We should ask,
<quote>Why?
</quote> Show me why your regulation of culture is
15529 needed. Show me how it does good. And until you can show me both,
15530 keep your lawyers away.
15532 <!-- PAGE BREAK 312 -->
15536 <chapter label=
"" id=
"c-notes">
15537 <title>Notes
</title>
15539 Throughout this text, there are references to links on the World Wide
15540 Web. As anyone who has tried to use the Web knows, these links can be
15541 highly unstable. I have tried to remedy the instability by redirecting
15542 readers to the original source through the Web site associated with
15543 this book. For each link below, you can go to
15544 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes"/>
15545 and locate the original source by clicking on the number after the #
15546 sign. If the original link remains alive, you will be redirected to
15547 that link. If the original link has disappeared, you will be
15548 redirected to an appropriate reference for the material.
15551 <!-- insert endnotes here -->
15553 <index type=
"endnotes"/>
15555 <!--PAGE BREAK 336-->
15558 <chapter label=
"" id=
"c-acknowledgments">
15559 <title>Acknowledgments
</title>
15561 This book is the product of a long and as yet unsuccessful struggle that
15562 began when I read of Eric Eldred's war to keep books free. Eldred's
15563 work helped launch a movement, the free culture movement, and it is
15564 to him that this book is dedicated.
15566 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark
</primary></indexterm>
15568 I received guidance in various places from friends and academics,
15569 including Glenn Brown, Peter DiCola, Jennifer Mnookin, Richard Posner,
15570 Mark Rose, and Kathleen Sullivan. And I received correction and
15571 guidance from many amazing students at Stanford Law School and
15572 Stanford University. They included Andrew B. Coan, John Eden, James
15573 P. Fellers, Christopher Guzelian, Erica Goldberg, Robert Hallman,
15574 Andrew Harris, Matthew Kahn, Brian Link, Ohad Mayblum, Alina Ng, and
15575 Erica Platt. I am particularly grateful to Catherine Crump and Harry
15576 Surden, who helped direct their research, and to Laura Lynch, who
15577 brilliantly managed the army that they assembled, and provided her own
15578 critical eye on much of this.
15581 Yuko Noguchi helped me to understand the laws of Japan as well as
15582 its culture. I am thankful to her, and to the many in Japan who helped
15583 me prepare this book: Joi Ito, Takayuki Matsutani, Naoto Misaki,
15584 Michihiro Sasaki, Hiromichi Tanaka, Hiroo Yamagata, and Yoshihiro
15585 <!--PAGE BREAK 337-->
15586 Yonezawa. I am thankful as well as to Professor Nobuhiro Nakayama,
15587 and the Tokyo University Business Law Center, for giving me the
15588 chance to spend time in Japan, and to Tadashi Shiraishi and Kiyokazu
15589 Yamagami for their generous help while I was there.
15592 These are the traditional sorts of help that academics regularly draw
15593 upon. But in addition to them, the Internet has made it possible to
15594 receive advice and correction from many whom I have never even
15595 met. Among those who have responded with extremely helpful advice to
15596 requests on my blog about the book are Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli, David
15597 Gerstein, and Peter DiMauro, as well as a long list of those who had
15598 specific ideas about ways to develop my argument. They included
15599 Richard Bondi, Steven Cherry, David Coe, Nik Cubrilovic, Bob Devine,
15600 Charles Eicher, Thomas Guida, Elihu M. Gerson, Jeremy Hunsinger,
15601 Vaughn Iverson, John Karabaic, Jeff Keltner, James Lindenschmidt,
15602 K. L. Mann, Mark Manning, Nora McCauley, Jeffrey McHugh, Evan
15603 McMullen, Fred Norton, John Pormann, Pedro A. D. Rezende, Shabbir
15604 Safdar, Saul Schleimer, Clay Shirky, Adam Shostack, Kragen Sitaker,
15605 Chris Smith, Bruce Steinberg, Andrzej Jan Taramina, Sean Walsh, Matt
15606 Wasserman, Miljenko Williams,
<quote>Wink,
</quote> Roger Wood,
<quote>Ximmbo da Jazz,
</quote>
15607 and Richard Yanco. (I apologize if I have missed anyone; with
15608 computers come glitches, and a crash of my e-mail system meant I lost
15609 a bunch of great replies.)
15612 Richard Stallman and Michael Carroll each read the whole book in
15613 draft, and each provided extremely helpful correction and advice.
15614 Michael helped me to see more clearly the significance of the
15615 regulation of derivitive works. And Richard corrected an
15616 embarrassingly large number of errors. While my work is in part
15617 inspired by Stallman's, he does not agree with me in important places
15618 throughout this book.
15621 Finally, and forever, I am thankful to Bettina, who has always
15622 insisted that there would be unending happiness away from these
15623 battles, and who has always been right. This slow learner is, as ever,
15624 grateful for her perpetual patience and love.
15626 <!--PAGE BREAK 338-->
15631 <!-- Quotes from http://free-culture.cc/jacket/, trimmed to fit on one
15632 page, for use on the back page of the cover. -->
15635 <quote><citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is an entertaining and
15636 important look at the past and future of the cold war between the
15637 media industry and new technologies.
</quote>
15641 — Marc Andreessen, cofounder of Netscape
15645 <quote>America needs a national conversation about the way in which
15646 so-called
<quote>intellectual property rights
</quote> have come to
15647 dominate the rights of scholars, researchers, and everyday citizens. A
15648 copyright cartel, bidding for absolute control over digital worlds,
15649 music, and movies, now has a veto over technological innovation and
15650 has halted most contributions to the public domain from which so many
15651 have benefited. The patent system has spun out of control, giving
15652 enormous power to entrenched interests, and even trademarks are being
15653 misused. Lawrence Lessig's latest book is essential reading for anyone
15654 who want to join this conversation. He explains how technology and the
15655 law are robbing us of the public domain; but for all his educated
15656 pessimism, Professor Lessig offers some solutions, too, because he
15657 recognizes that technology can be the catalyst for freedom. If you
15658 care about the future of innovation, read this book.
</quote>
15662 — Dan Gillmor, author of
<citetitle>Making the News
</citetitle>,
15663 an upcoming book on the collision of media and technology
15667 <quote><citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> goes beyond illuminating
15668 the catastrophe to our culture of increasing regulation to show
15669 examples of how we can make a different future. These new-style heroes
15670 and examples are rooted in the traditions of the founding fathers in
15671 ways that seem obvious after reading this book. Recommended reading to
15672 those trying to unravel the shrill hype around
<quote>intellectual
15673 property.
</quote></quote>
15677 — Brewster Kahle, founder of the Internet Archive
15680 <!-- trick to avoid chapter whitespace at the top of this page, to
15681 have space for more text on one page. -->
15686 This edition of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is the result of
15687 three years of volunteer work. The idea came from a discussion I had
15688 around ten years ago with a friend about the copyright debate in
15689 Norway, and how rarely the difficulties of long copyright made it into
15690 the public debate. A bit more than three years ago I finally had a
15691 look again at the idea and decided to publish a printed Norwegian
15692 Bokmål version of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle>, translated and
15693 formatted by volunteers. The new English edition is a by-product of
15694 the translation process.
15698 Thanks to the Debian Edu / Skolelinux project, I already had
15699 experience translating Docbook documents, and it seemed like a good
15700 format for this book too. I found a Docbook formatted version of the
15701 book created by Hans Schou. Initial testing showed lots of Docbook
15702 validation errors in this version, but after some work I was able to
15703 transform it to PDF and EPUB. This was the start of the translation
15704 project. The Docbook file improved over time, and build rules were
15705 added to create both English and Bokmål versions. Finally, a call for
15706 volunteers went out to help me with the translation.
15710 Several people joined, and Anders Hagen Jarmund, Kirill Miazine and
15711 Odd Kleiva assisted with the initial translation. Ralph Amissah and
15712 his SiSu version provided index entries. Morten Sickel and Alexander
15713 Alemayhu helped with the figures, redrawing some of the bitmaps as
15714 vector images. Wivi Reinholdtsen and Ingrid Yrvin did very valuable
15715 proofreading. Håkon Wium Lie helped me track down a good replacement
15716 font without usage restrictions instead of the one in original PDF.
15717 The PDF typesetting is done using dblatex, which we selected over the
15718 alternatives thanks to the invaluable and quick help from Benoît
15719 Guillon and Andreas Hoenen. Thomas Gramstad donated ISBN numbers
15720 needed for distribution to book stores. The support of Lawrence
15721 Lessig helped me to complete the project - I am very thankful he had
15722 the original screen shots still available after
11 years.
15726 I am also very grateful for my family for their patience with me in
15731 — Petter Reinholdtsen, Oslo
2015-
08-
27
15738 Hack to get rid of chapter heading on colophon page and provide a more
15739 conventional Colophon page. The disadvantage is a useless blank page
15740 where the empty chapter title is printed.
15743 <?latex {\centering
15746 Free culture: How big media uses technology and the law to lock down
15747 culture and control creativity / Lawrence Lessig.
15750 Copyright
© 2004 Lawrence Lessig. Some rights reserved.
15754 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/"/>
15758 Published in English and Norwegian Bokmål
2015 by Petter Reinholdtsen
15759 with help from many volunteers. Typeset with dblatex using the font
15764 First published
2004 by The Penguin Press.
15768 Excerpt from an editorial titled
<quote>The Coming of Copyright
15769 Perpetuity,
</quote> <citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>, January
15770 16,
2003. Copyright
© 2003 by The New York Times Co. Reprinted
15775 <xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n" linkend=
"fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig"/> by
15776 Paul Conrad, copyright Tribune Media Services, Inc. All rights
15777 reserved. Reprinted with permission.
15781 <xref xrefstyle=
"template:%n" linkend=
"fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership"/>
15782 courtesy of the office of FCC Commissioner, Michael J. Copps.
15807 (US Library of Congress) KF2979.L47
2004
15815 Thomas Gramstad Forlag donated the ISBN numbers.
15818 <?latex } %\centering
15822 The Docbook source is available from
15823 <ulink url=
"https://github.com/petterreinholdtsen/free-culture-lessig"/>.
15824 Please report any issues with the book there.
15828 This book is licensed under a Creative Commons license. This license
15829 permits non-commercial use of this work, so long as attribution is
15830 given. For more information about the license visit
15831 <ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/"/>.
15835 This book is a proof reading draft. Please visit the github URL above
15836 to get the latest version.
15840 <informaltable id=
"isbn">
15841 <tgroup cols=
"2" align=
"left">
15844 <entry>ISBN
</entry>
15845 <entry>Format / MIME-type
</entry>
15850 <entry>978-
82-
8067-
010-
6</entry>
15851 <entry>Digest size from lulu.com
</entry>
15854 <entry>978-
82-
8067-
011-
3</entry>
15855 <entry>application/pdf
</entry>
15858 <entry>978-
82-
8067-
012-
0</entry>
15859 <entry>application/epub+zip
</entry>
15862 <entry>978-
82-
8067-
013-
7</entry>
15863 <entry>application/x-mobipocket-ebook
</entry>